1 THE THREE PRESENTS OF D'ARTAGNAN THE ELDER
On the first Monday of the month of April,
1625, the market town of Meung, in which the author of ROMANCE OF THE ROSE was
born, appeared to be in as perfect a state of revolution as if the Huguenots had
just made a second La Rochelle of it. Many citizens, seeing the women flying
toward the High Street, leaving their children crying at the open doors,
hastened to don the cuirass, and supporting their somewhat uncertain courage
with a musket or a partisan, directed their steps toward the hostelry of the
Jolly Miller, before which was gathered, increasing every minute, a compact
group, vociferous and full of curiosity.
In those times panics were common, and few days
passed without some city or other registering in its archives an event of this
kind. There were nobles, who made war against each other; there was the king,
who made war against the cardinal; there was Spain, which made war against the
king. Then, in addition to these concealed or public, secret or open wars, there
were robbers, mendicants, Huguenots, wolves, and scoundrels, who made war upon
everybody. The citizens always took up arms readily against thieves, wolves or
scoundrels, often against nobles or Huguenots, sometimes against the king, but
never against cardinal or Spain. It resulted, then, from this habit that on the
said first Monday of April, 1625, the citizens, on hearing the clamor, and
seeing neither the red-and-yellow standard nor the livery of the Duc de
Richelieu, rushed toward the hostel of the Jolly Miller. When arrived there, the
cause of the hubbub was apparent to all.
A young man—we can sketch his portrait at a
dash. Imagine to yourself a Don Quixote of eighteen; a Don Quixote without his
corselet, without his coat of mail, without his cuisses; a Don Quixote clothed
in a woolen doublet, the blue color of which had faded into a nameless shade
between lees of wine and a heavenly azure; face long and brown; high cheek
bones, a sign of sagacity; the maxillary muscles enormously developed, an
infallible sign by which a Gascon may always be detected, even without his
cap—and our young man wore a cap set off with a sort of feather; the eye open
and intelligent; the nose hooked, but finely chiseled. Too big for a youth, too
small for a grown man, an experienced eye might have taken him for a farmer's
son upon a journey had it not been for the long sword which, dangling from a
leather baldric, hit against the calves of its owner as he walked, and against
the rough side of his steed when he was on horseback.
For our young man had a steed which was the
observed of all observers. It was a Bearn pony, from twelve to fourteen years
old, yellow in his hide, without a hair in his tail, but not without windgalls
on his legs, which, though going with his head lower than his knees, rendering a
martingale quite unnecessary, contrived nevertheless to perform his eight
leagues a day. Unfortunately, the qualities of this horse were so well concealed
under his strange-colored hide and his unaccountable gait, that at a time when
everybody was a connoisseur in horseflesh, the appearance of the aforesaid pony
at Meung—which place he had entered about a quarter of an hour before, by the
gate of Beaugency—produced an unfavorable feeling, which extended to his rider.
And this feeling had been more painfully
perceived by young d'Artagnan—for so was the Don Quixote of this second
Rosinante named—from his not being able to conceal from himself the ridiculous
appearance that such a steed gave him, good horseman as he was. He had sighed
deeply, therefore, when accepting the gift of the pony from M. d'Artagnan the
elder. He was not ignorant that such a beast was worth at least twenty livres;
and the words which had accompanied the present were above all price.
"My son," said the old Gascon gentleman, in
that pure Bearn PATOIS of which Henry IV could never rid himself, "this horse
was born in the house of your father about thirteen years ago, and has remained
in it ever since, which ought to make you love it. Never sell it; allow it to
die tranquilly and honorably of old age, and if you make a campaign with it,
take as much care of it as you would of an old servant. At court, provided you
have ever the honor to go there," continued M. d'Artagnan the elder, "—an honor
to which, remember, your ancient nobility gives you the right—sustain worthily
your name of gentleman, which has been worthily borne by your ancestors for five
hundred years, both for your own sake and the sake of those who belong to you.
By the latter I mean your relatives and friends. Endure nothing from anyone
except Monsieur the Cardinal and the king. It is by his courage, please observe,
by his courage alone, that a gentleman can make his way nowadays. Whoever
hesitates for a second perhaps allows the bait to escape which during that exact
second fortune held out to him. You are young. You ought to be brave for two
reasons: the first is that you are a Gascon, and the second is that you are my
son. Never fear quarrels, but seek adventures. I have taught you how to handle a
sword; you have thews of iron, a wrist of steel. Fight on all occasions. Fight
the more for duels being forbidden, since consequently there is twice as much
courage in fighting. I have nothing to give you, my son, but fifteen crowns, my
horse, and the counsels you have just heard. Your mother will add to them a
recipe for a certain balsam, which she had from a Bohemian and which has the
miraculous virtue of curing all wounds that do not reach the heart. Take
advantage of all, and live happily and long. I have but one word to add, and
that is to propose an example to you—not mine, for I myself have never appeared
at court, and have only taken part in religious wars as a volunteer; I speak of
Monsieur de Treville, who was formerly my neighbor, and who had the honor to be,
as a child, the play-fellow of our king, Louis XIII, whom God preserve!
Sometimes their play degenerated into battles, and in these battles the king was
not always the stronger. The blows which he received increased greatly his
esteem and friendship for Monsieur de Treville. Afterward, Monsieur de Treville
fought with others: in his first journey to Paris, five times; from the death of
the late king till the young one came of age, without reckoning wars and sieges,
seven times; and from that date up to the present day, a hundred times, perhaps!
So that in spite of edicts, ordinances, and decrees, there he is, captain of the
Musketeers; that is to say, chief of a legion of Caesars, whom the king holds in
great esteem and whom the cardinal dreads—he who dreads nothing, as it is said.
Still further, Monsieur de Treville gains ten thousand crowns a year; he is
therefore a great noble. He began as you begin. Go to him with this letter, and
make him your model in order that you may do as he has done."
Upon which M. d'Artagnan the elder girded his
own sword round his son, kissed him tenderly on both cheeks, and gave him his
benediction.
On leaving the paternal chamber, the young man
found his mother, who was waiting for him with the famous recipe of which the
counsels we have just repeated would necessitate frequent employment. The adieux
were on this side longer and more tender than they had been on the other—not
that M. d'Artagnan did not love his son, who was his only offspring, but M.
d'Artagnan was a man, and he would have considered it unworthy of a man to give
way to his feelings; whereas Mme. d'Artagnan was a woman, and still more, a
mother. She wept abundantly; and—let us speak it to the praise of M. d'Artagnan
the younger—notwithstanding the efforts he made to remain firm, as a future
Musketeer ought, nature prevailed, and he shed many tears, of which he succeeded
with great difficulty in concealing the half.
The same day the young man set forward on his
journey, furnished with the three paternal gifts, which consisted, as we have
said, of fifteen crowns, the horse, and the letter for M. de Treville—the
counsels being thrown into the bargain.
With such a VADE MECUM d'Artagnan was morally
and physically an exact copy of the hero of Cervantes, to whom we so happily
compared him when our duty of an historian placed us under the necessity of
sketching his portrait. Don Quixote took windmills for giants, and sheep for
armies; d'Artagnan took every smile for an insult, and every look as a
provocation—whence it resulted that from Tarbes to Meung his fist was constantly
doubled, or his hand on the hilt of his sword; and yet the fist did not descend
upon any jaw, nor did the sword issue from its scabbard. It was not that the
sight of the wretched pony did not excite numerous smiles on the countenances of
passers-by; but as against the side of this pony rattled a sword of respectable
length, and as over this sword gleamed an eye rather ferocious than haughty,
these passers-by repressed their hilarity, or if hilarity prevailed over
prudence, they endeavored to laugh only on one side, like the masks of the
ancients. D'Artagnan, then, remained majestic and intact in his susceptibility,
till he came to this unlucky city of Meung.
But there, as he was alighting from his horse
at the gate of the Jolly Miller, without anyone—host, waiter, or hostler—coming
to hold his stirrup or take his horse, d'Artagnan spied, though an open window
on the ground floor, a gentleman, well-made and of good carriage, although of
rather a stern countenance, talking with two persons who appeared to listen to
him with respect. d'Artagnan fancied quite naturally, according to his custom,
that he must be the object of their conversation, and listened. This time
d'Artagnan was only in part mistaken; he himself was not in question, but his
horse was. The gentleman appeared to be enumerating all his qualities to his
auditors; and, as I have said, the auditors seeming to have great deference for
the narrator, they every moment burst into fits of laughter. Now, as a
half-smile was sufficient to awaken the irascibility of the young man, the
effect produced upon him by this vociferous mirth may be easily imagined.
Nevertheless, d'Artagnan was desirous of
examining the appearance of this impertinent personage who ridiculed him. He
fixed his haughty eye upon the stranger, and perceived a man of from forty to
forty-five years of age, with black and piercing eyes, pale complexion, a
strongly marked nose, and a black and well-shaped mustache. He was dressed in a
doublet and hose of a violet color, with aiguillettes of the same color, without
any other ornaments than the customary slashes, through which the shirt
appeared. This doublet and hose, though new, were creased, like traveling
clothes for a long time packed in a portmanteau. d'Artagnan made all these
remarks with the rapidity of a most minute observer, and doubtless from an
instinctive feeling that this stranger was destined to have a great influence
over his future life.
Now, as at the moment in which d'Artagnan fixed
his eyes upon the gentleman in the violet doublet, the gentleman made one of his
most knowing and profound remarks respecting the Bearnese pony, his two auditors
laughed even louder than before, and he himself, though contrary to his custom,
allowed a pale smile (if I may allowed to use such an expression) to stray over
his countenance. This time there could be no doubt; d'Artagnan was really
insulted. Full, then, of this conviction, he pulled his cap down over his eyes,
and endeavoring to copy some of the court airs he had picked up in Gascony among
young traveling nobles, he advanced with one hand on the hilt of his sword and
the other resting on his hip. Unfortunately, as he advanced, his anger increased
at every step; and instead of the proper and lofty speech he had prepared as a
prelude to his challenge, he found nothing at the tip of his tongue but a gross
personality, which he accompanied with a furious gesture.
"I say, sir, you sir, who are hiding yourself
behind that shutter—yes, you, sir, tell me what you are laughing at, and we will
laugh together!"
The gentleman raised his eyes slowly from the
nag to his cavalier, as if he required some time to ascertain whether it could
be to him that such strange reproaches were addressed; then, when he could not
possibly entertain any doubt of the matter, his eyebrows slightly bent, and with
an accent of irony and insolence impossible to be described, he replied to
d'Artagnan, "I was not speaking to you, sir."
"But I am speaking to you!" replied the young
man, additionally exasperated with this mixture of insolence and good manners,
of politeness and scorn.
The stranger looked at him again with a slight
smile, and retiring from the window, came out of the hostelry with a slow step,
and placed himself before the horse, within two paces of d'Artagnan. His quiet
manner and the ironical expression of his countenance redoubled the mirth of the
persons with whom he had been talking, and who still remained at the window.
D'Artagnan, seeing him approach, drew his sword
a foot out of the scabbard.
"This horse is decidedly, or rather has been in
his youth, a buttercup," resumed the stranger, continuing the remarks he had
begun, and addressing himself to his auditors at the window, without paying the
least attention to the exasperation of d'Artagnan, who, however placed himself
between him and them. "It is a color very well known in botany, but till the
present time very rare among horses."
"There are people who laugh at the horse that
would not dare to laugh at the master," cried the young emulator of the furious
Treville.
"I do not often laugh, sir," replied the
stranger, "as you may perceive by the expression of my countenance; but
nevertheless I retain the privilege of laughing when I please."
"And I," cried d'Artagnan, "will allow no man
to laugh when it displeases me!"
"Indeed, sir," continued the stranger, more
calm than ever; "well, that is perfectly right!" and turning on his heel, was
about to re-enter the hostelry by the front gate, beneath which d'Artagnan on
arriving had observed a saddled horse.
But, d'Artagnan was not of a character to allow
a man to escape him thus who had the insolence to ridicule him. He drew his
sword entirely from the scabbard, and followed him, crying, "Turn, turn, Master
Joker, lest I strike you behind!"
"Strike me!" said the other, turning on his
heels, and surveying the young man with as much astonishment as contempt. "Why,
my good fellow, you must be mad!" Then, in a suppressed tone, as if speaking to
himself, "This is annoying," continued he. "What a godsend this would be for his
Majesty, who is seeking everywhere for brave fellows to recruit for his
Musketeers!"
He had scarcely finished, when d'Artagnan made
such a furious lunge at him that if he had not sprung nimbly backward, it is
probable he would have jested for the last time. The stranger, then perceiving
that the matter went beyond raillery, drew his sword, saluted his adversary, and
seriously placed himself on guard. But at the same moment, his two auditors,
accompanied by the host, fell upon d'Artagnan with sticks, shovels and tongs.
This caused so rapid and complete a diversion from the attack that d'Artagnan's
adversary, while the latter turned round to face this shower of blows, sheathed
his sword with the same precision, and instead of an actor, which he had nearly
been, became a spectator of the fight—a part in which he acquitted himself with
his usual impassiveness, muttering, nevertheless, "A plague upon these Gascons!
Replace him on his orange horse, and let him begone!"
"Not before I have killed you, poltroon!" cried
d'Artagnan, making the best face possible, and never retreating one step before
his three assailants, who continued to shower blows upon him.
"Another gasconade!" murmured the gentleman.
"By my honor, these Gascons are incorrigible! Keep up the dance, then, since he
will have it so. When he is tired, he will perhaps tell us that he has had
enough of it."
But the stranger knew not the headstrong
personage he had to do with; d'Artagnan was not the man ever to cry for quarter.
The fight was therefore prolonged for some seconds; but at length d'Artagnan
dropped his sword, which was broken in two pieces by the blow of a stick.
Another blow full upon his forehead at the same moment brought him to the
ground, covered with blood and almost fainting.
It was at this moment that people came flocking
to the scene of action from all sides. The host, fearful of consequences, with
the help of his servants carried the wounded man into the kitchen, where some
trifling attentions were bestowed upon him.
As to the gentleman, he resumed his place at
the window, and surveyed the crowd with a certain impatience, evidently annoyed
by their remaining undispersed.
"Well, how is it with this madman?" exclaimed
he, turning round as the noise of the door announced the entrance of the host,
who came in to inquire if he was unhurt.
"Your excellency is safe and sound?" asked the
host.
"Oh, yes! Perfectly safe and sound, my good
host; and I wish to know what has become of our young man."
"He is better," said the host, "he fainted
quite away."
"Indeed!" said the gentleman.
"But before he fainted, he collected all his
strength to challenge you, and to defy you while challenging you."
"Why, this fellow must be the devil in person!"
cried the stranger.
"Oh, no, your Excellency, he is not the devil,"
replied the host, with a grin of contempt; "for during his fainting we rummaged
his valise and found nothing but a clean shirt and eleven crowns—which however,
did not prevent his saying, as he was fainting, that if such a thing had
happened in Paris, you should have cause to repent of it at a later period."
"Then," said the stranger coolly, "he must be
some prince in disguise."
"I have told you this, good sir," resumed the
host, "in order that you may be on your guard."
"Did he name no one in his passion?"
"Yes; he struck his pocket and said, 'We shall
see what Monsieur de Treville will think of this insult offered to his
protege.'"
"Monsieur de Treville?" said the stranger,
becoming attentive, "he put his hand upon his pocket while pronouncing the name
of Monsieur de Treville? Now, my dear host, while your young man was insensible,
you did not fail, I am quite sure, to ascertain what that pocket contained. What
was there in it?"
"A letter addressed to Monsieur de Treville,
captain of the Musketeers."
"Indeed!"
"Exactly as I have the honor to tell your
Excellency."
The host, who was not endowed with great
perspicacity, did not observe the expression which his words had given to the
physiognomy of the stranger. The latter rose from the front of the window, upon
the sill of which he had leaned with his elbow, and knitted his brow like a man
disquieted.
"The devil!" murmured he, between his teeth.
"Can Treville have set this Gascon upon me? He is very young; but a sword thrust
is a sword thrust, whatever be the age of him who gives it, and a youth is less
to be suspected than an older man," and the stranger fell into a reverie which
lasted some minutes. "A weak obstacle is sometimes sufficient to overthrow a
great design.
"Host," said he, "could you not contrive to get
rid of this frantic boy for me? In conscience, I cannot kill him; and yet,"
added he, with a coldly menacing expression, "he annoys me. Where is he?"
"In my wife's chamber, on the first flight,
where they are dressing his wounds."
"His things and his bag are with him? Has he
taken off his doublet?"
"On the contrary, everything is in the kitchen.
But if he annoys you, this young fool—"
"To be sure he does. He causes a disturbance in
your hostelry, which respectable people cannot put up with. Go; make out my bill
and notify my servant."
"What, monsieur, will you leave us so soon?"
"You know that very well, as I gave my order to
saddle my horse. Have they not obeyed me?"
"It is done; as your Excellency may have
observed, your horse is in the great gateway, ready saddled for your departure."
"That is well; do as I have directed you,
then."
"What the devil!" said the host to himself.
"Can he be afraid of this boy?" But an imperious glance from the stranger
stopped him short; he bowed humbly and retired.
"It is not necessary for Milady* to be seen by
this fellow," continued the stranger. "She will soon pass; she is already late.
I had better get on horseback, and go and meet her. I should like, however, to
know what this letter addressed to Treville contains."
*We are well aware that this term, milady, is
only properly used when followed by a family name. But we find it thus in the
manuscript, and we do not choose to take upon ourselves to alter it.
And the stranger, muttering to himself,
directed his steps toward the kitchen.
In the meantime, the host, who entertained no
doubt that it was the presence of the young man that drove the stranger from his
hostelry, re-ascended to his wife's chamber, and found d'Artagnan just
recovering his senses. Giving him to understand that the police would deal with
him pretty severely for having sought a quarrel with a great lord—for the
opinion of the host the stranger could be nothing less than a great lord—he
insisted that notwithstanding his weakness d'Artagnan should get up and depart
as quickly as possible. D'Artagnan, half stupefied, without his doublet, and
with his head bound up in a linen cloth, arose then, and urged by the host,
began to descend the stairs; but on arriving at the kitchen, the first thing he
saw was his antagonist talking calmly at the step of a heavy carriage, drawn by
two large Norman horses.
His interlocutor, whose head appeared through
the carriage window, was a woman of from twenty to two-and-twenty years. We have
already observed with what rapidity d'Artagnan seized the expression of a
countenance. He perceived then, at a glance, that this woman was young and
beautiful; and her style of beauty struck him more forcibly from its being
totally different from that of the southern countries in which d'Artagnan had
hitherto resided. She was pale and fair, with long curls falling in profusion
over her shoulders, had large, blue, languishing eyes, rosy lips, and hands of
alabaster. She was talking with great animation with the stranger.
"His Eminence, then, orders me—" said the lady.
"To return instantly to England, and to inform
him as soon as the duke leaves London."
"And as to my other instructions?" asked the
fair traveler.
"They are contained in this box, which you will
not open until you are on the other side of the Channel."
"Very well; and you—what will you do?"
"I—I return to Paris."
"What, without chastising this insolent boy?"
asked the lady.
The stranger was about to reply; but at the
moment he opened his mouth, d'Artagnan, who had heard all, precipitated himself
over the threshold of the door.
"This insolent boy chastises others," cried he;
"and I hope that this time he whom he ought to chastise will not escape him as
before."
"Will not escape him?" replied the stranger,
knitting his brow.
"No; before a woman you would dare not fly, I
presume?"
"Remember," said Milady, seeing the stranger
lay his hand on his sword, "the least delay may ruin everything."
"You are right," cried the gentleman; "begone
then, on your part, and I will depart as quickly on mine." And bowing to the
lady, sprang into his saddle, while her coachman applied his whip vigorously to
his horses. The two interlocutors thus separated, taking opposite directions, at
full gallop.
"Pay him, booby!" cried the stranger to his
servant, without checking the speed of his horse; and the man, after throwing
two or three silver pieces at the foot of mine host, galloped after his master.
"Base coward! false gentleman!" cried
d'Artagnan, springing forward, in his turn, after the servant. But his wound had
rendered him too weak to support such an exertion. Scarcely had he gone ten
steps when his ears began to tingle, a faintness seized him, a cloud of blood
passed over his eyes, and he fell in the middle of the street, crying still,
"Coward! coward! coward!"
"He is a coward, indeed," grumbled the host,
drawing near to d'Artagnan, and endeavoring by this little flattery to make up
matters with the young man, as the heron of the fable did with the snail he had
despised the evening before.
"Yes, a base coward," murmured d'Artagnan; "but
she—she was very beautiful."
"What she?" demanded the host.
"Milady," faltered d'Artagnan, and fainted a
second time.
"Ah, it's all one," said the host; "I have lost
two customers, but this one remains, of whom I am pretty certain for some days
to come. There will be eleven crowns gained."
It is to be remembered that eleven crowns was
just the sum that remained in d'Artagnan's purse.
The host had reckoned upon eleven days of
confinement at a crown a day, but he had reckoned without his guest. On the
following morning at five o'clock d'Artagnan arose, and descending to the
kitchen without help, asked, among other ingredients the list of which has not
come down to us, for some oil, some wine, and some rosemary, and with his
mother's recipe in his hand composed a balsam, with which he anointed his
numerous wounds, replacing his bandages himself, and positively refusing the
assistance of any doctor, d'Artagnan walked about that same evening, and was
almost cured by the morrow.
But when the time came to pay for his rosemary,
this oil, and the wine, the only expense the master had incurred, as he had
preserved a strict abstinence—while on the contrary, the yellow horse, by the
account of the hostler at least, had eaten three times as much as a horse of his
size could reasonably supposed to have done—d'Artagnan found nothing in his
pocket but his little old velvet purse with the eleven crowns it contained; for
as to the letter addressed to M. de Treville, it had disappeared.
The young man commenced his search for the
letter with the greatest patience, turning out his pockets of all kinds over and
over again, rummaging and rerummaging in his valise, and opening and reopening
his purse; but when he found that he had come to the conviction that the letter
was not to be found, he flew, for the third time, into such a rage as was near
costing him a fresh consumption of wine, oil, and rosemary—for upon seeing this
hot-headed youth become exasperated and threaten to destroy everything in the
establishment if his letter were not found, the host seized a spit, his wife a
broom handle, and the servants the same sticks they had used the day before.
"My letter of recommendation!" cried d'Artagnan,
"my letter of recommendation! or, the holy blood, I will spit you all like
ortolans!"
Unfortunately, there was one circumstance which
created a powerful obstacle to the accomplishment of this threat; which was, as
we have related, that his sword had been in his first conflict broken in two,
and which he had entirely forgotten. Hence, it resulted when d'Artagnan
proceeded to draw his sword in earnest, he found himself purely and simply armed
with a stump of a sword about eight or ten inches in length, which the host had
carefully placed in the scabbard. As to the rest of the blade, the master had
slyly put that on one side to make himself a larding pin.
But this deception would probably not have
stopped our fiery young man if the host had not reflected that the reclamation
which his guest made was perfectly just.
"But, after all," said he, lowering the point
of his spit, "where is this letter?"
"Yes, where is this letter?" cried d'Artagnan.
"In the first place, I warn you that that letter is for Monsieur de Treville,
and it must be found, he will know how to find it."
His threat completed the intimidation of the
host. After the king and the cardinal, M. de Treville was the man whose name was
perhaps most frequently repeated by the military, and even by citizens. There
was, to be sure, Father Joseph, but his name was never pronounced but with a
subdued voice, such was the terror inspired by his Gray Eminence, as the
cardinal's familiar was called.
Throwing down his spit, and ordering his wife
to do the same with her broom handle, and the servants with their sticks, he set
the first example of commencing an earnest search for the lost letter.
"Does the letter contain anything valuable?"
demanded the host, after a few minutes of useless investigation.
"Zounds! I think it does indeed!" cried the
Gascon, who reckoned upon this letter for making his way at court. "It contained
my fortune!"
"Bills upon Spain?" asked the disturbed host.
"Bills upon his Majesty's private treasury,"
answered d'Artagnan, who, reckoning upon entering into the king's service in
consequence of this recommendation, believed he could make this somewhat
hazardous reply without telling of a falsehood.
"The devil!" cried the host, at his wit's end.
"But it's of no importance," continued
d'Artagnan, with natural assurance; "it's of no importance. The money is
nothing; that letter was everything. I would rather have lost a thousand
pistoles than have lost it." He would not have risked more if he had said twenty
thousand; but a certain juvenile modesty restrained him.
A ray of light all at once broke upon the mind
of the host as he was giving himself to the devil upon finding nothing.
"That letter is not lost!" cried he.
"What!" cried d'Artagnan.
"No, it has been stolen from you."
"Stolen? By whom?"
"By the gentleman who was here yesterday. He
came down into the kitchen, where your doublet was. He remained there some time
alone. I would lay a wager he has stolen it."
"Do you think so?" answered d'Artagnan, but
little convinced, as he knew better than anyone else how entirely personal the
value of this letter was, and was nothing in it likely to tempt cupidity. The
fact was that none of his servants, none of the travelers present, could have
gained anything by being possessed of this paper.
"Do you say," resumed d'Artagnan, "that you
suspect that impertinent gentleman?"
"I tell you I am sure of it," continued the
host. "When I informed him that your lordship was the protege of Monsieur de
Treville, and that you even had a letter for that illustrious gentleman, he
appeared to be very much disturbed, and asked me where that letter was, and
immediately came down into the kitchen, where he knew your doublet was."
"Then that's my thief," replied d'Artagnan. "I
will complain to Monsieur de Treville, and Monsieur de Treville will complain to
the king." He then drew two crowns majestically from his purse and gave them to
the host, who accompanied him, cap in hand, to the gate, and remounted his
yellow horse, which bore him without any further accident to the gate of St.
Antoine at Paris, where his owner sold him for three crowns, which was a very
good price, considering that d'Artagnan had ridden him hard during the last
stage. Thus the dealer to whom d'Artagnan sold him for the nine livres did not
conceal from the young man that he only gave that enormous sum for him on the
account of the originality of his color.
Thus d'Artagnan entered Paris on foot, carrying
his little packet under his arm, and walked about till he found an apartment to
be let on terms suited to the scantiness of his means. This chamber was a sort
of garret, situated in the Rue des Fossoyeurs, near the Luxembourg.
As soon as the earnest money was paid,
d'Artagnan took possession of his lodging, and passed the remainder of the day
in sewing onto his doublet and hose some ornamental braiding which his mother
had taken off an almost-new doublet of the elder M. d'Artagnan, and which she
had given her son secretly. Next he went to the Quai de Feraille to have a new
blade put to his sword, and then returned toward the Louvre, inquiring of the
first Musketeer he met for the situation of the hotel of M. de Treville, which
proved to be in the Rue du Vieux-Colombier; that is to say, in the immediate
vicinity of the chamber hired by d'Artagnan—a circumstance which appeared to
furnish a happy augury for the success of his journey.
After this, satisfied with the way in which he
had conducted himself at Meung, without remorse for the past, confident in the
present, and full of hope for the future, he retired to bed and slept the sleep
of the brave.
This sleep, provincial as it was, brought him
to nine o'clock in the morning; at which hour he rose, in order to repair to the
residence of M. de Treville, the third personage in the kingdom, in the paternal
estimation.
2 THE ANTECHAMBER OF M. DE TREVILLE
M. de Troisville, as his family was still
called in Gascony, or M. de Treville, as he has ended by styling himself in
Paris, had really commenced life as d'Artagnan now did; that is to say, without
a sou in his pocket, but with a fund of audacity, shrewdness, and intelligence
which makes the poorest Gascon gentleman often derive more in his hope from the
paternal inheritance than the richest Perigordian or Berrichan gentleman derives
in reality from his. His insolent bravery, his still more insolent success at a
time when blows poured down like hail, had borne him to the top of that
difficult ladder called Court Favor, which he had climbed four steps at a time.
He was the friend of the king, who honored
highly, as everyone knows, the memory of his father, Henry IV. The father of M.
de Treville had served him so faithfully in his wars against the league that in
default of money—a thing to which the Bearnais was accustomed all his life, and
who constantly paid his debts with that of which he never stood in need of
borrowing, that is to say, with ready wit—in default of money, we repeat, he
authorized him, after the reduction of Paris, to assume for his arms a golden
lion passant upon gules, with the motto FIDELIS ET FORTIS. This was a great
matter in the way of honor, but very little in the way of wealth; so that when
the illustrious companion of the great Henry died, the only inheritance he was
able to leave his son was his sword and his motto. Thanks to this double gift
and the spotless name that accompanied it, M. de Treville was admitted into the
household of the young prince where he made such good use of his sword, and was
so faithful to his motto, that Louis XIII, one of the good blades of his
kingdom, was accustomed to say that if he had a friend who was about to fight,
he would advise him to choose as a second, himself first, and Treville next—or
even, perhaps, before himself.
Thus Louis XIII had a real liking for Treville—a
royal liking, a self-interested liking, it is true, but still a liking. At that
unhappy period it was an important consideration to be surrounded by such men as
Treville. Many might take for their device the epithet STRONG, which formed the
second part of his motto, but very few gentlemen could lay claim to the
FAITHFUL, which constituted the first. Treville was one of these latter. His was
one of those rare organizations, endowed with an obedient intelligence like that
of the dog; with a blind valor, a quick eye, and a prompt hand; to whom sight
appeared only to be given to see if the king were dissatisfied with anyone, and
the hand to strike this displeasing personage, whether a Besme, a Maurevers, a
Poltiot de Mere, or a Vitry. In short, up to this period nothing had been
wanting to Treville but opportunity; but he was ever on the watch for it, and he
faithfully promised himself that he would not fail to seize it by its three
hairs whenever it came within reach of his hand. At last Louis XIII made
Treville the captain of his Musketeers, who were to Louis XIII in devotedness,
or rather in fanaticism, what his Ordinaries had been to Henry III, and his
Scotch Guard to Louis XI.
On his part, the cardinal was not behind the
king in this respect. When he saw the formidable and chosen body with which
Louis XIII had surrounded himself, this second, or rather this first king of
France, became desirous that he, too, should have his guard. He had his
Musketeers therefore, as Louis XIII had his, and these two powerful rivals vied
with each other in procuring, not only from all the provinces of France, but
even from all foreign states, the most celebrated swordsmen. It was not uncommon
for Richelieu and Louis XIII to dispute over their evening game of chess upon
the merits of their servants. Each boasted the bearing and the courage of his
own people. While exclaiming loudly against duels and brawls, they excited them
secretly to quarrel, deriving an immoderate satisfaction or genuine regret from
the success or defeat of their own combatants. We learn this from the memoirs of
a man who was concerned in some few of these defeats and in many of these
victories.
Treville had grasped the weak side of his
master; and it was to this address that he owed the long and constant favor of a
king who has not left the reputation behind him of being very faithful in his
friendships. He paraded his Musketeers before the Cardinal Armand Duplessis with
an insolent air which made the gray moustache of his Eminence curl with ire.
Treville understood admirably the war method of that period, in which he who
could not live at the expense of the enemy must live at the expense of his
compatriots. His soldiers formed a legion of devil-may-care fellows, perfectly
undisciplined toward all but himself.
Loose, half-drunk, imposing, the king's
Musketeers, or rather M. de Treville's, spread themselves about in the cabarets,
in the public walks, and the public sports, shouting, twisting their mustaches,
clanking their swords, and taking great pleasure in annoying the Guards of the
cardinal whenever they could fall in with them; then drawing in the open
streets, as if it were the best of all possible sports; sometimes killed, but
sure in that case to be both wept and avenged; often killing others, but then
certain of not rotting in prison, M. de Treville being there to claim them. Thus
M. de Treville was praised to the highest note by these men, who adored him, and
who, ruffians as they were, trembled before him like scholars before their
master, obedient to his least word, and ready to sacrifice themselves to wash
out the smallest insult.
M. de Treville employed this powerful weapon
for the king, in the first place, and the friends of the king—and then for
himself and his own friends. For the rest, in the memoirs of this period, which
has left so many memoirs, one does not find this worthy gentleman blamed even by
his enemies; and he had many such among men of the pen as well as among men of
the sword. In no instance, let us say, was this worthy gentleman accused of
deriving personal advantage from the cooperation of his minions. Endowed with a
rare genius for intrigue which rendered him the equal of the ablest intriguers,
he remained an honest man. Still further, in spite of sword thrusts which
weaken, and painful exercises which fatigue, he had become one of the most
gallant frequenters of revels, one of the most insinuating lady's men, one of
the softest whisperers of interesting nothings of his day; the BONNES FORTUNES
of de Treville were talked of as those of M. de Bassompierre had been talked of
twenty years before, and that was not saying a little. The captain of the
Musketeers was therefore admired, feared, and loved; and this constitutes the
zenith of human fortune.
Louis XIV absorbed all the smaller stars of his
court in his own vast radiance; but his father, a sun PLURIBUS IMPAR, left his
personal splendor to each of his favorites, his individual value to each of his
courtiers. In addition to the leeves of the king and the cardinal, there might
be reckoned in Paris at that time more than two hundred smaller but still
noteworthy leeves. Among these two hundred leeves, that of Treville was one of
the most sought.
The court of his hotel, situated in the Rue du
Vieux-Colombier, resembled a camp from by six o'clock in the morning in summer
and eight o'clock in winter. From fifty to sixty Musketeers, who appeared to
replace one another in order always to present an imposing number, paraded
constantly, armed to the teeth and ready for anything. On one of those immense
staircases, upon whose space modern civilization would build a whole house,
ascended and descended the office seekers of Paris, who ran after any sort of
favor—gentlemen from the provinces anxious to be enrolled, and servants in all
sorts of liveries, bringing and carrying messages between their masters and M.
de Treville. In the antechamber, upon long circular benches, reposed the elect;
that is to say, those who were called. In this apartment a continued buzzing
prevailed from morning till night, while M. de Treville, in his office
contiguous to this antechamber, received visits, listened to complaints, gave
his orders, and like the king in his balcony at the Louvre, had only to place
himself at the window to review both his men and arms.
The day on which d'Artagnan presented himself
the assemblage was imposing, particularly for a provincial just arriving from
his province. It is true that this provincial was a Gascon; and that,
particularly at this period, the compatriots of d'Artagnan had the reputation of
not being easily intimidated. When he had once passed the massive door covered
with long square-headed nails, he fell into the midst of a troop of swordsmen,
who crossed one another in their passage, calling out, quarreling, and playing
tricks one with another. In order to make one's way amid these turbulent and
conflicting waves, it was necessary to be an officer, a great noble, or a pretty
woman.
It was, then, into the midst of this tumult and
disorder that our young man advanced with a beating heat, ranging his long
rapier up his lanky leg, and keeping one hand on the edge of his cap, with that
half-smile of the embarrassed a provincial who wishes to put on a good face.
When he had passed one group he began to breathe more freely; but he could not
help observing that they turned round to look at him, and for the first time in
his life d'Artagnan, who had till that day entertained a very good opinion of
himself, felt ridiculous.
Arrived at the staircase, it was still worse.
There were four Musketeers on the bottom steps, amusing themselves with the
following exercise, while ten or twelve of their comrades waited upon the
landing place to take their turn in the sport.
One of them, stationed upon the top stair,
naked sword in hand, prevented, or at least endeavored to prevent, the three
others from ascending.
These three others fenced against him with
their agile swords.
D'Artagnan at first took these weapons for
foils, and believed them to be buttoned; but he soon perceived by certain
scratches that every weapon was pointed and sharpened, and that at each of these
scratches not only the spectators, but even the actors themselves, laughed like
so many madmen.
He who at the moment occupied the upper step
kept his adversaries marvelously in check. A circle was formed around them. The
conditions required that at every hit the man touched should quit the game,
yielding his turn for the benefit of the adversary who had hit him. In five
minutes three were slightly wounded, one on the hand, another on the ear, by the
defender of the stair, who himself remained intact—a piece of skill which was
worth to him, according to the rules agreed upon, three turns of favor.
However difficult it might be, or rather as he
pretended it was, to astonish our young traveler, this pastime really astonished
him. He had seen in his province—that land in which heads become so easily
heated—a few of the preliminaries of duels; but the daring of these four fencers
appeared to him the strongest he had ever heard of even in Gascony. He believed
himself transported into that famous country of giants into which Gulliver
afterward went and was so frightened; and yet he had not gained the goal, for
there were still the landing place and the antechamber.
On the landing they were no longer fighting,
but amused themselves with stories about women, and in the antechamber, with
stories about the court. On the landing d'Artagnan blushed; in the antechamber
he trembled. His warm and fickle imagination, which in Gascony had rendered
formidable to young chambermaids, and even sometimes their mistresses, had never
dreamed, even in moments of delirium, of half the amorous wonders or a quarter
of the feats of gallantry which were here set forth in connection with names the
best known and with details the least concealed. But if his morals were shocked
on the landing, his respect for the cardinal was scandalized in the antechamber.
There, to his great astonishment, d'Artagnan heard the policy which made all
Europe tremble criticized aloud and openly, as well as the private life of the
cardinal, which so many great nobles had been punished for trying to pry into.
That great man who was so revered by d'Artagnan the elder served as an object of
ridicule to the Musketeers of Treville, who cracked their jokes upon his bandy
legs and his crooked back. Some sang ballads about Mme. d'Aguillon, his
mistress, and Mme. Cambalet, his niece; while others formed parties and plans to
annoy the pages and guards of the cardinal duke—all things which appeared to
d'Artagnan monstrous impossibilities.
Nevertheless, when the name of the king was now
and then uttered unthinkingly amid all these cardinal jests, a sort of gag
seemed to close for a moment on all these jeering mouths. They looked
hesitatingly around them, and appeared to doubt the thickness of the partition
between them and the office of M. de Treville; but a fresh allusion soon brought
back the conversation to his Eminence, and then the laughter recovered its
loudness and the light was not withheld from any of his actions.
"Certes, these fellows will all either be
imprisoned or hanged," thought the terrified d'Artagnan, "and I, no doubt, with
them; for from the moment I have either listened to or heard them, I shall be
held as an accomplice. What would my good father say, who so strongly pointed
out to me the respect due to the cardinal, if he knew I was in the society of
such pagans?"
We have no need, therefore, to say that
d'Artagnan dared not join in the conversation, only he looked with all his eyes
and listened with all his ears, stretching his five senses so as to lose
nothing; and despite his confidence on the paternal admonitions, he felt himself
carried by his tastes and led by his instincts to praise rather than to blame
the unheard-of things which were taking place.
Although he was a perfect stranger in the court
of M. de Treville's courtiers, and this his first appearance in that place, he
was at length noticed, and somebody came and asked him what he wanted. At this
demand d'Artagnan gave his name very modestly, emphasized the title of
compatriot, and begged the servant who had put the question to him to request a
moment's audience of M. de Treville—a request which the other, with an air of
protection, promised to transmit in due season.
D'Artagnan, a little recovered from his first
surprise, had now leisure to study costumes and physiognomy.
The center of the most animated group was a
Musketeer of great height and haughty countenance, dressed in a costume so
peculiar as to attract general attention. He did not wear the uniform
cloak—which was not obligatory at that epoch of less liberty but more
independence—but a cerulean-blue doublet, a little faded and worn, and over this
a magnificent baldric, worked in gold, which shone like water ripples in the
sun. A long cloak of crimson velvet fell in graceful folds from his shoulders,
disclosing in front the splendid baldric, from which was suspended a gigantic
rapier. This Musketeer had just come off guard, complained of having a cold, and
coughed from time to time affectedly. It was for this reason, as he said to
those around him, that he had put on his cloak; and while he spoke with a lofty
air and twisted his mustache disdainfully, all admired his embroidered baldric,
and d'Artagnan more than anyone.
"What would you have?" said the Musketeer.
"This fashion is coming in. It is a folly, I admit, but still it is the fashion.
Besides, one must lay out one's inheritance somehow."
"Ah, Porthos!" cried one of his companions,
"don't try to make us believe you obtained that baldric by paternal generosity.
It was given to you by that veiled lady I met you with the other Sunday, near
the gate St. Honor."
"No, upon honor and by the faith of a
gentleman, I bought it with the contents of my own purse," answered he whom they
designated by the name Porthos.
"Yes; about in the same manner," said another
Musketeer, "that I bought this new purse with what my mistress put into the old
one."
"It's true, though," said Porthos; "and the
proof is that I paid twelve pistoles for it."
The wonder was increased, though the doubt
continued to exist.
"Is it not true, Aramis?" said Porthos, turning
toward another Musketeer.
This other Musketeer formed a perfect contrast
to his interrogator, who had just designated him by the name of Aramis. He was a
stout man, of about two- or three-and-twenty, with an open, ingenuous
countenance, a black, mild eye, and cheeks rosy and downy as an autumn peach.
His delicate mustache marked a perfectly straight line upon his upper lip; he
appeared to dread to lower his hands lest their veins should swell, and he
pinched the tips of his ears from time to time to preserve their delicate pink
transparency. Habitually he spoke little and slowly, bowed frequently, laughed
without noise, showing his teeth, which were fine and of which, as the rest of
his person, he appeared to take great care. He answered the appeal of his friend
by an affirmative nod of the head.
This affirmation appeared to dispel all doubts
with regard to the baldric. They continued to admire it, but said no more about
it; and with a rapid change of thought, the conversation passed suddenly to
another subject.
"What do you think of the story Chalais's
esquire relates?" asked another Musketeer, without addressing anyone in
particular, but on the contrary speaking to everybody.
"And what does he say?" asked Porthos, in a
self-sufficient tone.
"He relates that he met at Brussels Rochefort,
the AME DAMNEE of the cardinal disguised as a Capuchin, and that this cursed
Rochefort, thanks to his disguise, had tricked Monsieur de Laigues, like a ninny
as he is."
"A ninny, indeed!" said Porthos; "but is the
matter certain?"
"I had it from Aramis," replied the Musketeer.
"Indeed?"
"Why, you knew it, Porthos," said Aramis. "I
told you of it yesterday. Let us say no more about it."
"Say no more about it? That's YOUR opinion!"
replied Porthos.
"Say no more about it! PESTE! You come to your
conclusions quickly. What! The cardinal sets a spy upon a gentleman, has his
letters stolen from him by means of a traitor, a brigand, a rascal-has, with the
help of this spy and thanks to this correspondence, Chalais's throat cut, under
the stupid pretext that he wanted to kill the king and marry Monsieur to the
queen! Nobody knew a word of this enigma. You unraveled it yesterday to the
great satisfaction of all; and while we are still gaping with wonder at the
news, you come and tell us today, 'Let us say no more about it.'"
"Well, then, let us talk about it, since you
desire it," replied Aramis, patiently.
"This Rochefort," cried Porthos, "if I were the
esquire of poor Chalais, should pass a minute or two very uncomfortably with
me."
"And you—you would pass rather a sad
quarter-hour with the Red Duke," replied Aramis.
"Oh, the Red Duke! Bravo! Bravo! The Red Duke!"
cried Porthos, clapping his hands and nodding his head. "The Red Duke is
capital. I'll circulate that saying, be assured, my dear fellow. Who says this
Aramis is not a wit? What a misfortune it is you did not follow your first
vocation; what a delicious abbe you would have made!"
"Oh, it's only a temporary postponement,"
replied Aramis; "I shall be one someday. You very well know, Porthos, that I
continue to study theology for that purpose."
"He will be one, as he says," cried Porthos;
"he will be one, sooner or later."
"Sooner." said Aramis.
"He only waits for one thing to determine him
to resume his cassock, which hangs behind his uniform," said another Musketeer.
"What is he waiting for?" asked another.
"Only till the queen has given an heir to the
crown of France."
"No jesting upon that subject, gentlemen," said
Porthos; "thank God the queen is still of an age to give one!"
"They say that Monsieur de Buckingham is in
France," replied Aramis, with a significant smile which gave to this sentence,
apparently so simple, a tolerably scandalous meaning.
"Aramis, my good friend, this time you are
wrong," interrupted Porthos. "Your wit is always leading you beyond bounds; if
Monsieur de Treville heard you, you would repent of speaking thus."
"Are you going to give me a lesson, Porthos?"
cried Aramis, from whose usually mild eye a flash passed like lightning.
"My dear fellow, be a Musketeer or an abbe. Be
one or the other, but not both," replied Porthos. "You know what Athos told you
the other day; you eat at everybody's mess. Ah, don't be angry, I beg of you,
that would be useless; you know what is agreed upon between you, Athos and me.
You go to Madame d'Aguillon's, and you pay your court to her; you go to Madame
de Bois-Tracy's, the cousin of Madame de Chevreuse, and you pass for being far
advanced in the good graces of that lady. Oh, good Lord! Don't trouble yourself
to reveal your good luck; no one asks for your secret-all the world knows your
discretion. But since you possess that virtue, why the devil don't you make use
of it with respect to her Majesty? Let whoever likes talk of the king and the
cardinal, and how he likes; but the queen is sacred, and if anyone speaks of
her, let it be respectfully."
"Porthos, you are as vain as Narcissus; I
plainly tell you so," replied Aramis. "You know I hate moralizing, except when
it is done by Athos. As to you, good sir, you wear too magnificent a baldric to
be strong on that head. I will be an abbe if it suits me. In the meanwhile I am
a Musketeer; in that quality I say what I please, and at this moment it pleases
me to say that you weary me."
"Aramis!"
"Porthos!"
"Gentlemen! Gentlemen!" cried the surrounding
group.
"Monsieur de Treville awaits Monsieur
d'Artagnan," cried a servant, throwing open the door of the cabinet.
At this announcement, during which the door
remained open, everyone became mute, and amid the general silence the young man
crossed part of the length of the antechamber, and entered the apartment of the
captain of the Musketeers, congratulating himself with all his heart at having
so narrowly escaped the end of this strange quarrel.
3 THE AUDIENCE
M. de Treville was at the moment in rather
ill-humor, nevertheless he saluted the young man politely, who bowed to the very
ground; and he smiled on receiving d'Artagnan's response, the Bearnese accent of
which recalled to him at the same time his youth and his country—a double
remembrance which makes a man smile at all ages; but stepping toward the
antechamber and making a sign to d'Artagnan with his hand, as if to ask his
permission to finish with others before he began with him, he called three
times, with a louder voice at each time, so that he ran through the intervening
tones between the imperative accent and the angry accent.
"Athos! Porthos! Aramis!"
The two Musketeers with whom we have already
made acquaintance, and who answered to the last of these three names,
immediately quitted the group of which they had formed a part, and advanced
toward the cabinet, the door of which closed after them as soon as they had
entered. Their appearance, although it was not quite at ease, excited by its
carelessness, at once full of dignity and submission, the admiration of
d'Artagnan, who beheld in these two men demigods, and in their leader an
Olympian Jupiter, armed with all his thunders.
When the two Musketeers had entered; when the
door was closed behind them; when the buzzing murmur of the antechamber, to
which the summons which had been made had doubtless furnished fresh food, had
recommenced; when M. de Treville had three or four times paced in silence, and
with a frowning brow, the whole length of his cabinet, passing each time before
Porthos and Aramis, who were as upright and silent as if on parade—he stopped
all at once full in front of them, and covering them from head to foot with an
angry look, "Do you know what the king said to me," cried he, "and that no
longer ago than yesterday evening—do you know, gentlemen?"
"No," replied the two Musketeers, after a
moment's silence, "no, sir, we do not."
"But I hope that you will do us the honor to
tell us," added Aramis, in his politest tone and with his most graceful bow.
"He told me that he should henceforth recruit
his Musketeers from among the Guards of Monsieur the Cardinal."
"The Guards of the cardinal! And why so?" asked
Porthos, warmly.
"Because he plainly perceives that his
piquette* stands in need of being enlivened by a mixture of good wine."
*A watered liquor, made from the second
pressing of the grape.
The two Musketeers reddened to the whites of
their eyes. d'Artagnan did not know where he was, and wished himself a hundred
feet underground.
"Yes, yes," continued M. de Treville, growing
warmer as he spoke, "and his majesty was right; for, upon my honor, it is true
that the Musketeers make but a miserable figure at court. The cardinal related
yesterday while playing with the king, with an air of condolence very
displeasing to me, that the day before yesterday those DAMNED MUSKETEERS, those
DAREDEVILS—he dwelt upon those words with an ironical tone still more
displeasing to me—those BRAGGARTS, added he, glancing at me with his tiger-cat's
eye, had made a riot in the Rue Ferou in a cabaret, and that a party of his
Guards (I thought he was going to laugh in my face) had been forced to arrest
the rioters! MORBLEU! You must know something about it. Arrest Musketeers! You
were among them—you were! Don't deny it; you were recognized, and the cardinal
named you. But it's all my fault; yes, it's all my fault, because it is myself
who selects my men. You, Aramis, why the devil did you ask me for a uniform when
you would have been so much better in a cassock? And you, Porthos, do you only
wear such a fine golden baldric to suspend a sword of straw from it? And Athos—I
don't see Athos. Where is he?"
"Ill—"
"Very ill, say you? And of what malady?"
"It is feared that it may be the smallpox,
sir," replied Porthos, desirous of taking his turn in the conversation; "and
what is serious is that it will certainly spoil his face."
"The smallpox! That's a great story to tell me,
Porthos! Sick of the smallpox at his age! No, no; but wounded without doubt,
killed, perhaps. Ah, if I knew! S'blood! Messieurs Musketeers, I will not have
this haunting of bad places, this quarreling in the streets, this swordplay at
the crossways; and above all, I will not have occasion given for the cardinal's
Guards, who are brave, quiet, skillful men who never put themselves in a
position to be arrested, and who, besides, never allow themselves to be
arrested, to laugh at you! I am sure of it—they would prefer dying on the spot
to being arrested or taking back a step. To save yourselves, to scamper away, to
flee—that is good for the king's Musketeers!"
Porthos and Aramis trembled with rage. They
could willingly have strangled M. de Treville, if, at the bottom of all this,
they had not felt it was the great love he bore them which made him speak thus.
They stamped upon the carpet with their feet; they bit their lips till the blood
came, and grasped the hilts of their swords with all their might. All without
had heard, as we have said, Athos, Porthos, and Aramis called, and had guessed,
from M. de Treville's tone of voice, that he was very angry about something. Ten
curious heads were glued to the tapestry and became pale with fury; for their
ears, closely applied to the door, did not lose a syllable of what he said,
while their mouths repeated as he went on, the insulting expressions of the
captain to all the people in the antechamber. In an instant, from the door of
the cabinet to the street gate, the whole hotel was boiling.
"Ah! The king's Musketeers are arrested by the
Guards of the cardinal, are they?" continued M. de Treville, as furious at heart
as his soldiers, but emphasizing his words and plunging them, one by one, so to
say, like so many blows of a stiletto, into the bosoms of his auditors. "What!
Six of his Eminence's Guards arrest six of his Majesty's Musketeers! MORBLEU! My
part is taken! I will go straight to the louvre; I will give in my resignation
as captain of the king's Musketeers to take a lieutenancy in the cardinal's
Guards, and if he refuses me, MORBLEU! I will turn abbe."
At these words, the murmur without became an
explosion; nothing was to be heard but oaths and blasphemies. The MORBLEUS, the
SANG DIEUS, the MORTS TOUTS LES DIABLES, crossed one another in the air.
D'Artagnan looked for some tapestry behind which he might hide himself, and felt
an immense inclination to crawl under the table.
"Well, my Captain," said Porthos, quite beside
himself, "the truth is that we were six against six. But we were not captured by
fair means; and before we had time to draw our swords, two of our party were
dead, and Athos, grievously wounded, was very little better. For you know Athos.
Well, Captain, he endeavored twice to get up, and fell again twice. And we did
not surrender—no! They dragged us away by force. On the way we escaped. As for
Athos, they believed him to be dead, and left him very quiet on the field of
battle, not thinking it worth the trouble to carry him away. That's the whole
story. What the devil, Captain, one cannot win all one's battles! The great
Pompey lost that of Pharsalia; and Francis the First, who was, as I have heard
say, as good as other folks, nevertheless lost the Battle of Pavia."
"And I have the honor of assuring you that I
killed one of them with his own sword," said Aramis; "for mine was broken at the
first parry. Killed him, or poniarded him, sir, as is most agreeable to you."
"I did not know that," replied M. de Treville,
in a somewhat softened tone. "The cardinal exaggerated, as I perceive."
"But pray, sir," continued Aramis, who, seeing
his captain become appeased, ventured to risk a prayer, "do not say that Athos
is wounded. He would be in despair if that should come to the ears of the king;
and as the wound is very serious, seeing that after crossing the shoulder it
penetrates into the chest, it is to be feared—"
At this instant the tapestry was raised and a
noble and handsome head, but frightfully pale, appeared under the fringe.
"Athos!" cried the two Musketeers.
"Athos!" repeated M. de Treville himself.
"You have sent for me, sir," said Athos to M.
de Treville, in a feeble yet perfectly calm voice, "you have sent for me, as my
comrades inform me, and I have hastened to receive your orders. I am here; what
do you want with me?"
And at these words, the Musketeer, in
irreproachable costume, belted as usual, with a tolerably firm step, entered the
cabinet. M. de Treville, moved to the bottom of his heart by this proof of
courage, sprang toward him.
"I was about to say to these gentlemen," added
he, "that I forbid my Musketeers to expose their lives needlessly; for brave men
are very dear to the king, and the king knows that his Musketeers are the
bravest on the earth. Your hand, Athos!"
And without waiting for the answer of the
newcomer to this proof of affection, M. de Treville seized his right hand and
pressed it with all his might, without perceiving that Athos, whatever might be
his self-command, allowed a slight murmur of pain to escape him, and if
possible, grew paler than he was before.
The door had remained open, so strong was the
excitement produced by the arrival of Athos, whose wound, though kept as a
secret, was known to all. A burst of satisfaction hailed the last words of the
captain; and two or three heads, carried away by the enthusiasm of the moment,
appeared through the openings of the tapestry. M. de Treville was about to
reprehend this breach of the rules of etiquette, when he felt the hand of Athos,
who had rallied all his energies to contend against pain, at length overcome by
it, fell upon the floor as if he were dead.
"A surgeon!" cried M. de Treville, "mine! The
king's! The best! A surgeon! Or, s'blood, my brave Athos will die!"
At the cries of M. de Treville, the whole
assemblage rushed into the cabinet, he not thinking to shut the door against
anyone, and all crowded round the wounded man. But all this eager attention
might have been useless if the doctor so loudly called for had not chanced to be
in the hotel. He pushed through the crowd, approached Athos, still insensible,
and as all this noise and commotion inconvenienced him greatly, he required, as
the first and most urgent thing, that the Musketeer should be carried into an
adjoining chamber. Immediately M. de Treville opened and pointed the way to
Porthos and Aramis, who bore their comrade in their arms. Behind this group
walked the surgeon; and behind the surgeon the door closed.
The cabinet of M. de Treville, generally held
so sacred, became in an instant the annex of the antechamber. Everyone spoke,
harangued, and vociferated, swearing, cursing, and consigning the cardinal and
his Guards to all the devils.
An instant after, Porthos and Aramis
re-entered, the surgeon and M. de Treville alone remaining with the wounded.
At length, M. de Treville himself returned. The
injured man had recovered his senses. The surgeon declared that the situation of
the Musketeer had nothing in it to render his friends uneasy, his weakness
having been purely and simply caused by loss of blood.
Then M. de Treville made a sign with his hand,
and all retired except d'Artagnan, who did not forget that he had an audience,
and with the tenacity of a Gascon remained in his place.
When all had gone out and the door was closed,
M. de Treville, on turning round, found himself alone with the young man. The
event which had occurred had in some degree broken the thread of his ideas. He
inquired what was the will of his persevering visitor. d'Artagnan then repeated
his name, and in an instant recovering all his remembrances of the present and
the past, M. de Treville grasped the situation.
"Pardon me," said he, smiling, "pardon me my
dear compatriot, but I had wholly forgotten you. But what help is there for it!
A captain is nothing but a father of a family, charged with even a greater
responsibility than the father of an ordinary family. Soldiers are big children;
but as I maintain that the orders of the king, and more particularly the orders
of the cardinal, should be executed—"
D'Artagnan could not restrain a smile. By this
smile M. de Treville judged that he had not to deal with a fool, and changing
the conversation, came straight to the point.
"I respected your father very much," said he.
"What can I do for the son? Tell me quickly; my time is not my own."
"Monsieur," said d'Artagnan, "on quitting
Tarbes and coming hither, it was my intention to request of you, in remembrance
of the friendship which you have not forgotten, the uniform of a Musketeer; but
after all that I have seen during the last two hours, I comprehend that such a
favor is enormous, and tremble lest I should not merit it."
"It is indeed a favor, young man," replied M.
de Treville, "but it may not be so far beyond your hopes as you believe, or
rather as you appear to believe. But his majesty's decision is always necessary;
and I inform you with regret that no one becomes a Musketeer without the
preliminary ordeal of several campaigns, certain brilliant actions, or a service
of two years in some other regiment less favored than ours."
D'Artagnan bowed without replying, feeling his
desire to don the Musketeer's uniform vastly increased by the great difficulties
which preceded the attainment of it.
"But," continued M. de Treville, fixing upon
his compatriot a look so piercing that it might be said he wished to read the
thoughts of his heart, "on account of my old companion, your father, as I have
said, I will do something for you, young man. Our recruits from Bearn are not
generally very rich, and I have no reason to think matters have much changed in
this respect since I left the province. I dare say you have not brought too
large a stock of money with you?"
D'Artagnan drew himself up with a proud air
which plainly said, "I ask alms of no man."
"Oh, that's very well, young man," continued M.
de Treville, "that's all very well. I know these airs; I myself came to Paris
with four crowns in my purse, and would have fought with anyone who dared to
tell me I was not in a condition to purchase the Louvre."
D'Artagnan's bearing became still more
imposing. Thanks to the sale of his horse, he commenced his career with four
more crowns than M. de Treville possessed at the commencement of his.
"You ought, I say, then, to husband the means
you have, however large the sum may be; but you ought also to endeavor to
perfect yourself in the exercises becoming a gentleman. I will write a letter
today to the Director of the Royal Academy, and tomorrow he will admit you
without any expense to yourself. Do not refuse this little service. Our
best-born and richest gentlemen sometimes solicit it without being able to
obtain it. You will learn horsemanship, swordsmanship in all its branches, and
dancing. You will make some desirable acquaintances; and from time to time you
can call upon me, just to tell me how you are getting on, and to say whether I
can be of further service to you."
D'Artagnan, stranger as he was to all the
manners of a court, could not but perceive a little coldness in this reception.
"Alas, sir," said he, "I cannot but perceive
how sadly I miss the letter of introduction which my father gave me to present
to you."
"I certainly am surprised," replied M. de
Treville, "that you should undertake so long a journey without that necessary
passport, the sole resource of us poor Bearnese."
"I had one, sir, and, thank God, such as I
could wish," cried d'Artagnan; "but it was perfidiously stolen from me."
He then related the adventure of Meung,
described the unknown gentleman with the greatest minuteness, and all with a
warmth and truthfulness that delighted M. de Treville.
"This is all very strange," said M. de
Treville, after meditating a minute; "you mentioned my name, then, aloud?"
"Yes, sir, I certainly committed that
imprudence; but why should I have done otherwise? A name like yours must be as a
buckler to me on my way. Judge if I should not put myself under its protection."
Flattery was at that period very current, and
M. de Treville loved incense as well as a king, or even a cardinal. He could not
refrain from a smile of visible satisfaction; but this smile soon disappeared,
and returning to the adventure of Meung, "Tell me," continued he, "had not this
gentlemen a slight scar on his cheek?"
"Yes, such a one as would be made by the
grazing of a ball."
"Was he not a fine-looking man?"
"Yes."
"Of lofty stature."
"Yes."
"Of complexion and brown hair?"
"Yes, yes, that is he; how is it, sir, that you
are acquainted with this man? If I ever find him again—and I will find him, I
swear, were it in hell!"
"He was waiting for a woman," continued
Treville.
"He departed immediately after having conversed
for a minute with her whom he awaited."
"You know not the subject of their
conversation?"
"He gave her a box, told her not to open it
except in London."
"Was this woman English?"
"He called her Milady."
"It is he; it must be he!" murmured Treville.
"I believed him still at Brussels."
"Oh, sir, if you know who this man is," cried
d'Artagnan, "tell me who he is, and whence he is. I will then release you from
all your promises—even that of procuring my admission into the Musketeers; for
before everything, I wish to avenge myself."
"Beware, young man!" cried Treville. "If you
see him coming on one side of the street, pass by on the other. Do not cast
yourself against such a rock; he would break you like glass."
"That will not prevent me," replied d'Artagnan,
"if ever I find him."
"In the meantime," said Treville, "seek him
not—if I have a right to advise you."
All at once the captain stopped, as if struck
by a sudden suspicion. This great hatred which the young traveler manifested so
loudly for this man, who—a rather improbable thing—had stolen his father's
letter from him—was there not some perfidy concealed under this hatred? Might
not this young man be sent by his Eminence? Might he not have come for the
purpose of laying a snare for him? This pretended d'Artagnan—was he not an
emissary of the cardinal, whom the cardinal sought to introduce into Treville's
house, to place near him, to win his confidence, and afterward to ruin him as
had been done in a thousand other instances? He fixed his eyes upon d'Artagnan
even more earnestly than before. He was moderately reassured however, by the
aspect of that countenance, full of astute intelligence and affected humility.
"I know he is a Gascon," reflected he, "but he may be one for the cardinal as
well as for me. Let us try him."
"My friend," said he, slowly, "I wish, as the
son of an ancient friend—for I consider this story of the lost letter perfectly
true—I wish, I say, in order to repair the coldness you may have remarked in my
reception of you, to discover to you the secrets of our policy. The king and the
cardinal are the best of friends; their apparent bickerings are only feints to
deceive fools. I am not willing that a compatriot, a handsome cavalier, a brave
youth, quite fit to make his way, should become the dupe of all these artifices
and fall into the snare after the example of so many others who have been ruined
by it. Be assured that I am devoted to both these all-powerful masters, and that
my earnest endeavors have no other aim than the service of the king, and also
the cardinal—one of the most illustrious geniuses that France has ever produced.
"Now, young man, regulate your conduct
accordingly; and if you entertain, whether from your family, your relations, or
even from your instincts, any of these enmities which we see constantly breaking
out against the cardinal, bid me adieu and let us separate. I will aid you in
many ways, but without attaching you to my person. I hope that my frankness at
least will make you my friend; for you are the only young man to whom I have
hitherto spoken as I have done to you."
Treville said to himself: "If the cardinal has
set this young fox upon me, he will certainly not have failed—he, who knows how
bitterly I execrate him—to tell his spy that the best means of making his court
to me is to rail at him. Therefore, in spite of all my protestations, if it be
as I suspect, my cunning gossip will assure me that he holds his Eminence in
horror."
It, however, proved otherwise. D'Artagnan
answered, with the greatest simplicity: "I came to Paris with exactly such
intentions. My father advised me to stoop to nobody but the king, the cardinal,
and yourself—whom he considered the first three personages in France."
D'Artagnan added M. de Treville to the others,
as may be perceived; but he thought this addition would do no harm.
"I have the greatest veneration for the
cardinal," continued he, "and the most profound respect for his actions. So much
the better for me, sir, if you speak to me, as you say, with frankness—for then
you will do me the honor to esteem the resemblance of our opinions; but if you
have entertained any doubt, as naturally you may, I feel that I am ruining
myself by speaking the truth. But I still trust you will not esteem me the less
for it, and that is my object beyond all others."
M. de Treville was surprised to the greatest
degree. So much penetration, so much frankness, created admiration, but did not
entirely remove his suspicions. The more this young man was superior to others,
the more he was to be dreaded if he meant to deceive him; "You are an honest
youth; but at the present moment I can only do for you that which I just now
offered. My hotel will be always open to you. Hereafter, being able to ask for
me at all hours, and consequently to take advantage of all opportunities, you
will probably obtain that which you desire."
"That is to say," replied d'Artagnan, "that you
will wait until I have proved myself worthy of it. Well, be assured," added he,
with the familiarity of a Gascon, "you shall not wait long." And he bowed in
order to retire, and as if he considered the future in his own hands.
"But wait a minute," said M. de Treville,
stopping him. "I promised you a letter for the director of the Academy. Are you
too proud to accept it, young gentleman?"
"No, sir," said d'Artagnan; "and I will guard
it so carefully that I will be sworn it shall arrive at its address, and woe be
to him who shall attempt to take it from me!"
M. de Treville smiled at this flourish; and
leaving his young man compatriot in the embrasure of the window, where they had
talked together, he seated himself at a table in order to write the promised
letter of recommendation. While he was doing this, d'Artagnan, having no better
employment, amused himself with beating a march upon the window and with looking
at the Musketeers, who went away, one after another, following them with his
eyes until they disappeared.
M. de Treville, after having written the
letter, sealed it, and rising, approached the young man in order to give it to
him. But at the very moment when d'Artagnan stretched out his hand to receive
it, M. de Treville was highly astonished to see his protege make a sudden
spring, become crimson with passion, and rush from the cabinet crying, "S'blood,
he shall not escape me this time!"
"And who?" asked M. de Treville.
"He, my thief!" replied d'Artagnan. "Ah, the
traitor!" and he disappeared.
"The devil take the madman!" murmured M. de
Treville, "unless," added he, "this is a cunning mode of escaping, seeing that
he had failed in his purpose!"
4 THE SHOULDER OF ATHOS, THE BALDRIC OF
PORTHOS AND THE HANDKERCHIEF OF ARAMIS
D'Artagnan, in a state of fury, crossed the
antechamber at three bounds, and was darting toward the stairs, which he
reckoned upon descending four at a time, when, in his heedless course, he ran
head foremost against a Musketeer who was coming out of one of M. de Treville's
private rooms, and striking his shoulder violently, made him utter a cry, or
rather a howl.
"Excuse me," said d'Artagnan, endeavoring to
resume his course, "excuse me, but I am in a hurry."
Scarcely had he descended the first stair, when
a hand of iron seized him by the belt and stopped him.
"You are in a hurry?" said the Musketeer, as
pale as a sheet. "Under that pretense you run against me! You say. 'Excuse me,'
and you believe that is sufficient? Not at all my young man. Do you fancy
because you have heard Monsieur de Treville speak to us a little cavalierly
today that other people are to treat us as he speaks to us? Undeceive yourself,
comrade, you are not Monsieur de Treville."
"My faith!" replied d'Artagnan, recognizing
Athos, who, after the dressing performed by the doctor, was returning to his own
apartment. "I did not do it intentionally, and not doing it intentionally, I
said 'Excuse me.' It appears to me that this is quite enough. I repeat to you,
however, and this time on my word of honor—I think perhaps too often—that I am
in haste, great haste. Leave your hold, then, I beg of you, and let me go where
my business calls me."
"Monsieur," said Athos, letting him go, "you
are not polite; it is easy to perceive that you come from a distance."
D'Artagnan had already strode down three or
four stairs, but at Athos's last remark he stopped short.
"MORBLEU, monsieur!" said he, "however far I
may come, it is not you who can give me a lesson in good manners, I warn you."
"Perhaps," said Athos.
"Ah! If I were not in such haste, and if I were
not running after someone," said d'Artagnan.
"Monsieur Man-in-a-hurry, you can find me
without running—ME, you understand?"
"And where, I pray you?"
"Near the Carmes-Deschaux."
"At what hour?"
"About noon."
"About noon? That will do; I will be there."
"Endeavor not to make me wait; for at quarter
past twelve I will cut off your ears as you run."
"Good!" cried d'Artagnan, "I will be there ten
minutes before twelve." And he set off running as if the devil possessed him,
hoping that he might yet find the stranger, whose slow pace could not have
carried him far.
But at the street gate, Porthos was talking
with the soldier on guard. Between the two talkers there was just enough room
for a man to pass. D'Artagnan thought it would suffice for him, and he sprang
forward like a dart between them. But d'Artagnan had reckoned without the wind.
As he was about to pass, the wind blew out Porthos's long cloak, and d'Artagnan
rushed straight into the middle of it. Without doubt, Porthos had reasons for
not abandoning this part of his vestments, for instead of quitting his hold on
the flap in his hand, he pulled it toward him, so that d'Artagnan rolled himself
up in the velvet by a movement of rotation explained by the persistency of
Porthos.
D'Artagnan, hearing the Musketeer swear, wished
to escape from the cloak, which blinded him, and sought to find his way from
under the folds of it. He was particularly anxious to avoid marring the
freshness of the magnificent baldric we are acquainted with; but on timidly
opening his eyes, he found himself with his nose fixed between the two shoulders
of Porthos—that is to say, exactly upon the baldric.
Alas, like most things in this world which have
nothing in their favor but appearances, the baldric was glittering with gold in
the front, but was nothing but simple buff behind. Vainglorious as he was,
Porthos could not afford to have a baldric wholly of gold, but had at least
half. One could comprehend the necessity of the cold and the urgency of the
cloak.
"Bless me!" cried Porthos, making strong
efforts to disembarrass himself of d'Artagnan, who was wriggling about his back;
"you must be mad to run against people in this manner."
"Excuse me," said d'Artagnan, reappearing under
the shoulder of the giant, "but I am in such haste—I was running after someone
and—"
"And do you always forget your eyes when you
run?" asked Porthos.
"No," replied d'Artagnan, piqued, "and thanks
to my eyes, I can see what other people cannot see."
Whether Porthos understood him or did not
understand him, giving way to his anger, "Monsieur," said he, "you stand a
chance of getting chastised if you rub Musketeers in this fashion."
"Chastised, Monsieur!" said d'Artagnan, "the
expression is strong."
"It is one that becomes a man accustomed to
look his enemies in the face."
"Ah, PARDIEU! I know full well that you don't
turn your back to yours."
And the young man, delighted with his joke,
went away laughing loudly.
Porthos foamed with rage, and made a movement
to rush after d'Artagnan.
"Presently, presently," cried the latter, "when
you haven't your cloak on."
"At one o'clock, then, behind the Luxembourg."
"Very well, at one o'clock, then," replied
d'Artagnan, turning the angle of the street.
But neither in the street he had passed
through, nor in the one which his eager glance pervaded, could he see anyone;
however slowly the stranger had walked, he was gone on his way, or perhaps had
entered some house. D'Artagnan inquired of everyone he met with, went down to
the ferry, came up again by the Rue de Seine, and the Red Cross; but nothing,
absolutely nothing! This chase was, however, advantageous to him in one sense,
for in proportion as the perspiration broke from his forehead, his heart began
to cool.
He began to reflect upon the events that had
passed; they were numerous and inauspicious. It was scarcely eleven o'clock in
the morning, and yet this morning had already brought him into disgrace with M.
de Treville, who could not fail to think the manner in which d'Artagnan had left
him a little cavalier.
Besides this, he had drawn upon himself two
good duels with two men, each capable of killing three d'Artagnans—with two
Musketeers, in short, with two of those beings whom he esteemed so greatly that
he placed them in his mind and heart above all other men.
The outlook was sad. Sure of being killed by
Athos, it may easily be understood that the young man was not very uneasy about
Porthos. As hope, however, is the last thing extinguished in the heart of man,
he finished by hoping that he might survive, even though with terrible wounds,
in both these duels; and in case of surviving, he made the following
reprehensions upon his own conduct:
"What a madcap I was, and what a stupid fellow
I am! That brave and unfortunate Athos was wounded on that very shoulder against
which I must run head foremost, like a ram. The only thing that astonishes me is
that he did not strike me dead at once. He had good cause to do so; the pain I
gave him must have been atrocious. As to Porthos—oh, as to Porthos, faith,
that's a droll affair!"
And in spite of himself, the young man began to
laugh aloud, looking round carefully, however, to see that his solitary laugh,
without a cause in the eyes of passers-by, offended no one.
"As to Porthos, that is certainly droll; but I
am not the less a giddy fool. Are people to be run against without warning? No!
And have I any right to go and peep under their cloaks to see what is not there?
He would have pardoned me, he would certainly have pardoned me, if I had not
said anything to him about that cursed baldric—in ambiguous words, it is true,
but rather drolly ambiguous. Ah, cursed Gascon that I am, I get from one hobble
into another. Friend d'Artagnan," continued he, speaking to himself with all the
amenity that he thought due himself, "if you escape, of which there is not much
chance, I would advise you to practice perfect politeness for the future. You
must henceforth be admired and quoted as a model of it. To be obliging and
polite does not necessarily make a man a coward. Look at Aramis, now; Aramis is
mildness and grace personified. Well, did anybody ever dream of calling Aramis a
coward? No, certainly not, and from this moment I will endeavor to model myself
after him. Ah! That's strange! Here he is!"
D'Artagnan, walking and soliloquizing, had
arrived within a few steps of the hotel d'Arguillon and in front of that hotel
perceived Aramis, chatting gaily with three gentlemen; but as he had not
forgotten that it was in presence of this young man that M. de Treville had been
so angry in the morning, and as a witness of the rebuke the Musketeers had
received was not likely to be at all agreeable, he pretended not to see him.
D'Artagnan, on the contrary, quite full of his plans of conciliation and
courtesy, approached the young men with a profound bow, accompanied by a most
gracious smile. All four, besides, immediately broke off their conversation.
D'Artagnan was not so dull as not to perceive
that he was one too many; but he was not sufficiently broken into the fashions
of the gay world to know how to extricate himself gallantly from a false
position, like that of a man who begins to mingle with people he is scarcely
acquainted with and in a conversation that does not concern him. He was seeking
in his mind, then, for the least awkward means of retreat, when he remarked that
Aramis had let his handkerchief fall, and by mistake, no doubt, had placed his
foot upon it. This appeared to be a favorable opportunity to repair his
intrusion. He stooped, and with the most gracious air he could assume, drew the
handkerchief from under the foot of the Musketeer in spite of the efforts the
latter made to detain it, and holding it out to him, said, "I believe, monsieur,
that this is a handkerchief you would be sorry to lose?"
The handkerchief was indeed richly embroidered,
and had a coronet and arms at one of its corners. Aramis blushed excessively,
and snatched rather than took the handkerchief from the hand of the Gascon.
"Ah, ah!" cried one of the Guards, "will you
persist in saying, most discreet Aramis, that you are not on good terms with
Madame de Bois-Tracy, when that gracious lady has the kindness to lend you one
of her handkerchiefs?"
Aramis darted at d'Artagnan one of those looks
which inform a man that he has acquired a mortal enemy. Then, resuming his mild
air, "You are deceived, gentlemen," said he, "this handkerchief is not mine, and
I cannot fancy why Monsieur has taken it into his head to offer it to me rather
than to one of you; and as a proof of what I say, here is mine in my pocket."
So saying, he pulled out his own handkerchief,
likewise a very elegant handkerchief, and of fine cambric—though cambric was
dear at the period—but a handkerchief without embroidery and without arms, only
ornamented with a single cipher, that of its proprietor.
This time d'Artagnan was not hasty. He
perceived his mistake; but the friends of Aramis were not at all convinced by
his denial, and one of them addressed the young Musketeer with affected
seriousness. "If it were as you pretend it is," said he, "I should be forced, my
dear Aramis, to reclaim it myself; for, as you very well know, Bois-Tracy is an
intimate friend of mine, and I cannot allow the property of his wife to be
sported as a trophy."
"You make the demand badly," replied Aramis;
"and while acknowledging the justice of your reclamation, I refuse it on account
of the form."
"The fact is," hazarded d'Artagnan, timidly, "I
did not see the handkerchief fall from the pocket of Monsieur Aramis. He had his
foot upon it, that is all; and I thought from having his foot upon it the
handkerchief was his."
"And you were deceived, my dear sir," replied
Aramis, coldly, very little sensible to the reparation. Then turning toward that
one of the guards who had declared himself the friend of Bois-Tracy, "Besides,"
continued he, "I have reflected, my dear intimate of Bois-Tracy, that I am not
less tenderly his friend than you can possibly be; so that decidedly this
handkerchief is as likely to have fallen from your pocket as mine."
"No, upon my honor!" cried his Majesty's
Guardsman.
"You are about to swear upon your honor and I
upon my word, and then it will be pretty evident that one of us will have lied.
Now, here, Montaran, we will do better than that—let each take a half."
"Of the handkerchief?"
"Yes."
"Perfectly just," cried the other two
Guardsmen, "the judgment of King Solomon! Aramis, you certainly are full of
wisdom!"
The young men burst into a laugh, and as may be
supposed, the affair had no other sequel. In a moment or two the conversation
ceased, and the three Guardsmen and the Musketeer, after having cordially shaken
hands, separated, the Guardsmen going one way and Aramis another.
"Now is my time to make peace with this gallant
man," said d'Artagnan to himself, having stood on one side during the whole of
the latter part of the conversation; and with this good feeling drawing near to
Aramis, who was departing without paying any attention to him, "Monsieur," said
he, "you will excuse me, I hope."
"Ah, monsieur," interrupted Aramis, "permit me
to observe to you that you have not acted in this affair as a gallant man
ought."
"What, monsieur!" cried d'Artagnan, "and do you
suppose—"
"I suppose, monsieur that you are not a fool,
and that you knew very well, although coming from Gascony, that people do not
tread upon handkerchiefs without a reason. What the devil! Paris is not paved
with cambric!"
"Monsieur, you act wrongly in endeavoring to
mortify me," said d'Artagnan, in whom the natural quarrelsome spirit began to
speak more loudly than his pacific resolutions. "I am from Gascony, it is true;
and since you know it, there is no occasion to tell you that Gascons are not
very patient, so that when they have begged to be excused once, were it even for
a folly, they are convinced that they have done already at least as much again
as they ought to have done."
"Monsieur, what I say to you about the matter,"
said Aramis, "is not for the sake of seeking a quarrel. Thank God, I am not a
bravo! And being a Musketeer but for a time, I only fight when I am forced to do
so, and always with great repugnance; but this time the affair is serious, for
here is a lady compromised by you."
"By US, you mean!" cried d'Artagnan.
"Why did you so maladroitly restore me the
handkerchief?"
"Why did you so awkwardly let it fall?"
"I have said, monsieur, and I repeat, that the
handkerchief did not fall from my pocket."
"And thereby you have lied twice, monsieur, for
I saw it fall."
"Ah, you take it with that tone, do you, Master
Gascon? Well, I will teach you how to behave yourself."
"And I will send you back to your Mass book,
Master Abbe. Draw, if you please, and instantly—"
"Not so, if you please, my good friend—not
here, at least. Do you not perceive that we are opposite the Hotel d'Arguillon,
which is full of the cardinal's creatures? How do I know that this is not his
Eminence who has honored you with the commission to procure my head? Now, I
entertain a ridiculous partiality for my head, it seems to suit my shoulders so
correctly. I wish to kill you, be at rest as to that, but to kill you quietly in
a snug, remote place, where you will not be able to boast of your death to
anybody."
"I agree, monsieur; but do not be too
confident. Take your handkerchief; whether it belongs to you or another, you may
perhaps stand in need of it."
"Monsieur is a Gascon?" asked Aramis.
"Yes. Monsieur does not postpone an interview
through prudence?"
"Prudence, monsieur, is a virtue sufficiently
useless to Musketeers, I know, but indispensable to churchmen; and as I am only
a Musketeer provisionally, I hold it good to be prudent. At two o'clock I shall
have the honor of expecting you at the hotel of Monsieur de Treville. There I
will indicate to you the best place and time."
The two young men bowed and separated, Aramis
ascending the street which led to the Luxembourg, while d'Artagnan, perceiving
the appointed hour was approaching, took the road to the Carmes-Deschaux, saying
to himself, "Decidedly I can't draw back; but at least, if I am killed, I shall
be killed by a Musketeer."
5 THE KING'S MUSKETEERS AND THE CARDINAL'S
GUARDS
D'Artagnan was acquainted with nobody in Paris.
He went therefore to his appointment with Athos without a second, determined to
be satisfied with those his adversary should choose. Besides, his intention was
formed to make the brave Musketeer all suitable apologies, but without meanness
or weakness, fearing that might result from this duel which generally results
from an affair of this kind, when a young and vigorous man fights with an
adversary who is wounded and weakened—if conquered, he doubles the triumph of
his antagonist; if a conqueror, he is accused of foul play and want of courage.
Now, we must have badly painted the character
of our adventure seeker, or our readers must have already perceived that
d'Artagnan was not an ordinary man; therefore, while repeating to himself that
his death was inevitable, he did not make up his mind to die quietly, as one
less courageous and less restrained might have done in his place. He reflected
upon the different characters of men he had to fight with, and began to view his
situation more clearly. He hoped, by means of loyal excuses, to make a friend of
Athos, whose lordly air and austere bearing pleased him much. He flattered
himself he should be able to frighten Porthos with the adventure of the baldric,
which he might, if not killed upon the spot, relate to everybody a recital
which, well managed, would cover Porthos with ridicule. As to the astute Aramis,
he did not entertain much dread of him; and supposing he should be able to get
so far, he determined to dispatch him in good style or at least, by hitting him
in the face, as Caesar recommended his soldiers do to those of Pompey, to damage
forever the beauty of which he was so proud.
In addition to this, d'Artagnan possessed that
invincible stock of resolution which the counsels of his father had implanted in
his heart: "Endure nothing from anyone but the king, the cardinal, and Monsieur
de Treville." He flew, then, rather than walked, toward the convent of the
Carmes Dechausses, or rather Deschaux, as it was called at that period, a sort
of building without a window, surrounded by barren fields—an accessory to the
Preaux-Clercs, and which was generally employed as the place for the duels of
men who had no time to lose.
When d'Artagnan arrived in sight of the bare
spot of ground which extended along the foot of the monastery, Athos had been
waiting about five minutes, and twelve o'clock was striking. He was, then, as
punctual as the Samaritan woman, and the most rigorous casuist with regard to
duels could have nothing to say.
Athos, who still suffered grievously from his
wound, though it had been dressed anew by M. de Treville's surgeon, was seated
on a post and waiting for his adversary with hat in hand, his feather even
touching the ground.
"Monsieur," said Athos, "I have engaged two of
my friends as seconds; but these two friends are not yet come, at which I am
astonished, as it is not at all their custom."
"I have no seconds on my part, monsieur," said
d'Artagnan; "for having only arrived yesterday in Paris, I as yet know no one
but Monsieur de Treville, to whom I was recommended by my father, who has the
honor to be, in some degree, one of his friends."
Athos reflected for an instant. "You know no
one but Monsieur de Treville?" he asked.
"Yes, monsieur, I know only him."
"Well, but then," continued Athos, speaking
half to himself, "if I kill you, I shall have the air of a boy-slayer."
"Not too much so," replied d'Artagnan, with a
bow that was not deficient in dignity, "since you do me the honor to draw a
sword with me while suffering from a wound which is very inconvenient."
"Very inconvenient, upon my word; and you hurt
me devilishly, I can tell you. But I will take the left hand—it is my custom in
such circumstances. Do not fancy that I do you a favor; I use either hand
easily. And it will be even a disadvantage to you; a left-handed man is very
troublesome to people who are not prepared for it. I regret I did not inform you
sooner of this circumstance."
"You have truly, monsieur," said d'Artagnan,
bowing again, "a courtesy, for which, I assure you, I am very grateful."
"You confuse me," replied Athos, with his
gentlemanly air; "let us talk of something else, if you please. Ah, s'blood, how
you have hurt me! My shoulder quite burns."
"If you would permit me—" said d'Artagnan, with
timidity.
"What, monsieur?"
"I have a miraculous balsam for wounds—a balsam
given to me by my mother and of which I have made a trial upon myself."
"Well?"
"Well, I am sure that in less than three days
this balsam would cure you; and at the end of three days, when you would be
cured—well, sir, it would still do me a great honor to be your man."
D'Artagnan spoke these words with a simplicity
that did honor to his courtesy, without throwing the least doubt upon his
courage.
"PARDIEU, monsieur!" said Athos, "that's a
proposition that pleases me; not that I can accept it, but a league off it
savors of the gentleman. Thus spoke and acted the gallant knights of the time of
Charlemagne, in whom every cavalier ought to seek his model. Unfortunately, we
do not live in the times of the great emperor, we live in the times of the
cardinal; and three days hence, however well the secret might be guarded, it
would be known, I say, that we were to fight, and our combat would be prevented.
I think these fellows will never come."
"If you are in haste, monsieur," said
d'Artagnan, with the same simplicity with which a moment before he had proposed
to him to put off the duel for three days, "and if it be your will to dispatch
me at once, do not inconvenience yourself, I pray you."
"There is another word which pleases me," cried
Athos, with a gracious nod to d'Artagnan. "That did not come from a man without
a heart. Monsieur, I love men of your kidney; and I foresee plainly that if we
don't kill each other, I shall hereafter have much pleasure in your
conversation. We will wait for these gentlemen, so please you; I have plenty of
time, and it will be more correct. Ah, here is one of them, I believe."
In fact, at the end of the Rue Vaugirard the
gigantic Porthos appeared.
"What!" cried d'Artagnan, "is your first
witness Monsieur Porthos?"
"Yes, that disturbs you?"
"By no means."
"And here is the second."
D'Artagnan turned in the direction pointed to
by Athos, and perceived Aramis.
"What!" cried he, in an accent of greater
astonishment than before, "your second witness is Monsieur Aramis?"
"Doubtless! Are you not aware that we are never
seen one without the others, and that we are called among the Musketeers and the
Guards, at court and in the city, Athos, Porthos, and Aramis, or the Three
Inseparables? And yet, as you come from Dax or Pau—"
"From Tarbes," said d'Artagnan.
"It is probable you are ignorant of this little
fact," said Athos.
"My faith!" replied d'Artagnan, "you are well
named, gentlemen; and my adventure, if it should make any noise, will prove at
least that your union is not founded upon contrasts."
In the meantime, Porthos had come up, waved his
hand to Athos, and then turning toward d'Artagnan, stood quite astonished.
Let us say in passing that he had changed his
baldric and relinquished his cloak.
"Ah, ah!" said he, "what does this mean?"
"This is the gentleman I am going to fight
with," said Athos, pointing to d'Artagnan with his hand and saluting him with
the same gesture.
"Why, it is with him I am also going to fight,"
said Porthos.
"But not before one o'clock," replied
d'Artagnan.
"And I also am to fight with this gentleman,"
said Aramis, coming in his turn onto the place.
"But not until two o'clock," said d'Artagnan,
with the same calmness.
"But what are you going to fight about, Athos?"
asked Aramis.
"Faith! I don't very well know. He hurt my
shoulder. And you, Porthos?"
"Faith! I am going to fight—because I am going
to fight," answered Porthos, reddening.
Athos, whose keen eye lost nothing, perceived a
faintly sly smile pass over the lips of the young Gascon as he replied, "We had
a short discussion upon dress."
"And you, Aramis?" asked Athos.
"Oh, ours is a theological quarrel," replied
Aramis, making a sign to d'Artagnan to keep secret the cause of their duel.
Athos indeed saw a second smile on the lips of
d'Artagnan.
"Indeed?" said Athos.
"Yes; a passage of St. Augustine, upon which we
could not agree," said the Gascon.
"Decidedly, this is a clever fellow," murmured
Athos.
"And now you are assembled, gentlemen," said
d'Artagnan, "permit me to offer you my apologies."
At this word APOLOGIES, a cloud passed over the
brow of Athos, a haughty smile curled the lip of Porthos, and a negative sign
was the reply of Aramis.
"You do not understand me, gentlemen," said
d'Artagnan, throwing up his head, the sharp and bold lines of which were at the
moment gilded by a bright ray of the sun. "I asked to be excused in case I
should not be able to discharge my debt to all three; for Monsieur Athos has the
right to kill me first, which must much diminish the face-value of your bill,
Monsieur Porthos, and render yours almost null, Monsieur Aramis. And now,
gentlemen, I repeat, excuse me, but on that account only, and—on guard!"
At these words, with the most gallant air
possible, d'Artagnan drew his sword.
The blood had mounted to the head of
d'Artagnan, and at that moment he would have drawn his sword against all the
Musketeers in the kingdom as willingly as he now did against Athos, Porthos, and
Aramis.
It was a quarter past midday. The sun was in
its zenith, and the spot chosen for the scene of the duel was exposed to its
full ardor.
"It is very hot," said Athos, drawing his sword
in its turn, "and yet I cannot take off my doublet; for I just now felt my wound
begin to bleed again, and I should not like to annoy Monsieur with the sight of
blood which he has not drawn from me himself."
"That is true, Monsieur," replied d'Artagnan,
"and whether drawn by myself or another, I assure you I shall always view with
regret the blood of so brave a gentleman. I will therefore fight in my doublet,
like yourself."
"Come, come, enough of such compliments!" cried
Porthos. "Remember, we are waiting for our turns."
"Speak for yourself when you are inclined to
utter such incongruities," interrupted Aramis. "For my part, I think what they
say is very well said, and quite worthy of two gentlemen."
"When you please, monsieur," said Athos,
putting himself on guard.
"I waited your orders," said d'Artagnan,
crossing swords.
But scarcely had the two rapiers clashed, when
a company of the Guards of his Eminence, commanded by M. de Jussac, turned the
corner of the convent.
"The cardinal's Guards!" cried Aramis and
Porthos at the same time. "Sheathe your swords, gentlemen, sheathe your swords!"
But it was too late. The two combatants had
been seen in a position which left no doubt of their intentions.
"Halloo!" cried Jussac, advancing toward them
and making a sign to his men to do so likewise, "halloo, Musketeers? Fighting
here, are you? And the edicts? What is become of them?"
"You are very generous, gentlemen of the
Guards," said Athos, full of rancor, for Jussac was one of the aggressors of the
preceding day. "If we were to see you fighting, I can assure you that we would
make no effort to prevent you. Leave us alone, then, and you will enjoy a little
amusement without cost to yourselves."
"Gentlemen," said Jussac, "it is with great
regret that I pronounce the thing impossible. Duty before everything. Sheathe,
then, if you please, and follow us."
"Monsieur," said Aramis, parodying Jussac, "it
would afford us great pleasure to obey your polite invitation if it depended
upon ourselves; but unfortunately the thing is impossible—Monsieur de Treville
has forbidden it. Pass on your way, then; it is the best thing to do."
This raillery exasperated Jussac. "We will
charge upon you, then," said he, "if you disobey."
"There are five of them," said Athos, half
aloud, "and we are but three; we shall be beaten again, and must die on the
spot, for, on my part, I declare I will never appear again before the captain as
a conquered man."
Athos, Porthos, and Aramis instantly drew near
one another, while Jussac drew up his soldiers.
This short interval was sufficient to determine
d'Artagnan on the part he was to take. It was one of those events which decide
the life of a man; it was a choice between the king and the cardinal—the choice
made, it must be persisted in. To fight, that was to disobey the law, that was
to risk his head, that was to make at one blow an enemy of a minister more
powerful than the king himself. All this young man perceived, and yet, to his
praise we speak it, he did not hesitate a second. Turning towards Athos and his
friends, "Gentlemen," said he, "allow me to correct your words, if you please.
You said you were but three, but it appears to me we are four."
"But you are not one of us," said Porthos.
"That's true," replied d'Artagnan; "I have not
the uniform, but I have the spirit. My heart is that of a Musketeer; I feel it,
monsieur, and that impels me on."
"Withdraw, young man," cried Jussac, who
doubtless, by his gestures and the expression of his countenance, had guessed
d'Artagnan's design. "You may retire; we consent to that. Save your skin; begone
quickly."
D'Artagnan did not budge.
"Decidedly, you are a brave fellow," said
Athos, pressing the young man's hand.
"Come, come, choose your part," replied Jussac.
"Well," said Porthos to Aramis, "we must do
something."
"Monsieur is full of generosity," said Athos.
But all three reflected upon the youth of
d'Artagnan, and dreaded his inexperience.
"We should only be three, one of whom is
wounded, with the addition of a boy," resumed Athos; "and yet it will not be the
less said we were four men."
"Yes, but to yield!" said Porthos.
"That IS difficult," replied Athos.
D'Artagnan comprehended their irresolution.
"Try me, gentlemen," said he, "and I swear to
you by my honor that I will not go hence if we are conquered."
"What is your name, my brave fellow?" said
Athos.
"d'Artagnan, monsieur."
"Well, then, Athos, Porthos, Aramis, and
d'Artagnan, forward!" cried Athos.
"Come, gentlemen, have you decided?" cried
Jussac for the third time.
"It is done, gentlemen," said Athos.
"And what is your choice?" asked Jussac.
"We are about to have the honor of charging
you," replied Aramis, lifting his hat with one hand and drawing his sword with
the other.
"Ah! You resist, do you?" cried Jussac.
"S'blood; does that astonish you?"
And the nine combatants rushed upon each other
with a fury which however did not exclude a certain degree of method.
Athos fixed upon a certain Cahusac, a favorite
of the cardinal's. Porthos had Bicarat, and Aramis found himself opposed to two
adversaries. As to d'Artagnan, he sprang toward Jussac himself.
The heart of the young Gascon beat as if it
would burst through his side—not from fear, God be thanked, he had not the shade
of it, but with emulation; he fought like a furious tiger, turning ten times
round his adversary, and changing his ground and his guard twenty times. Jussac
was, as was then said, a fine blade, and had had much practice; nevertheless it
required all his skill to defend himself against an adversary who, active and
energetic, departed every instant from received rules, attacking him on all
sides at once, and yet parrying like a man who had the greatest respect for his
own epidermis.
This contest at length exhausted Jussac's
patience. Furious at being held in check by one whom he had considered a boy, he
became warm and began to make mistakes. D'Artagnan, who though wanting in
practice had a sound theory, redoubled his agility. Jussac, anxious to put an
end to this, springing forward, aimed a terrible thrust at his adversary, but
the latter parried it; and while Jussac was recovering himself, glided like a
serpent beneath his blade, and passed his sword through his body. Jussac fell
like a dead mass.
D'Artagnan then cast an anxious and rapid
glance over the field of battle.
Aramis had killed one of his adversaries, but
the other pressed him warmly. Nevertheless, Aramis was in a good situation, and
able to defend himself.
Bicarat and Porthos had just made counterhits.
Porthos had received a thrust through his arm, and Bicarat one through his
thigh. But neither of these two wounds was serious, and they only fought more
earnestly.
Athos, wounded anew by Cahusac, became
evidently paler, but did not give way a foot. He only changed his sword hand,
and fought with his left hand.
According to the laws of dueling at that
period, d'Artagnan was at liberty to assist whom he pleased. While he was
endeavoring to find out which of his companions stood in greatest need, he
caught a glance from Athos. The glance was of sublime eloquence. Athos would
have died rather than appeal for help; but he could look, and with that look ask
assistance. D'Artagnan interpreted it; with a terrible bound he sprang to the
side of Cahusac, crying, "To me, Monsieur Guardsman; I will slay you!"
Cahusac turned. It was time; for Athos, whose
great courage alone supported him, sank upon his knee.
"S'blood!" cried he to d'Artagnan, "do not kill
him, young man, I beg of you. I have an old affair to settle with him when I am
cured and sound again. Disarm him only—make sure of his sword. That's it! Very
well done!"
The exclamation was drawn from Athos by seeing
the sword of Cahusac fly twenty paces from him. D'Artagnan and Cahusac sprang
forward at the same instant, the one to recover, the other to obtain, the sword;
but d'Artagnan, being the more active, reached it first and placed his foot upon
it.
Cahusac immediately ran to the Guardsman whom
Aramis had killed, seized his rapier, and returned toward d'Artagnan; but on his
way he met Athos, who during his relief which d'Artagnan had procured him had
recovered his breath, and who, for fear that d'Artagnan would kill his enemy,
wished to resume the fight.
D'Artagnan perceived that it would be
disobliging Athos not to leave him alone; and in a few minutes Cahusac fell,
with a sword thrust through his throat.
At the same instant Aramis placed his sword
point on the breast of his fallen enemy, and forced him to ask for mercy.
There only then remained Porthos and Bicarat.
Porthos made a thousand flourishes, asking Bicarat what o'clock it could be, and
offering him his compliments upon his brother's having just obtained a company
in the regiment of Navarre; but, jest as he might, he gained nothing. Bicarat
was one of those iron men who never fell dead.
Nevertheless, it was necessary to finish. The
watch might come up and take all the combatants, wounded or not, royalists or
cardinalists. Athos, Aramis, and d'Artagnan surrounded Bicarat, and required him
to surrender. Though alone against all and with a wound in his thigh, Bicarat
wished to hold out; but Jussac, who had risen upon his elbow, cried out to him
to yield. Bicarat was a Gascon, as d'Artagnan was; he turned a deaf ear, and
contented himself with laughing, and between two parries finding time to point
to a spot of earth with his sword, "Here," cried he, parodying a verse of the
Bible, "here will Bicarat die; for I only am left, and they seek my life."
"But there are four against you; leave off, I
command you."
"Ah, if you command me, that's another thing,"
said Bicarat. "As you are my commander, it is my duty to obey." And springing
backward, he broke his sword across his knee to avoid the necessity of
surrendering it, threw the pieces over the convent wall, and crossed him arms,
whistling a cardinalist air.
Bravery is always respected, even in an enemy.
The Musketeers saluted Bicarat with their swords, and returned them to their
sheaths. D'Artagnan did the same. Then, assisted by Bicarat, the only one left
standing, he bore Jussac, Cahusac, and one of Aramis's adversaries who was only
wounded, under the porch of the convent. The fourth, as we have said, was dead.
They then rang the bell, and carrying away four swords out of five, they took
their road, intoxicated with joy, toward the hotel of M. de Treville.
They walked arm in arm, occupying the whole
width of the street and taking in every Musketeer they met, so that in the end
it became a triumphal march. The heart of d'Artagnan swam in delirium; he
marched between Athos and Porthos, pressing them tenderly.
"If I am not yet a Musketeer," said he to his
new friends, as he passed through the gateway of M. de Treville's hotel, "at
least I have entered upon my apprenticeship, haven't I?"
6 HIS MAJESTY KING LOUIS XIII
This affair made a great noise. M. de Treville
scolded his Musketeers in public, and congratulated them in private; but as no
time was to be lost in gaining the king, M. de Treville hastened to report
himself at the Louvre. It was already too late. The king was closeted with the
cardinal, and M. de Treville was informed that the king was busy and could not
receive him at that moment. In the evening M. de Treville attended the king's
gaming table. The king was winning; and as he was very avaricious, he was in an
excellent humor. Perceiving M. de Treville at a distance—
"Come here, Monsieur Captain," said he, "come
here, that I may growl at you. Do you know that his Eminence has been making
fresh complaints against your Musketeers, and that with so much emotion, that
this evening his Eminence is indisposed? Ah, these Musketeers of yours are very
devils—fellows to be hanged."
"No, sire," replied Treville, who saw at the
first glance how things would go, "on the contrary, they are good creatures, as
meek as lambs, and have but one desire, I'll be their warranty. And that is that
their swords may never leave their scabbards but in your majesty's service. But
what are they to do? The Guards of Monsieur the Cardinal are forever seeking
quarrels with them, and for the honor of the corps even, the poor young men are
obliged to defend themselves."
"Listen to Monsieur de Treville," said the
king; "listen to him! Would not one say he was speaking of a religious
community? In truth, my dear Captain, I have a great mind to take away your
commission and give it to Mademoiselle de Chemerault, to whom I promised an
abbey. But don't fancy that I am going to take you on your bare word. I am
called Louis the Just, Monsieur de Treville, and by and by, by and by we will
see."
"Ah, sire; it is because I confide in that
justice that I shall wait patiently and quietly the good pleasure of your
Majesty."
"Wait, then, monsieur, wait," said the king; "I
will not detain you long."
In fact, fortune changed; and as the king began
to lose what he had won, he was not sorry to find an excuse for playing
Charlemagne—if we may use a gaming phrase of whose origin we confess our
ignorance. The king therefore arose a minute after, and putting the money which
lay before him into his pocket, the major part of which arose from his winnings,
"La Vieuville," said he, "take my place; I must speak to Monsieur de Treville on
an affair of importance. Ah, I had eighty louis before me; put down the same
sum, so that they who have lost may have nothing to complain of. Justice before
everything."
Then turning toward M. de Treville and walking
with him toward the embrasure of a window, "Well, monsieur," continued he, "you
say it is his Eminence's Guards who have sought a quarrel with your Musketeers?"
"Yes, sire, as they always do."
"And how did the thing happen? Let us see, for
you know, my dear Captain, a judge must hear both sides."
"Good Lord! In the most simple and natural
manner possible. Three of my best soldiers, whom your Majesty knows by name, and
whose devotedness you have more than once appreciated, and who have, I dare
affirm to the king, his service much at heart—three of my best soldiers, I say,
Athos, Porthos, and Aramis, had made a party of pleasure with a young fellow
from Gascony, whom I had introduced to them the same morning. The party was to
take place at St. Germain, I believe, and they had appointed to meet at the
Carmes-Deschaux, when they were disturbed by de Jussac, Cahusac, Bicarat, and
two other Guardsmen, who certainly did not go there in such a numerous company
without some ill intention against the edicts."
"Ah, ah! You incline me to think so," said the
king. "There is no doubt they went thither to fight themselves."
"I do not accuse them, sire; but I leave your
Majesty to judge what five armed men could possibly be going to do in such a
deserted place as the neighborhood of the Convent des Carmes."
"Yes, you are right, Treville, you are right!"
"Then, upon seeing my Musketeers they changed
their minds, and forgot their private hatred for partisan hatred; for your
Majesty cannot be ignorant that the Musketeers, who belong to the king and
nobody but the king, are the natural enemies of the Guardsmen, who belong to the
cardinal."
"Yes, Treville, yes," said the king, in a
melancholy tone; "and it is very sad, believe me, to see thus two parties in
France, two heads to royalty. But all this will come to an end, Treville, will
come to an end. You say, then, that the Guardsmen sought a quarrel with the
Musketeers?"
"I say that it is probable that things have
fallen out so, but I will not swear to it, sire. You know how difficult it is to
discover the truth; and unless a man be endowed with that admirable instinct
which causes Louis XIII to be named the Just—"
"You are right, Treville; but they were not
alone, your Musketeers. They had a youth with them?"
"Yes, sire, and one wounded man; so that three
of the king's Musketeers—one of whom was wounded—and a youth not only maintained
their ground against five of the most terrible of the cardinal's Guardsmen, but
absolutely brought four of them to earth."
"Why, this is a victory!" cried the king, all
radiant, "a complete victory!"
"Yes, sire; as complete as that of the Bridge
of Ce."
"Four men, one of them wounded, and a youth,
say you?"
"One hardly a young man; but who, however,
behaved himself so admirably on this occasion that I will take the liberty of
recommending him to your Majesty."
"How does he call himself?"
"d'Artagnan, sire; he is the son of one of my
oldest friends—the son of a man who served under the king your father, of
glorious memory, in the civil war."
"And you say this young man behaved himself
well? Tell me how, Treville—you know how I delight in accounts of war and
fighting."
And Louis XIII twisted his mustache proudly,
placing his hand upon his hip.
"Sire," resumed Treville, "as I told you,
Monsieur d'Artagnan is little more than a boy; and as he has not the honor of
being a Musketeer, he was dressed as a citizen. The Guards of the cardinal,
perceiving his youth and that he did not belong to the corps, invited him to
retire before they attacked."
"So you may plainly see, Treville," interrupted
the king, "it was they who attacked?"
"That is true, sire; there can be no more doubt
on that head. They called upon him then to retire; but he answered that he was a
Musketeer at heart, entirely devoted to your Majesty, and that therefore he
would remain with Messieurs the Musketeers."
"Brave young man!" murmured the king.
"Well, he did remain with them; and your
Majesty has in him so firm a champion that it was he who gave Jussac the
terrible sword thrust which has made the cardinal so angry."
"He who wounded Jussac!" cried the king, "he, a
boy! Treville, that's impossible!"
"It is as I have the honor to relate it to your
Majesty."
"Jussac, one of the first swordsmen in the
kingdom?"
"Well, sire, for once he found his master."
"I will see this young man, Treville—I will see
him; and if anything can be done—well, we will make it our business."
"When will your Majesty deign to receive him?"
"Tomorrow, at midday, Treville."
"Shall I bring him alone?"
"No, bring me all four together. I wish to
thank them all at once. Devoted men are so rare, Treville, by the back
staircase. It is useless to let the cardinal know."
"Yes, sire."
"You understand, Treville—an edict is still an
edict, it is forbidden to fight, after all."
"But this encounter, sire, is quite out of the
ordinary conditions of a duel. It is a brawl; and the proof is that there were
five of the cardinal's Guardsmen against my three Musketeers and Monsieur
d'Artagnan."
"That is true," said the king; "but never mind,
Treville, come still by the back staircase."
Treville smiled; but as it was indeed something
to have prevailed upon this child to rebel against his master, he saluted the
king respectfully, and with this agreement, took leave of him.
That evening the three Musketeers were informed
of the honor accorded them. As they had long been acquainted with the king, they
were not much excited; but d'Artagnan, with his Gascon imagination, saw in it
his future fortune, and passed the night in golden dreams. By eight o'clock in
the morning he was at the apartment of Athos.
D'Artagnan found the Musketeer dressed and
ready to go out. As the hour to wait upon the king was not till twelve, he had
made a party with Porthos and Aramis to play a game at tennis in a tennis court
situated near the stables of the Luxembourg. Athos invited d'Artagnan to follow
them; and although ignorant of the game, which he had never played, he accepted,
not knowing what to do with his time from nine o'clock in the morning, as it
then scarcely was, till twelve.
The two Musketeers were already there, and were
playing together. Athos, who was very expert in all bodily exercises, passed
with d'Artagnan to the opposite side and challenged them; but at the first
effort he made, although he played with his left hand, he found that his wound
was yet too recent to allow of such exertion. D'Artagnan remained, therefore,
alone; and as he declared he was too ignorant of the game to play it regularly
they only continued giving balls to one another without counting. But one of
these balls, launched by Porthos' herculean hand, passed so close to
d'Artagnan's face that he thought that if, instead of passing near, it had hit
him, his audience would have been probably lost, as it would have been
impossible for him to present himself before the king. Now, as upon this
audience, in his Gascon imagination, depended his future life, he saluted Aramis
and Porthos politely, declaring that he would not resume the game until he
should be prepared to play with them on more equal terms, and went and took his
place near the cord and in the gallery.
Unfortunately for d'Artagnan, among the
spectators was one of his Eminence's Guardsmen, who, still irritated by the
defeat of his companions, which had happened only the day before, had promised
himself to seize the first opportunity of avenging it. He believed this
opportunity was now come and addressed his neighbor: "It is not astonishing that
that young man should be afraid of a ball, for he is doubtless a Musketeer
apprentice."
D'Artagnan turned round as if a serpent had
stung him, and fixed his eyes intensely upon the Guardsman who had just made
this insolent speech.
"PARDIEU," resumed the latter, twisting his
mustache, "look at me as long as you like, my little gentleman! I have said what
I have said."
"And as since that which you have said is too
clear to require any explanation," replied d'Artagnan, in a low voice, "I beg
you to follow me."
"And when?" asked the Guardsman, with the same
jeering air.
"At once, if you please."
"And you know who I am, without doubt?"
"I? I am completely ignorant; nor does it much
disquiet me."
"You're in the wrong there; for if you knew my
name, perhaps you would not be so pressing."
"What is your name?"
"Bernajoux, at your service."
"Well, then, Monsieur Bernajoux," said
d'Artagnan, tranquilly, "I will wait for you at the door."
"Go, monsieur, I will follow you."
"Do not hurry yourself, monsieur, lest it be
observed that we go out together. You must be aware that for our undertaking,
company would be in the way."
"That's true," said the Guardsman, astonished
that his name had not produced more effect upon the young man.
Indeed, the name of Bernajoux was known to all
the world, d'Artagnan alone excepted, perhaps; for it was one of those which
figured most frequently in the daily brawls which all the edicts of the cardinal
could not repress.
Porthos and Aramis were so engaged with their
game, and Athos was watching them with so much attention, that they did not even
perceive their young companion go out, who, as he had told the Guardsman of his
Eminence, stopped outside the door. An instant after, the Guardsman descended in
his turn. As d'Artagnan had no time to lose, on account of the audience of the
king, which was fixed for midday, he cast his eyes around, and seeing that the
street was empty, said to his adversary, "My faith! It is fortunate for you,
although your name is Bernajoux, to have only to deal with an apprentice
Musketeer. Never mind; be content, I will do my best. On guard!"
"But," said he whom d'Artagnan thus provoked,
"it appears to me that this place is badly chosen, and that we should be better
behind the Abbey St. Germain or in the Pre-aux-Clercs."
"What you say is full of sense," replied
d'Artagnan; "but unfortunately I have very little time to spare, having an
appointment at twelve precisely. On guard, then, monsieur, on guard!"
Bernajoux was not a man to have such a
compliment paid to him twice. In an instant his sword glittered in his hand, and
he sprang upon his adversary, whom, thanks to his great youthfulness, he hoped
to intimidate.
But d'Artagnan had on the preceding day served
his apprenticeship. Fresh sharpened by his victory, full of hopes of future
favor, he was resolved not to recoil a step. So the two swords were crossed
close to the hilts, and as d'Artagnan stood firm, it was his adversary who made
the retreating step; but d'Artagnan seized the moment at which, in this
movement, the sword of Bernajoux deviated from the line. He freed his weapon,
made a lunge, and touched his adversary on the shoulder. d'Artagnan immediately
made a step backward and raised his sword; but Bernajoux cried out that it was
nothing, and rushing blindly upon him, absolutely spitted himself upon
d'Artagnan's sword. As, however, he did not fall, as he did not declare himself
conquered, but only broke away toward the hotel of M. de la Tremouille, in whose
service he had a relative, d'Artagnan was ignorant of the seriousness of the
last wound his adversary had received, and pressing him warmly, without doubt
would soon have completed his work with a third blow, when the noise which arose
from the street being heard in the tennis court, two of the friends of the
Guardsman, who had seen him go out after exchanging some words with d'Artagnan,
rushed, sword in hand, from the court, and fell upon the conqueror. But Athos,
Porthos, and Aramis quickly appeared in their turn, and the moment the two
Guardsmen attacked their young companion, drove them back. Bernajoux now fell,
and as the Guardsmen were only two against four, they began to cry, "To the
rescue! The Hotel de la Tremouille!" At these cries, all who were in the hotel
rushed out and fell upon the four companions, who on their side cried aloud, "To
the rescue, Musketeers!"
This cry was generally heeded; for the
Musketeers were known to be enemies of the cardinal, and were beloved on account
of the hatred they bore to his Eminence. Thus the soldiers of other companies
than those which belonged to the Red Duke, as Aramis had called him, often took
part with the king's Musketeers in these quarrels. Of three Guardsmen of the
company of M. Dessessart who were passing, two came to the assistance of the
four companions, while the other ran toward the hotel of M. de Treville, crying,
"To the rescue, Musketeers! To the rescue!" As usual, this hotel was full of
soldiers of this company, who hastened to the succor of their comrades. The
MELEE became general, but strength was on the side of the Musketeers. The
cardinal's Guards and M. de la Tremouille's people retreated into the hotel, the
doors of which they closed just in time to prevent their enemies from entering
with them. As to the wounded man, he had been taken in at once, and, as we have
said, in a very bad state.
Excitement was at its height among the
Musketeers and their allies, and they even began to deliberate whether they
should not set fire to the hotel to punish the insolence of M. de la
Tremouille's domestics in daring to make a SORTIE upon the king's Musketeers.
The proposition had been made, and received with enthusiasm, when fortunately
eleven o'clock struck. D'Artagnan and his companions remembered their audience,
and as they would very much have regretted that such an opportunity should be
lost, they succeeded in calming their friends, who contented themselves with
hurling some paving stones against the gates; but the gates were too strong.
They soon tired of the sport. Besides, those who must be considered the leaders
of the enterprise had quit the group and were making their way toward the hotel
of M. de Treville, who was waiting for them, already informed of this fresh
disturbance.
"Quick to the Louvre," said he, "to the Louvre
without losing an instant, and let us endeavor to see the king before he is
prejudiced by the cardinal. We will describe the thing to him as a consequence
of the affair of yesterday, and the two will pass off together."
M. de Treville, accompanied by the four young
fellows, directed his course toward the Louvre; but to the great astonishment of
the captain of the Musketeers, he was informed that the king had gone stag
hunting in the forest of St. Germain. M. de Treville required this intelligence
to be repeated to him twice, and each time his companions saw his brow become
darker.
"Had his Majesty," asked he, "any intention of
holding this hunting party yesterday?"
"No, your Excellency," replied the valet de
chambre, "the Master of the Hounds came this morning to inform him that he had
marked down a stag. At first the king answered that he would not go; but he
could not resist his love of sport, and set out after dinner."
"And the king has seen the cardinal?" asked M.
de Treville.
"In all probability he has," replied the valet,
"for I saw the horses harnessed to his Eminence's carriage this morning, and
when I asked where he was going, they told me, 'To St. Germain.'"
"He is beforehand with us," said M. de
Treville. "Gentlemen, I will see the king this evening; but as to you, I do not
advise you to risk doing so."
This advice was too reasonable, and moreover
came from a man who knew the king too well, to allow the four young men to
dispute it. M. de Treville recommended everyone to return home and wait for
news.
On entering his hotel, M. de Treville thought
it best to be first in making the complaint. He sent one of his servants to M.
de la Tremouille with a letter in which he begged of him to eject the cardinal's
Guardsmen from his house, and to reprimand his people for their audacity in
making SORTIE against the king's Musketeers. But M. de la Tremouille—already
prejudiced by his esquire, whose relative, as we already know, Bernajoux
was—replied that it was neither for M. de Treville nor the Musketeers to
complain, but, on the contrary, for him, whose people the Musketeers had
assaulted and whose hotel they had endeavored to burn. Now, as the debate
between these two nobles might last a long time, each becoming, naturally, more
firm in his own opinion, M. de Treville thought of an expedient which might
terminate it quietly. This was to go himself to M. de la Tremouille.
He repaired, therefore, immediately to his
hotel, and caused himself to be announced.
The two nobles saluted each other politely, for
if no friendship existed between them, there was at least esteem. Both were men
of courage and honor; and as M. de la Tremouille—a Protestant, and seeing the
king seldom—was of no party, he did not, in general, carry any bias into his
social relations. This time, however, his address, although polite, was cooler
than usual.
"Monsieur," said M. de Treville, "we fancy that
we have each cause to complain of the other, and I am come to endeavor to clear
up this affair."
"I have no objection," replied M. de la
Tremouille, "but I warn you that I am well informed, and all the fault is with
your Musketeers."
"You are too just and reasonable a man,
monsieur!" said Treville, "not to accept the proposal I am about to make to
you."
"Make it, monsieur, I listen."
"How is Monsieur Bernajoux, your esquire's
relative?"
"Why, monsieur, very ill indeed! In addition to
the sword thrust in his arm, which is not dangerous, he has received another
right through his lungs, of which the doctor says bad things."
"But has the wounded man retained his senses?"
"Perfectly."
"Does he talk?"
"With difficulty, but he can speak."
"Well, monsieur, let us go to him. Let us
adjure him, in the name of the God before whom he must perhaps appear, to speak
the truth. I will take him for judge in his own cause, monsieur, and will
believe what he will say."
M. de la Tremouille reflected for an instant;
then as it was difficult to suggest a more reasonable proposal, he agreed to it.
Both descended to the chamber in which the
wounded man lay. The latter, on seeing these two noble lords who came to visit
him, endeavored to raise himself up in his bed; but he was too weak, and
exhausted by the effort, he fell back again almost senseless.
M. de la Tremouille approached him, and made
him inhale some salts, which recalled him to life. Then M. de Treville,
unwilling that it should be thought that he had influenced the wounded man,
requested M. de la Tremouille to interrogate him himself.
That happened which M. de Treville had
foreseen. Placed between life and death, as Bernajoux was, he had no idea for a
moment of concealing the truth; and he described to the two nobles the affair
exactly as it had passed.
This was all that M. de Treville wanted. He
wished Bernajoux a speedy convalescence, took leave of M. de la Tremouille,
returned to his hotel, and immediately sent word to the four friends that he
awaited their company at dinner.
M. de Treville entertained good company, wholly
anticardinalist, though. It may easily be understood, therefore, that the
conversation during the whole of dinner turned upon the two checks that his
Eminence's Guardsmen had received. Now, as d'Artagnan had been the hero of these
two fights, it was upon him that all the felicitations fell, which Athos,
Porthos, and Aramis abandoned to him, not only as good comrades, but as men who
had so often had their turn that could very well afford him his.
Toward six o'clock M. de Treville announced
that it was time to go to the Louvre; but as the hour of audience granted by his
Majesty was past, instead of claiming the ENTREE by the back stairs, he placed
himself with the four young men in the antechamber. The king had not yet
returned from hunting. Our young men had been waiting about half an hour, amid a
crowd of courtiers, when all the doors were thrown open, and his Majesty was
announced.
At his announcement d'Artagnan felt himself
tremble to the very marrow of his bones. The coming instant would in all
probability decide the rest of his life. His eyes therefore were fixed in a sort
of agony upon the door through which the king must enter.
Louis XIII appeared, walking fast. He was in
hunting costume covered with dust, wearing large boots, and holding a whip in
his hand. At the first glance, d'Artagnan judged that the mind of the king was
stormy.
This disposition, visible as it was in his
Majesty, did not prevent the courtiers from ranging themselves along his
pathway. In royal antechambers it is worth more to be viewed with an angry eye
than not to be seen at all. The three Musketeers therefore did not hesitate to
make a step forward. D'Artagnan on the contrary remained concealed behind them;
but although the king knew Athos, Porthos, and Aramis personally, he passed
before them without speaking or looking—indeed, as if he had never seen them
before. As for M. de Treville, when the eyes of the king fell upon him, he
sustained the look with so much firmness that it was the king who dropped his
eyes; after which his Majesty, grumbling, entered his apartment.
"Matters go but badly," said Athos, smiling;
"and we shall not be made Chevaliers of the Order this time."
"Wait here ten minutes," said M. de Treville;
"and if at the expiration of ten minutes you do not see me come out, return to
my hotel, for it will be useless for you to wait for me longer."
The four young men waited ten minutes, a
quarter of an hour, twenty minutes; and seeing that M. de Treville did not
return, went away very uneasy as to what was going to happen.
M. de Treville entered the king's cabinet
boldly, and found his Majesty in a very ill humor, seated on an armchair,
beating his boot with the handle of his whip. This, however, did not prevent his
asking, with the greatest coolness, after his Majesty's health.
"Bad, monsieur, bad!" replied the king; "I am
bored."
This was, in fact, the worst complaint of Louis
XIII, who would sometimes take one of his courtiers to a window and say,
"Monsieur So-and-so, let us weary ourselves together."
"How! Your Majesty is bored? Have you not
enjoyed the pleasures of the chase today?"
"A fine pleasure, indeed, monsieur! Upon my
soul, everything degenerates; and I don't know whether it is the game which
leaves no scent, or the dogs that have no noses. We started a stag of ten
branches. We chased him for six hours, and when he was near being taken—when
St.-Simon was already putting his horn to his mouth to sound the mort—crack, all
the pack takes the wrong scent and sets off after a two-year-older. I shall be
obliged to give up hunting, as I have given up hawking. Ah, I am an unfortunate
king, Monsieur de Treville! I had but one gerfalcon, and he died day before
yesterday."
"Indeed, sire, I wholly comprehend your
disappointment. The misfortune is great; but I think you have still a good
number of falcons, sparrow hawks, and tiercets."
"And not a man to instruct them. Falconers are
declining. I know no one but myself who is acquainted with the noble art of
venery. After me it will all be over, and people will hunt with gins, snares,
and traps. If I had but the time to train pupils! But there is the cardinal
always at hand, who does not leave me a moment's repose; who talks to me about
Spain, who talks to me about Austria, who talks to me about England! Ah! A
PROPOS of the cardinal, Monsieur de Treville, I am vexed with you!"
This was the chance at which M. de Treville
waited for the king. He knew the king of old, and he knew that all these
complaints were but a preface—a sort of excitation to encourage himself—and that
he had now come to his point at last.
"And in what have I been so unfortunate as to
displease your Majesty?" asked M. de Treville, feigning the most profound
astonishment.
"Is it thus you perform your charge, monsieur?"
continued the king, without directly replying to de Treville's question. "Is it
for this I name you captain of my Musketeers, that they should assassinate a
man, disturb a whole quarter, and endeavor to set fire to Paris, without your
saying a word? But yet," continued the king, "undoubtedly my haste accuses you
wrongfully; without doubt the rioters are in prison, and you come to tell me
justice is done."
"Sire," replied M. de Treville, calmly, "on the
contrary, I come to demand it of you."
"And against whom?" cried the king.
"Against calumniators," said M. de Treville.
"Ah! This is something new," replied the king.
"Will you tell me that your three damned Musketeers, Athos, Porthos, and Aramis,
and your youngster from Bearn, have not fallen, like so many furies, upon poor
Bernajoux, and have not maltreated him in such a fashion that probably by this
time he is dead? Will you tell me that they did not lay siege to the hotel of
the Duc de la Tremouille, and that they did not endeavor to burn it?—which would
not, perhaps, have been a great misfortune in time of war, seeing that it is
nothing but a nest of Huguenots, but which is, in time of peace, a frightful
example. Tell me, now, can you deny all this?"
"And who told you this fine story, sire?" asked
Treville, quietly.
"Who has told me this fine story, monsieur? Who
should it be but he who watches while I sleep, who labors while I amuse myself,
who conducts everything at home and abroad—in France as in Europe?"
"Your Majesty probably refers to God," said M.
de Treville; "for I know no one except God who can be so far above your
Majesty."
"No, monsieur; I speak of the prop of the
state, of my only servant, of my only friend—of the cardinal."
"His Eminence is not his holiness, sire."
"What do you mean by that, monsieur?"
"That it is only the Pope who is infallible,
and that this infallibility does not extend to cardinals."
"You mean to say that he deceives me; you mean
to say that he betrays me? You accuse him, then? Come, speak; avow freely that
you accuse him!"
"No, sire, but I say that he deceives himself.
I say that he is ill-informed. I say that he has hastily accused your Majesty's
Musketeers, toward whom he is unjust, and that he has not obtained his
information from good sources."
"The accusation comes from Monsieur de la
Tremouille, from the duke himself. What do you say to that?"
"I might answer, sire, that he is too deeply
interested in the question to be a very impartial witness; but so far from that,
sire, I know the duke to be a royal gentleman, and I refer the matter to him—but
upon one condition, sire."
"What?"
"It is that your Majesty will make him come
here, will interrogate him yourself, TETE-A-TETE, without witnesses, and that I
shall see your Majesty as soon as you have seen the duke."
"What, then! You will bind yourself," cried the
king, "by what Monsieur de la Tremouille shall say?"
"Yes, sire."
"You will accept his judgment?"
"Undoubtedly."
"Any you will submit to the reparation he may
require?"
"Certainly."
"La Chesnaye," said the king. "La Chesnaye!"
Louis XIII's confidential valet, who never left
the door, entered in reply to the call.
"La Chesnaye," said the king, "let someone go
instantly and find Monsieur de la Tremouille; I wish to speak with him this
evening."
"Your Majesty gives me your word that you will
not see anyone between Monsieur de la Tremouille and myself?"
"Nobody, by the faith of a gentleman."
"Tomorrow, then, sire?"
"Tomorrow, monsieur."
"At what o'clock, please your Majesty?"
"At any hour you will."
"But in coming too early I should be afraid of
awakening your Majesty."
"Awaken me! Do you think I ever sleep, then? I
sleep no longer, monsieur. I sometimes dream, that's all. Come, then, as early
as you like—at seven o'clock; but beware, if you and your Musketeers are
guilty."
"If my Musketeers are guilty, sire, the guilty
shall be placed in your Majesty's hands, who will dispose of them at your good
pleasure. Does your Majesty require anything further? Speak, I am ready to
obey."
"No, monsieur, no; I am not called Louis the
Just without reason. Tomorrow, then, monsieur—tomorrow."
"Till then, God preserve your Majesty!"
However ill the king might sleep, M. de
Treville slept still worse. He had ordered his three Musketeers and their
companion to be with him at half past six in the morning. He took them with him,
without encouraging them or promising them anything, and without concealing from
them that their luck, and even his own, depended upon the cast of the dice.
Arrived at the foot of the back stairs, he
desired them to wait. If the king was still irritated against them, they would
depart without being seen; if the king consented to see them, they would only
have to be called.
On arriving at the king's private antechamber,
M. de Treville found La Chesnaye, who informed him that they had not been able
to find M. de la Tremouille on the preceding evening at his hotel, that he
returned too late to present himself at the Louvre, that he had only that moment
arrived and that he was at that very hour with the king.
This circumstance pleased M. de Treville much,
as he thus became certain that no foreign suggestion could insinuate itself
between M. de la Tremouille's testimony and himself.
In fact, ten minutes had scarcely passed away
when the door of the king's closet opened, and M. de Treville saw M. de la
Tremouille come out. The duke came straight up to him, and said: "Monsieur de
Treville, his Majesty has just sent for me in order to inquire respecting the
circumstances which took place yesterday at my hotel. I have told him the truth;
that is to say, that the fault lay with my people, and that I was ready to offer
you my excuses. Since I have the good fortune to meet you, I beg you to receive
them, and to hold me always as one of your friends."
"Monsieur the Duke," said M. de Treville, "I
was so confident of your loyalty that I required no other defender before his
Majesty than yourself. I find that I have not been mistaken, and I thank you
that there is still one man in France of whom may be said, without
disappointment, what I have said of you."
"That's well said," cried the king, who had
heard all these compliments through the open door; "only tell him, Treville,
since he wishes to be considered your friend, that I also wish to be one of his,
but he neglects me; that it is nearly three years since I have seen him, and
that I never do see him unless I send for him. Tell him all this for me, for
these are things which a king cannot say for himself."
"Thanks, sire, thanks," said the duke; "but
your Majesty may be assured that it is not those—I do not speak of Monsieur de
Treville—whom your Majesty sees at all hours of the day that are most devoted to
you."
"Ah! You have heard what I said? So much the
better, Duke, so much the better," said the king, advancing toward the door.
"Ah! It is you, Treville. Where are your Musketeers? I told you the day before
yesterday to bring them with you; why have you not done so?"
"They are below, sire, and with your permission
La Chesnaye will bid them come up."
"Yes, yes, let them come up immediately. It is
nearly eight o'clock, and at nine I expect a visit. Go, Monsieur Duke, and
return often. Come in, Treville."
The Duke saluted and retired. At the moment he
opened the door, the three Musketeers and d'Artagnan, conducted by La Chesnaye,
appeared at the top of the staircase.
"Come in, my braves," said the king, "come in;
I am going to scold you."
The Musketeers advanced, bowing, d'Artagnan
following closely behind them.
"What the devil!" continued the king. "Seven of
his Eminence's Guards placed HORS DE COMBAT by you four in two days! That's too
many, gentlemen, too many! If you go on so, his Eminence will be forced to renew
his company in three weeks, and I to put the edicts in force in all their rigor.
One now and then I don't say much about; but seven in two days, I repeat, it is
too many, it is far too many!"
"Therefore, sire, your Majesty sees that they
are come, quite contrite and repentant, to offer you their excuses."
"Quite contrite and repentant! Hem!" said the
king. "I place no confidence in their hypocritical faces. In particular, there
is one yonder of a Gascon look. Come hither, monsieur."
D'Artagnan, who understood that it was to him
this compliment was addressed, approached, assuming a most deprecating air.
"Why you told me he was a young man? This is a
boy, Treville, a mere boy! Do you mean to say that it was he who bestowed that
severe thrust at Jussac?"
"And those two equally fine thrusts at
Bernajoux."
"Truly!"
"Without reckoning," said Athos, "that if he
had not rescued me from the hands of Cahusac, I should not now have the honor of
making my very humble reverence to your Majesty."
"Why he is a very devil, this Bearnais!
VENTRE-SAINT-GRIS, Monsieur de Treville, as the king my father would have said.
But at this sort of work, many doublets must be slashed and many swords broken.
Now, Gascons are always poor, are they not?"
"Sire, I can assert that they have hitherto
discovered no gold mines in their mountains; though the Lord owes them this
miracle in recompense for the manner in which they supported the pretensions of
the king your father."
"Which is to say that the Gascons made a king
of me, myself, seeing that I am my father's son, is it not, Treville? Well,
happily, I don't say nay to it. La Chesnaye, go and see if by rummaging all my
pockets you can find forty pistoles; and if you can find them, bring them to me.
And now let us see, young man, with your hand upon your conscience, how did all
this come to pass?"
D'Artagnan related the adventure of the
preceding day in all its details; how, not having been able to sleep for the joy
he felt in the expectation of seeing his Majesty, he had gone to his three
friends three hours before the hour of audience; how they had gone together to
the tennis court, and how, upon the fear he had manifested lest he receive a
ball in the face, he had been jeered at by Bernajoux who had nearly paid for his
jeer with his life and M. de la Tremouille, who had nothing to do with the
matter, with the loss of his hotel.
"This is all very well," murmured the king,
"yes, this is just the account the duke gave me of the affair. Poor cardinal!
Seven men in two days, and those of his very best! But that's quite enough,
gentlemen; please to understand, that's enough. You have taken your revenge for
the Rue Ferou, and even exceeded it; you ought to be satisfied."
"If your Majesty is so," said Treville, "we
are."
"Oh, yes; I am," added the king, taking a
handful of gold from La Chesnaye, and putting it into the hand of d'Artagnan.
"Here," said he, "is a proof of my satisfaction."
At this epoch, the ideas of pride which are in
fashion in our days did not prevail. A gentleman received, from hand to hand,
money from the king, and was not the least in the world humiliated. D'Artagnan
put his forty pistoles into his pocket without any scruple—on the contrary,
thanking his Majesty greatly.
"There," said the king, looking at a clock,
"there, now, as it is half past eight, you may retire; for as I told you, I
expect someone at nine. Thanks for your devotedness, gentlemen. I may continue
to rely upon it, may I not?"
"Oh, sire!" cried the four companions, with one
voice, "we would allow ourselves to be cut to pieces in your Majesty's service."
"Well, well, but keep whole; that will be
better, and you will be more useful to me. Treville," added the king, in a low
voice, as the others were retiring, "as you have no room in the Musketeers, and
as we have besides decided that a novitiate is necessary before entering that
corps, place this young man in the company of the Guards of Monsieur Dessessart,
your brother-in-law. Ah, PARDIEU, Treville! I enjoy beforehand the face the
cardinal will make. He will be furious; but I don't care. I am doing what is
right."
The king waved his hand to Treville, who left
him and rejoined the Musketeers, whom he found sharing the forty pistoles with
d'Artagnan.
The cardinal, as his Majesty had said, was
really furious, so furious that during eight days he absented himself from the
king's gaming table. This did not prevent the king from being as complacent to
him as possible whenever he met him, or from asking in the kindest tone, "Well,
Monsieur Cardinal, how fares it with that poor Jussac and that poor Bernajoux of
yours?"
7 THE INTERIOR OF "THE MUSKETEERS"
When d'Artagnan was out of the Louvre, and
consulted his friends upon the use he had best make of his share of the forty
pistoles, Athos advised him to order a good repast at the Pomme-de-Pin, Porthos
to engage a lackey, and Aramis to provide himself with a suitable mistress.
The repast was carried into effect that very
day, and the lackey waited at table. The repast had been ordered by Athos, and
the lackey furnished by Porthos. He was a Picard, whom the glorious Musketeer
had picked up on the Bridge Tournelle, making rings and plashing in the water.
Porthos pretended that this occupation was
proof of a reflective and contemplative organization, and he had brought him
away without any other recommendation. The noble carriage of this gentleman, for
whom he believed himself to be engaged, had won Planchet—that was the name of
the Picard. He felt a slight disappointment, however, when he saw that this
place was already taken by a compeer named Mousqueton, and when Porthos
signified to him that the state of his household, though great, would not
support two servants, and that he must enter into the service of d'Artagnan.
Nevertheless, when he waited at the dinner given by his master, and saw him take
out a handful of gold to pay for it, he believed his fortune made, and returned
thanks to heaven for having thrown him into the service of such a Croesus. He
preserved this opinion even after the feast, with the remnants of which he
repaired his own long abstinence; but when in the evening he made his master's
bed, the chimeras of Planchet faded away. The bed was the only one in the
apartment, which consisted of an antechamber and a bedroom. Planchet slept in
the antechamber upon a coverlet taken from the bed of d'Artagnan, and which
d'Artagnan from that time made shift to do without.
Athos, on his part, had a valet whom he had
trained in his service in a thoroughly peculiar fashion, and who was named
Grimaud. He was very taciturn, this worthy signor. Be it understood we are
speaking of Athos. During the five or six years that he had lived in the
strictest intimacy with his companions, Porthos and Aramis, they could remember
having often seen him smile, but had never heard him laugh. His words were brief
and expressive, conveying all that was meant, and no more; no embellishments, no
embroidery, no arabesques. His conversation a matter of fact, without a single
romance.
Although Athos was scarcely thirty years old,
and was of great personal beauty and intelligence of mind, no one knew whether
he had ever had a mistress. He never spoke of women. He certainly did not
prevent others from speaking of them before him, although it was easy to
perceive that this kind of conversation, in which he only mingled by bitter
words and misanthropic remarks, was very disagreeable to him. His reserve, his
roughness, and his silence made almost an old man of him. He had, then, in order
not to disturb his habits, accustomed Grimaud to obey him upon a simple gesture
or upon a simple movement of his lips. He never spoke to him, except under the
most extraordinary occasions.
Sometimes, Grimaud, who feared his master as he
did fire, while entertaining a strong attachment to his person and a great
veneration for his talents, believed he perfectly understood what he wanted,
flew to execute the order received, and did precisely the contrary. Athos then
shrugged his shoulders, and, without putting himself in a passion, thrashed
Grimaud. On these days he spoke a little.
Porthos, as we have seen, had a character
exactly opposite to that of Athos. He not only talked much, but he talked
loudly, little caring, we must render him that justice, whether anybody listened
to him or not. He talked for the pleasure of talking and for the pleasure of
hearing himself talk. He spoke upon all subjects except the sciences, alleging
in this respect the inveterate hatred he had borne to scholars from his
childhood. He had not so noble an air as Athos, and the commencement of their
intimacy often rendered him unjust toward that gentleman, whom he endeavored to
eclipse by his splendid dress. But with his simple Musketeer's uniform and
nothing but the manner in which he threw back his head and advanced his foot,
Athos instantly took the place which was his due and consigned the ostentatious
Porthos to the second rank. Porthos consoled himself by filling the antechamber
of M. de Treville and the guardroom of the Louvre with the accounts of his love
scrapes, after having passed from professional ladies to military ladies, from
the lawyer's dame to the baroness, there was question of nothing less with
Porthos than a foreign princess, who was enormously fond of him.
An old proverb says, "Like master, like man."
Let us pass, then, from the valet of Athos to the valet of Porthos, from Grimaud
to Mousqueton.
Mousqueton was a Norman, whose pacific name of
Boniface his master had changed into the infinitely more sonorous name of
Mousqueton. He had entered the service of Porthos upon condition that he should
only be clothed and lodged, though in a handsome manner; but he claimed two
hours a day to himself, consecrated to an employment which would provide for his
other wants. Porthos agreed to the bargain; the thing suited him wonderfully
well. He had doublets cut out of his old clothes and cast-off cloaks for
Mousqueton, and thanks to a very intelligent tailor, who made his clothes look
as good as new by turning them, and whose wife was suspected of wishing to make
Porthos descend from his aristocratic habits, Mousqueton made a very good figure
when attending on his master.
As for Aramis, of whom we believe we have
sufficiently explained the character—a character which, like that of his lackey
was called Bazin. Thanks to the hopes which his master entertained of someday
entering into orders, he was always clothed in black, as became the servant of a
churchman. He was a Berrichon, thirty-five or forty years old, mild, peaceable,
sleek, employing the leisure his master left him in the perusal of pious works,
providing rigorously for two a dinner of few dishes, but excellent. For the
rest, he was dumb, blind, and deaf, and of unimpeachable fidelity.
And now that we are acquainted, superficially
at least, with the masters and the valets, let us pass on to the dwellings
occupied by each of them.
Athos dwelt in the Rue Ferou, within two steps
of the Luxembourg. His apartment consisted of two small chambers, very nicely
fitted up, in a furnished house, the hostess of which, still young and still
really handsome, cast tender glances uselessly at him. Some fragments of past
splendor appeared here and there upon the walls of this modest lodging; a sword,
for example, richly embossed, which belonged by its make to the times of Francis
I, the hilt of which alone, encrusted with precious stones, might be worth two
hundred pistoles, and which, nevertheless, in his moments of greatest distress
Athos had never pledged or offered for sale. It had long been an object of
ambition for Porthos. Porthos would have given ten years of his life to possess
this sword.
One day, when he had an appointment with a
duchess, he endeavored even to borrow it of Athos. Athos, without saying
anything, emptied his pockets, got together all his jewels, purses,
aiguillettes, and gold chains, and offered them all to Porthos; but as to the
sword, he said it was sealed to its place and should never quit it until its
master should himself quit his lodgings. In addition to the sword, there was a
portrait representing a nobleman of the time of Henry III, dressed with the
greatest elegance, and who wore the Order of the Holy Ghost; and this portrait
had certain resemblances of lines with Athos, certain family likenesses which
indicated that this great noble, a knight of the Order of the King, was his
ancestor.
Besides these, a casket of magnificent
goldwork, with the same arms as the sword and the portrait, formed a middle
ornament to the mantelpiece, and assorted badly with the rest of the furniture.
Athos always carried the key of this coffer about him; but he one day opened it
before Porthos, and Porthos was convinced that this coffer contained nothing but
letters and papers—love letters and family papers, no doubt.
Porthos lived in an apartment, large in size
and of very sumptuous appearance, in the Rue du Vieux-Colombier. Every time he
passed with a friend before his windows, at one of which Mousqueton was sure to
be placed in full livery, Porthos raised his head and his hand, and said, "That
is my abode!" But he was never to be found at home; he never invited anybody to
go up with him, and no one could form an idea of what his sumptuous apartment
contained in the shape of real riches.
As to Aramis, he dwelt in a little lodging
composed of a boudoir, an eating room, and a bedroom, which room, situated, as
the others were, on the ground floor, looked out upon a little fresh green
garden, shady and impenetrable to the eyes of his neighbors.
With regard to d'Artagnan, we know how he was
lodged, and we have already made acquaintance with his lackey, Master Planchet.
D'Artagnan, who was by nature very curious—as
people generally are who possess the genius of intrigue—did all he could to make
out who Athos, Porthos, and Aramis really were (for under these pseudonyms each
of these young men concealed his family name)—Athos in particular, who, a league
away, savored of nobility. He addressed himself then to Porthos to gain
information respecting Athos and Aramis, and to Aramis in order to learn
something of Porthos.
Unfortunately Porthos knew nothing of the life
of his silent companion but what revealed itself. It was said Athos had met with
great crosses in love, and that a frightful treachery had forever poisoned the
life of this gallant man. What could this treachery be? All the world was
ignorant of it.
As to Porthos, except his real name (as was the
case with those of his two comrades), his life was very easily known. Vain and
indiscreet, it was as easy to see through him as through a crystal. The only
thing to mislead the investigator would have been belief in all the good things
he said of himself.
With respect to Aramis, though having the air
of having nothing secret about him, he was a young fellow made up of mysteries,
answering little to questions put to him about others, and having learned from
him the report which prevailed concerning the success of the Musketeer with a
princess, wished to gain a little insight into the amorous adventures of his
interlocutor. "And you, my dear companion," said he, "you speak of the
baronesses, countesses, and princesses of others?"
"PARDIEU! I spoke of them because Porthos
talked of them himself, because he had paraded all these fine things before me.
But be assured, my dear Monsieur d'Artagnan, that if I had obtained them from
any other source, or if they had been confided to me, there exists no confessor
more discreet than myself."
"Oh, I don't doubt that," replied d'Artagnan;
"but it seems to me that you are tolerably familiar with coats of arms—a certain
embroidered handkerchief, for instance, to which I owe the honor of your
acquaintance?"
This time Aramis was not angry, but assumed the
most modest air and replied in a friendly tone, "My dear friend, do not forget
that I wish to belong to the Church, and that I avoid all mundane opportunities.
The handkerchief you saw had not been given to me, but it had been forgotten and
left at my house by one of my friends. I was obliged to pick it up in order not
to compromise him and the lady he loves. As for myself, I neither have, nor
desire to have, a mistress, following in that respect the very judicious example
of Athos, who has none any more than I have."
"But what the devil! You are not a priest, you
are a Musketeer!"
"A Musketeer for a time, my friend, as the
cardinal says, a Musketeer against my will, but a churchman at heart, believe
me. Athos and Porthos dragged me into this to occupy me. I had, at the moment of
being ordained, a little difficulty with—But that would not interest you, and I
am taking up your valuable time."
"Not at all; it interests me very much," cried
d'Artagnan; "and at this moment I have absolutely nothing to do."
"Yes, but I have my breviary to repeat,"
answered Aramis; "then some verses to compose, which Madame d'Aiguillon begged
of me. Then I must go to the Rue St. Honore in order to purchase some rouge for
Madame de Chevreuse. So you see, my dear friend, that if you are not in a hurry,
I am very much in a hurry."
Aramis held out his hand in a cordial manner to
his young companion, and took leave of him.
Notwithstanding all the pains he took,
d'Artagnan was unable to learn any more concerning his three new-made friends.
He formed, therefore, the resolution of believing for the present all that was
said of their past, hoping for more certain and extended revelations in the
future. In the meanwhile, he looked upon Athos as an Achilles, Porthos as an
Ajax, and Aramis as a Joseph.
As to the rest, the life of the four young
friends was joyous enough. Athos played, and that as a rule unfortunately.
Nevertheless, he never borrowed a sou of his companions, although his purse was
ever at their service; and when he had played upon honor, he always awakened his
creditor by six o'clock the next morning to pay the debt of the preceding
evening.
Porthos had his fits. On the days when he won
he was insolent and ostentatious; if he lost, he disappeared completely for
several days, after which he reappeared with a pale face and thinner person, but
with money in his purse.
As to Aramis, he never played. He was the worst
Musketeer and the most unconvivial companion imaginable. He had always something
or other to do. Sometimes in the midst of dinner, when everyone, under the
attraction of wine and in the warmth of conversation, believed they had two or
three hours longer to enjoy themselves at table, Aramis looked at his watch,
arose with a bland smile, and took leave of the company, to go, as he said, to
consult a casuist with whom he had an appointment. At other times he would
return home to write a treatise, and requested his friends not to disturb him.
At this Athos would smile, with his charming,
melancholy smile, which so became his noble countenance, and Porthos would
drink, swearing that Aramis would never be anything but a village CURE.
Planchet, d'Artagnan's valet, supported his
good fortune nobly. He received thirty sous per day, and for a month he returned
to his lodgings gay as a chaffinch, and affable toward his master. When the wind
of adversity began to blow upon the housekeeping of the Rue des Fossoyeurs—that
is to say, when the forty pistoles of King Louis XIII were consumed or nearly
so—he commenced complaints which Athos thought nauseous, Porthos indecent, and
Aramis ridiculous. Athos counseled d'Artagnan to dismiss the fellow; Porthos was
of opinion that he should give him a good thrashing first; and Aramis contended
that a master should never attend to anything but the civilities paid to him.
"This is all very easy for you to say," replied
d'Artagnan, "for you, Athos, who live like a dumb man with Grimaud, who forbid
him to speak, and consequently never exchange ill words with him; for you,
Porthos, who carry matters in such a magnificent style, and are a god to your
valet, Mousqueton; and for you, Aramis, who, always abstracted by your
theological studies, inspire your servant, Bazin, a mild, religious man, with a
profound respect; but for me, who am without any settled means and without
resources—for me, who am neither a Musketeer nor even a Guardsman, what I am to
do to inspire either the affection, the terror, or the respect in Planchet?"
"This is serious," answered the three friends;
"it is a family affair. It is with valets as with wives, they must be placed at
once upon the footing in which you wish them to remain. Reflect upon it."
D'Artagnan did reflect, and resolved to thrash
Planchet provisionally; which he did with the conscientiousness that d'Artagnan
carried into everything. After having well beaten him, he forbade him to leave
his service without his permission. "For," added he, "the future cannot fail to
mend; I inevitably look for better times. Your fortune is therefore made if you
remain with me, and I am too good a master to allow you to miss such a chance by
granting you the dismissal you require."
This manner of acting roused much respect for
d'Artagnan's policy among the Musketeers. Planchet was equally seized with
admiration, and said no more about going away.
The life of the four young men had become
fraternal. D'Artagnan, who had no settled habits of his own, as he came from his
province into the midst of his world quite new to him, fell easily into the
habits of his friends.
They rose about eight o'clock in the winter,
about six in summer, and went to take the countersign and see how things went on
at M. de Treville's. D'Artagnan, although he was not a Musketeer, performed the
duty of one with remarkable punctuality. He went on guard because he always kept
company with whoever of his friends was on duty. He was well known at the Hotel
of the Musketeers, where everyone considered him a good comrade. M. de Treville,
who had appreciated him at the first glance and who bore him a real affection,
never ceased recommending him to the king.
On their side, the three Musketeers were much
attached to their young comrade. The friendship which united these four men, and
the need they felt of seeing another three or four times a day, whether for
dueling, business, or pleasure, caused them to be continually running after one
another like shadows; and the Inseparables were constantly to be met with
seeking one another, from the Luxembourg to the Place St. Sulpice, or from the
Rue du Vieux-Colombier to the Luxembourg.
In the meanwhile the promises of M. de Treville
went on prosperously. One fine morning the king commanded M. de Chevalier
Dessessart to admit d'Artagnan as a cadet in his company of Guards. D'Artagnan,
with a sigh, donned his uniform, which he would have exchanged for that of a
Musketeer at the expense of ten years of his existence. But M. de Treville
promised this favor after a novitiate of two years—a novitiate which might
besides be abridged if an opportunity should present itself for d'Artagnan to
render the king any signal service, or to distinguish himself by some brilliant
action. Upon this promise d'Artagnan withdrew, and the next day he began
service.
Then it became the turn of Athos, Porthos, and
Aramis to mount guard with d'Artagnan when he was on duty. The company of M. le
Chevalier Dessessart thus received four instead of one when it admitted
d'Artagnan.
8 CONCERNING A COURT INTRIGUE
In the meantime, the forty pistoles of King
Louis XIII, like all other things of this world, after having had a beginning
had an end, and after this end our four companions began to be somewhat
embarrassed. At first, Athos supported the association for a time with his own
means.
Porthos succeeded him; and thanks to one of
those disappearances to which he was accustomed, he was able to provide for the
wants of all for a fortnight. At last it became Aramis's turn, who performed it
with a good grace and who succeeded—as he said, by selling some theological
books—in procuring a few pistoles.
Then, as they had been accustomed to do, they
had recourse to M. de Treville, who made some advances on their pay; but these
advances could not go far with three Musketeers who were already much in arrears
and a Guardsman who as yet had no pay at all.
At length when they found they were likely to
be really in want, they got together, as a last effort, eight or ten pistoles,
with which Porthos went to the gaming table. Unfortunately he was in a bad vein;
he lost all, together with twenty-five pistoles for which he had given his word.
Then the inconvenience became distress. The
hungry friends, followed by their lackeys, were seen haunting the quays and
Guard rooms, picking up among their friends abroad all the dinners they could
meet with; for according to the advice of Aramis, it was prudent to sow repasts
right and left in prosperity, in order to reap a few in time of need.
Athos was invited four times, and each time
took his friends and their lackeys with him. Porthos had six occasions, and
contrived in the same manner that his friends should partake of them; Aramis had
eight of them. He was a man, as must have been already perceived, who made but
little noise, and yet was much sought after.
As to d'Artagnan, who as yet knew nobody in the
capital, he only found one chocolate breakfast at the house of a priest of his
own province, and one dinner at the house of a cornet of the Guards. He took his
army to the priest's, where they devoured as much provision as would have lasted
him for two months, and to the cornet's, who performed wonders; but as Planchet
said, "People do not eat at once for all time, even when they eat a good deal."
D'Artagnan thus felt himself humiliated in
having only procured one meal and a half for his companions—as the breakfast at
the priest's could only be counted as half a repast—in return for the feasts
which Athos, Porthos, and Aramis had procured him. He fancied himself a burden
to the society, forgetting in his perfectly juvenile good faith that he had fed
this society for a month; and he set his mind actively to work. He reflected
that this coalition of four young, brave, enterprising, and active men ought to
have some other object than swaggering walks, fencing lessons, and practical
jokes, more or less witty.
In fact, four men such as they were—four men
devoted to one another, from their purses to their lives; four men always
supporting one another, never yielding, executing singly or together the
resolutions formed in common; four arms threatening the four cardinal points, or
turning toward a single point—must inevitably, either subterraneously, in open
day, by mining, in the trench, by cunning, or by force, open themselves a way
toward the object they wished to attain, however well it might be defended, or
however distant it may seem. The only thing that astonished d'Artagnan was that
his friends had never thought of this.
He was thinking by himself, and even seriously
racking his brain to find a direction for this single force four times
multiplied, with which he did not doubt, as with the lever for which Archimedes
sought, they should succeed in moving the world, when someone tapped gently at
his door. D'Artagnan awakened Planchet and ordered him to open it.
From this phrase, "d'Artagnan awakened
Planchet," the reader must not suppose it was night, or that day was hardly
come. No, it had just struck four. Planchet, two hours before, had asked his
master for some dinner, and he had answered him with the proverb, "He who
sleeps, dines." And Planchet dined by sleeping.
A man was introduced of simple mien, who had
the appearance of a tradesman. Planchet, by way of dessert, would have liked to
hear the conversation; but the citizen declared to d'Artagnan that what he had
to say being important and confidential, he desired to be left alone with him.
D'Artagnan dismissed Planchet, and requested
his visitor to be seated. There was a moment of silence, during which the two
men looked at each other, as if to make a preliminary acquaintance, after which
d'Artagnan bowed, as a sign that he listened.
"I have heard Monsieur d'Artagnan spoken of as
a very brave young man," said the citizen; "and this reputation which he justly
enjoys had decided me to confide a secret to him."
"Speak, monsieur, speak," said d'Artagnan, who
instinctively scented something advantageous.
The citizen made a fresh pause and continued,
"I have a wife who is seamstress to the queen, monsieur, and who is not
deficient in either virtue or beauty. I was induced to marry her about three
years ago, although she had but very little dowry, because Monsieur Laporte, the
queen's cloak bearer, is her godfather, and befriends her."
"Well, monsieur?" asked d'Artagnan.
"Well!" resumed the citizen, "well, monsieur,
my wife was abducted yesterday morning, as she was coming out of her workroom."
"And by whom was your wife abducted?"
"I know nothing surely, monsieur, but I suspect
someone."
"And who is the person whom you suspect?"
"A man who has pursued her a long time."
"The devil!"
"But allow me to tell you, monsieur," continued
the citizen, "that I am convinced that there is less love than politics in all
this."
"Less love than politics," replied d'Artagnan,
with a reflective air; "and what do you suspect?"
"I do not know whether I ought to tell you what
I suspect."
"Monsieur, I beg you to observe that I ask you
absolutely nothing. It is you who have come to me. It is you who have told me
that you had a secret to confide in me. Act, then, as you think proper; there is
still time to withdraw."
"No, monsieur, no; you appear to be an honest
young man, and I will have confidence in you. I believe, then, that it is not on
account of any intrigues of her own that my wife has been arrested, but because
of those of a lady much greater than herself."
"Ah, ah! Can it be on account of the amours of
Madame de Bois-Tracy?" said d'Artagnan, wishing to have the air, in the eyes of
the citizen, of being posted as to court affairs.
"Higher, monsieur, higher."
"Of Madame d'Aiguillon?"
"Still higher."
"Of Madame de Chevreuse?"
"Of the—" d'Artagnan checked himself.
"Yes, monsieur," replied the terrified citizen,
in a tone so low that he was scarcely audible.
"And with whom?"
"With whom can it be, if not the Duke of—"
"The Duke of—"
"Yes, monsieur," replied the citizen, giving a
still fainter intonation to his voice.
"But how do you know all this?"
"How do I know it?"
"Yes, how do you know it? No half-confidence,
or—you understand!"
"I know it from my wife, monsieur—from my wife
herself."
"Who learns it from whom?"
"From Monsieur Laporte. Did I not tell you that
she was the goddaughter of Monsieur Laporte, the confidential man of the queen?
Well, Monsieur Laporte placed her near her Majesty in order that our poor queen
might at least have someone in whom she could place confidence, abandoned as she
is by the king, watched as she is by the cardinal, betrayed as she is by
everybody."
"Ah, ah! It begins to develop itself," said
d'Artagnan.
"Now, my wife came home four days ago,
monsieur. One of her conditions was that she should come and see me twice a
week; for, as I had the honor to tell you, my wife loves me dearly—my wife,
then, came and confided to me that the queen at that very moment entertained
great fears."
"Truly!"
"Yes. The cardinal, as it appears, pursues he
and persecutes her more than ever. He cannot pardon her the history of the
Saraband. You know the history of the Saraband?"
"PARDIEU! Know it!" replied d'Artagnan, who
knew nothing about it, but who wished to appear to know everything that was
going on.
"So that now it is no longer hatred, but
vengeance."
"Indeed!"
"And the queen believes—"
"Well, what does the queen believe?"
"She believes that someone has written to the
Duke of Buckingham in her name."
"In the queen's name?"
"Yes, to make him come to Paris; and when once
come to Paris, to draw him into some snare."
"The devil! But your wife, monsieur, what has
she to do with all this?"
"Her devotion to the queen is known; and they
wish either to remove her from her mistress, or to intimidate her, in order to
obtain her Majesty's secrets, or to seduce her and make use of her as a spy."
"That is likely," said d'Artagnan; "but the man
who has abducted her—do you know him?"
"I have told you that I believe I know him."
"His name?"
"I do not know that; what I do know is that he
is a creature of the cardinal, his evil genius."
"But you have seen him?"
"Yes, my wife pointed him out to me one day."
"Has he anything remarkable about him by which
one may recognize him?"
"Oh, certainly; he is a noble of very lofty
carriage, black hair, swarthy complexion, piercing eye, white teeth, and has a
scar on his temple."
"A scar on his temple!" cried d'Artagnan; "and
with that, white teeth, a piercing eye, dark complexion, black hair, and haughty
carriage—why, that's my man of Meung."
"He is your man, do you say?"
"Yes, yes; but that has nothing to do with it.
No, I am wrong. On the contrary, that simplifies the matter greatly. If your man
is mine, with one blow I shall obtain two revenges, that's all; but where to
find this man?"
"I know not."
"Have you no information as to his abiding
place?"
"None. One day, as I was conveying my wife back
to the Louvre, he was coming out as she was going in, and she showed him to me."
"The devil! The devil!" murmured d'Artagnan;
"all this is vague enough. From whom have you learned of the abduction of your
wife?"
"From Monsieur Laporte."
"Did he give you any details?"
"He knew none himself."
"And you have learned nothing from any other
quarter?"
"Yes, I have received—"
"What?"
"I fear I am committing a great imprudence."
"You always come back to that; but I must make
you see this time that it is too late to retreat."
"I do not retreat, MORDIEU!" cried the citizen,
swearing in order to rouse his courage. "Besides, by the faith of Bonacieux—"
"You call yourself Bonacieux?" interrupted
d'Artagnan.
"Yes, that is my name."
"You said, then, by the word of Bonacieux.
Pardon me for interrupting you, but it appears to me that that name is familiar
to me."
"Possibly, monsieur. I am your landlord."
"Ah, ah!" said d'Artagnan, half rising and
bowing; "you are my landlord?"
"Yes, monsieur, yes. And as it is three months
since you have been here, and though, distracted as you must be in your
important occupations, you have forgotten to pay me my rent—as, I say, I have
not tormented you a single instant, I thought you would appreciate my delicacy."
"How can it be otherwise, my dear Bonacieux?"
replied d'Artagnan; "trust me, I am fully grateful for such unparalleled
conduct, and if, as I told you, I can be of any service to you—"
"I believe you, monsieur, I believe you; and as
I was about to say, by the word of Bonacieux, I have confidence in you."
"Finish, then, what you were about to say."
The citizen took a paper from his pocket, and
presented it to d'Artagnan.
"A letter?" said the young man.
"Which I received this morning."
D'Artagnan opened it, and as the day was
beginning to decline, he approached the window to read it. The citizen followed
him.
"'Do not seek your wife,'" read d'Artagnan;
"'she will be restored to you when there is no longer occasion for her. If you
make a single step to find her you are lost.'
"That's pretty positive," continued d'Artagnan;
"but after all, it is but a menace."
"Yes; but that menace terrifies me. I am not a
fighting man at all, monsieur, and I am afraid of the Bastille."
"Hum!" said d'Artagnan. "I have no greater
regard for the Bastille than you. If it were nothing but a sword thrust, why
then—"
"I have counted upon you on this occasion,
monsieur."
"Yes?"
"Seeing you constantly surrounded by Musketeers
of a very superb appearance, and knowing that these Musketeers belong to
Monsieur de Treville, and were consequently enemies of the cardinal, I thought
that you and your friends, while rendering justice to your poor queen, would be
pleased to play his Eminence an ill turn."
"Without doubt."
"And then I have thought that considering three
months' lodging, about which I have said nothing—"
"Yes, yes; you have already given me that
reason, and I find it excellent."
"Reckoning still further, that as long as you
do me the honor to remain in my house I shall never speak to you about rent—"
"Very kind!"
"And adding to this, if there be need of it,
meaning to offer you fifty pistoles, if, against all probability, you should be
short at the present moment."
"Admirable! You are rich then, my dear Monsieur
Bonacieux?"
"I am comfortably off, monsieur, that's all; I
have scraped together some such thing as an income of two or three thousand
crown in the haberdashery business, but more particularly in venturing some
funds in the last voyage of the celebrated navigator Jean Moquet; so that you
understand, monsieur—But—" cried the citizen.
"What!" demanded d'Artagnan.
"Whom do I see yonder?"
"Where?"
"In the street, facing your window, in the
embrasure of that door—a man wrapped in a cloak."
"It is he!" cried d'Artagnan and the citizen at
the same time, each having recognized his man.
"Ah, this time," cried d'Artagnan, springing to
his sword, "this time he will not escape me!"
Drawing his sword from its scabbard, he rushed
out of the apartment. On the staircase he met Athos and Porthos, who were coming
to see him. They separated, and d'Artagnan rushed between them like a dart.
"Pah! Where are you going?" cried the two
Musketeers in a breath.
"The man of Meung!" replied d'Artagnan, and
disappeared.
D'Artagnan had more than once related to his
friends his adventure with the stranger, as well as the apparition of the
beautiful foreigner, to whom this man had confided some important missive.
The opinion of Athos was that d'Artagnan had
lost his letter in the skirmish. A gentleman, in his opinion—and according to
d'Artagnan's portrait of him, the stranger must be a gentleman—would be
incapable of the baseness of stealing a letter.
Porthos saw nothing in all this but a love
meeting, given by a lady to a cavalier, or by a cavalier to a lady, which had
been disturbed by the presence of d'Artagnan and his yellow horse.
Aramis said that as these sorts of affairs were
mysterious, it was better not to fathom them.
They understood, then, from the few words which
escaped from d'Artagnan, what affair was in hand, and as they thought that
overtaking his man, or losing sight of him, d'Artagnan would return to his
rooms, they kept on their way.
When they entered d'Artagnan's chamber, it was
empty; the landlord, dreading the consequences of the encounter which was
doubtless about to take place between the young man and the stranger, had,
consistent with the character he had given himself, judged it prudent to decamp.
9 D'ARTAGNAN SHOWS HIMSELF
As Athos and Porthos had foreseen, at the
expiration of a half hour, d'Artagnan returned. He had again missed his man, who
had disappeared as if by enchantment. D'Artagnan had run, sword in hand, through
all the neighboring streets, but had found nobody resembling the man he sought
for. Then he came back to the point where, perhaps, he ought to have begun, and
that was to knock at the door against which the stranger had leaned; but this
proved useless—for though he knocked ten or twelve times in succession, no one
answered, and some of the neighbors, who put their noses out of their windows or
were brought to their doors by the noise, had assured him that that house, all
the openings of which were tightly closed, had not been inhabited for six
months.
While d'Artagnan was running through the
streets and knocking at doors, Aramis had joined his companions; so that on
returning home d'Artagnan found the reunion complete.
"Well!" cried the three Musketeers all
together, on seeing d'Artagnan enter with his brow covered with perspiration and
his countenance upset with anger.
"Well!" cried he, throwing his sword upon the
bed, "this man must be the devil in person; he has disappeared like a phantom,
like a shade, like a specter."
"Do you believe in apparitions?" asked Athos of
Porthos.
"I never believe in anything I have not seen,
and as I never have seen apparitions, I don't believe in them."
"The Bible," said Aramis, "make our belief in
them a law; the ghost of Samuel appeared to Saul, and it is an article of faith
that I should be very sorry to see any doubt thrown upon, Porthos."
"At all events, man or devil, body or shadow,
illusion or reality, this man is born for my damnation; for his flight has
caused us to miss a glorious affair, gentlemen—an affair by which there were a
hundred pistoles, and perhaps more, to be gained."
"How is that?" cried Porthos and Aramis in a
breath.
As to Athos, faithful to his system of
reticence, he contented himself with interrogating d'Artagnan by a look.
"Planchet," said d'Artagnan to his domestic,
who just then insinuated his head through the half-open door in order to catch
some fragments of the conversation, "go down to my landlord, Monsieur Bonacieux,
and ask him to send me half a dozen bottles of Beaugency wine; I prefer that."
"Ah, ah! You have credit with your landlord,
then?" asked Porthos.
"Yes," replied d'Artagnan, "from this very day;
and mind, if the wine is bad, we will send him to find better."
"We must use, and not abuse," said Aramis,
sententiously.
"I always said that d'Artagnan had the longest
head of the four," said Athos, who, having uttered his opinion, to which
d'Artagnan replied with a bow, immediately resumed his accustomed silence.
"But come, what is this about?" asked Porthos.
"Yes," said Aramis, "impart it to us, my dear
friend, unless the honor of any lady be hazarded by this confidence; in that
case you would do better to keep it to yourself."
"Be satisfied," replied d'Artagnan; "the honor
of no one will have cause to complain of what I have to tell."
He then related to his friends, word for word,
all that had passed between him and his host, and how the man who had abducted
the wife of his worthy landlord was the same with whom he had had the difference
at the hostelry of the Jolly Miller.
"Your affair is not bad," said Athos, after
having tasted like a connoisseur and indicated by a nod of his head that he
thought the wine good; "and one may draw fifty or sixty pistoles from this good
man. Then there only remains to ascertain whether these fifty or sixty pistoles
are worth the risk of four heads."
"But observe," cried d'Artagnan, "that there is
a woman in the affair—a woman carried off, a woman who is doubtless threatened,
tortured perhaps, and all because she is faithful to her mistress."
"Beware, d'Artagnan, beware," said Aramis. "You
grow a little too warm, in my opinion, about the fate of Madame Bonacieux. Woman
was created for our destruction, and it is from her we inherit all our
miseries."
At this speech of Aramis, the brow of Athos
became clouded and he bit his lips.
"It is not Madame Bonacieux about whom I am
anxious," cried d'Artagnan, "but the queen, whom the king abandons, whom the
cardinal persecutes, and who sees the heads of all her friends fall, one after
the other."
"Why does she love what we hate most in the
world, the Spaniards and the English?"
"Spain is her country," replied d'Artagnan;
"and it is very natural that she should love the Spanish, who are the children
of the same soil as herself. As to the second reproach, I have heard it said
that she does not love the English, but an Englishman."
"Well, and by my faith," said Athos, "it must
be acknowledged that this Englishman is worthy of being loved. I never saw a man
with a nobler air than his."
"Without reckoning that he dresses as nobody
else can," said Porthos. "I was at the Louvre on the day when he scattered his
pearls; and, PARDIEU, I picked up two that I sold for ten pistoles each. Do you
know him, Aramis?"
"As well as you do, gentlemen; for I was among
those who seized him in the garden at Amiens, into which Monsieur Putange, the
queen's equerry, introduced me. I was at school at the time, and the adventure
appeared to me to be cruel for the king."
"Which would not prevent me," said d'Artagnan,
"if I knew where the Duke of Buckingham was, from taking him by the hand and
conducting him to the queen, were it only to enrage the cardinal, and if we
could find means to play him a sharp turn, I vow that I would voluntarily risk
my head in doing it."
"And did the mercer*," rejoined Athos, "tell
you, d'Artagnan, that the queen thought that Buckingham had been brought over by
a forged letter?"
*Haberdasher
"She is afraid so."
"Wait a minute, then," said Aramis.
"What for?" demanded Porthos.
"Go on, while I endeavor to recall
circumstances."
"And now I am convinced," said d'Artagnan,
"that this abduction of the queen's woman is connected with the events of which
we are speaking, and perhaps with the presence of Buckingham in Paris."
"The Gascon is full of ideas," said Porthos,
with admiration.
"I like to hear him talk," said Athos; "his
dialect amuses me."
"Gentlemen," cried Aramis, "listen to this."
"Listen to Aramis," said his three friends.
"Yesterday I was at the house of a doctor of
theology, whom I sometimes consult about my studies."
Athos smiled.
"He resides in a quiet quarter," continued
Aramis; "his tastes and his profession require it. Now, at the moment when I
left his house—"
Here Aramis paused.
"Well," cried his auditors; "at the moment you
left his house?"
Aramis appeared to make a strong inward effort,
like a man who, in the full relation of a falsehood, finds himself stopped by
some unforeseen obstacle; but the eyes of his three companions were fixed upon
him, their ears were wide open, and there were no means of retreat.
"This doctor has a niece," continued Aramis.
"Ah, he has a niece!" interrupted Porthos.
"A very respectable lady," said Aramis.
The three friends burst into laughter.
"Ah, if you laugh, if you doubt me," replied
Aramis, "you shall know nothing."
"We believe like Mohammedans, and are as mute
as tombstones," said Athos.
"I will continue, then," resumed Aramis. "This
niece comes sometimes to see her uncle; and by chance was there yesterday at the
same time that I was, and it was my duty to offer to conduct her to her
carriage."
"Ah! She has a carriage, then, this niece of
the doctor?" interrupted Porthos, one of whose faults was a great looseness of
tongue. "A nice acquaintance, my friend!"
"Porthos," replied Aramis, "I have had the
occasion to observe to you more than once that you are very indiscreet; and that
is injurious to you among the women."
"Gentlemen, gentlemen," cried d'Artagnan, who
began to get a glimpse of the result of the adventure, "the thing is serious.
Let us try not to jest, if we can. Go on Aramis, go on."
"All at once, a tall, dark gentleman—just like
yours, d'Artagnan."
"The same, perhaps," said he.
"Possibly," continued Aramis, "came toward me,
accompanied by five or six men who followed about ten paces behind him; and in
the politest tone, 'Monsieur Duke,' said he to me, 'and you madame,' continued
he, addressing the lady on my arm—"
"The doctor's niece?"
"Hold your tongue, Porthos," said Athos; "you
are insupportable."
"'—will you enter this carriage, and that
without offering the least resistance, without making the least noise?'"
"He took you for Buckingham!" cried d'Artagnan.
"I believe so," replied Aramis.
"But the lady?" asked Porthos.
"He took her for the queen!" said d'Artagnan.
"Just so," replied Aramis.
"The Gascon is the devil!" cried Athos;
"nothing escapes him."
"The fact is," said Porthos, "Aramis is of the
same height, and something of the shape of the duke; but it nevertheless appears
to me that the dress of a Musketeer—"
"I wore an enormous cloak," said Aramis.
"In the month of July? The devil!" said
Porthos. "Is the doctor afraid that you may be recognized?"
"I can comprehend that the spy may have been
deceived by the person; but the face—"
"I had a large hat," said Aramis.
"Oh, good lord," cried Porthos, "what
precautions for the study of theology!"
"Gentlemen, gentlemen," said d'Artagnan, "do
not let us lose our time in jesting. Let us separate, and let us seek the
mercer's wife—that is the key of the intrigue."
"A woman of such inferior condition! Can you
believe so?" said Porthos, protruding his lips with contempt.
"She is goddaughter to Laporte, the
confidential valet of the queen. Have I not told you so, gentlemen? Besides, it
has perhaps been her Majesty's calculation to seek on this occasion for support
so lowly. High heads expose themselves from afar, and the cardinal is
longsighted."
"Well," said Porthos, "in the first place make
a bargain with the mercer, and a good bargain."
"That's useless," said d'Artagnan; "for I
believe if he does not pay us, we shall be well enough paid by another party."
At this moment a sudden noise of footsteps was
heard upon the stairs; the door was thrown violently open, and the unfortunate
mercer rushed into the chamber in which the council was held.
"Save me, gentlemen, for the love of heaven,
save me!" cried he. "There are four men come to arrest me. Save me! Save me!"
Porthos and Aramis arose.
"A moment," cried d'Artagnan, making them a
sign to replace in the scabbard their half-drawn swords. "It is not courage that
is needed; it is prudence."
"And yet," cried Porthos, "we will not leave—"
"You will leave d'Artagnan to act as he thinks
proper," said Athos. "He has, I repeat, the longest head of the four, and for my
part I declare that I will obey him. Do as you think best, d'Artagnan."
At this moment the four Guards appeared at the
door of the antechamber, but seeing four Musketeers standing, and their swords
by their sides, they hesitated about going farther.
"Come in, gentlemen, come in," called
d'Artagnan; "you are here in my apartment, and we are all faithful servants of
the king and cardinal."
"Then, gentlemen, you will not oppose our
executing the orders we have received?" asked one who appeared to be the leader
of the party.
"On the contrary, gentlemen, we would assist
you if it were necessary."
"What does he say?" grumbled Porthos.
"You are a simpleton," said Athos. "Silence!"
"But you promised me—" whispered the poor
mercer.
"We can only save you by being free ourselves,"
replied d'Artagnan, in a rapid, low tone; "and if we appear inclined to defend
you, they will arrest us with you."
"It seems, nevertheless—"
"Come, gentlemen, come!" said d'Artagnan,
aloud; "I have no motive for defending Monsieur. I saw him today for the first
time, and he can tell you on what occasion; he came to demand the rent of my
lodging. Is that not true, Monsieur Bonacieux? Answer!"
"That is the very truth," cried the mercer;
"but Monsieur does not tell you—"
"Silence, with respect to me, silence, with
respect to my friends; silence about the queen, above all, or you will ruin
everybody without saving yourself! Come, come, gentlemen, remove the fellow."
And d'Artagnan pushed the half-stupefied mercer among the Guards, saying to him,
"You are a shabby old fellow, my dear. You come to demand money of me—of a
Musketeer! To prison with him! Gentlemen, once more, take him to prison, and
keep him under key as long as possible; that will give me time to pay him."
The officers were full of thanks, and took away
their prey. As they were going down d'Artagnan laid his hand on the shoulder of
their leader.
"May I not drink to your health, and you to
mine?" said d'Artagnan, filling two glasses with the Beaugency wine which he had
obtained from the liberality of M. Bonacieux.
"That will do me great honor," said the leader
of the posse, "and I accept thankfully."
"Then to yours, monsieur—what is your name?"
"Boisrenard."
"Monsieur Boisrenard."
"To yours, my gentlemen! What is your name, in
your turn, if you please?"
"d'Artagnan."
"To yours, monsieur."
"And above all others," cried d'Artagnan, as if
carried away by his enthusiasm, "to that of the king and the cardinal."
The leader of the posse would perhaps have
doubted the sincerity of d'Artagnan if the wine had been bad; but the wine was
good, and he was convinced.
"What diabolical villainy you have performed
here," said Porthos, when the officer had rejoined his companions and the four
friends found themselves alone. "Shame, shame, for four Musketeers to allow an
unfortunate fellow who cried for help to be arrested in their midst! And a
gentleman to hobnob with a bailiff!"
"Porthos," said Aramis, "Athos has already told
you that you are a simpleton, and I am quite of his opinion. D'Artagnan, you are
a great man; and when you occupy Monsieur de Treville's place, I will come and
ask your influence to secure me an abbey."
"Well, I am in a maze," said Porthos; "do YOU
approve of what d'Artagnan has done?"
"PARBLEU! Indeed I do," said Athos; "I not only
approve of what he has done, but I congratulate him upon it."
"And now, gentlemen," said d'Artagnan, without
stopping to explain his conduct to Porthos, "All for one, one for all—that is
our motto, is it not?"
"And yet—" said Porthos.
"Hold out your hand and swear!" cried Athos and
Aramis at once.
Overcome by example, grumbling to himself,
nevertheless, Porthos stretched out his hand, and the four friends repeated with
one voice the formula dictated by d'Artagnan:
"All for one, one for all."
"That's well! Now let us everyone retire to his
own home," said d'Artagnan, as if he had done nothing but command all his life;
"and attention! For from this moment we are at feud with the cardinal."
10 A MOUSETRAP IN THE SEVENTEENTH CENTURY
The invention of the mousetrap does not date
from our days; as soon as societies, in forming, had invented any kind of
police, that police invented mousetraps.
As perhaps our readers are not familiar with
the slang of the Rue de Jerusalem, and as it is fifteen years since we applied
this word for the first time to this thing, allow us to explain to them what is
a mousetrap.
When in a house, of whatever kind it may be, an
individual suspected of any crime is arrested, the arrest is held secret. Four
or five men are placed in ambuscade in the first room. The door is opened to all
who knock. It is closed after them, and they are arrested; so that at the end of
two or three days they have in their power almost all the HABITUES of the
establishment. And that is a mousetrap.
The apartment of M. Bonacieux, then, became a
mousetrap; and whoever appeared there was taken and interrogated by the
cardinal's people. It must be observed that as a separate passage led to the
first floor, in which d'Artagnan lodged, those who called on him were exempted
from this detention.
Besides, nobody came thither but the three
Musketeers; they had all been engaged in earnest search and inquiries, but had
discovered nothing. Athos had even gone so far as to question M. de Treville—a
thing which, considering the habitual reticence of the worthy Musketeer, had
very much astonished his captain. But M. de Treville knew nothing, except that
the last time he had seen the cardinal, the king, and the queen, the cardinal
looked very thoughtful, the king uneasy, and the redness of the queen's eyes
donated that she had been sleepless or tearful. But this last circumstance was
not striking, as the queen since her marriage had slept badly and wept much.
M. de Treville requested Athos, whatever might
happen, to be observant of his duty to the king, but particularly to the queen,
begging him to convey his desires to his comrades.
As to d'Artagnan, he did not budge from his
apartment. He converted his chamber into an observatory. From his windows he saw
all the visitors who were caught. Then, having removed a plank from his floor,
and nothing remaining but a simple ceiling between him and the room beneath, in
which the interrogatories were made, he heard all that passed between the
inquisitors and the accused.
The interrogatories, preceded by a minute
search operated upon the persons arrested, were almost always framed thus: "Has
Madame Bonacieux sent anything to you for her husband, or any other person? Has
Monsieur Bonacieux sent anything to you for his wife, or for any other person?
Has either of them confided anything to you by word of mouth?"
"If they knew anything, they would not question
people in this manner," said d'Artagnan to himself. "Now, what is it they want
to know? Why, they want to know if the Duke of Buckingham is in Paris, and if he
has had, or is likely to have, an interview with the queen."
D'Artagnan held onto this idea, which, from
what he had heard, was not wanting in probability.
In the meantime, the mousetrap continued in
operation, and likewise d'Artagnan's vigilance.
On the evening of the day after the arrest of
poor Bonacieux, as Athos had just left d'Artagnan to report at M. de Treville's,
as nine o'clock had just struck, and as Planchet, who had not yet made the bed,
was beginning his task, a knocking was heard at the street door. The door was
instantly opened and shut; someone was taken in the mousetrap.
D'Artagnan flew to his hole, laid himself down
on the floor at full length, and listened.
Cries were soon heard, and then moans, which
someone appeared to be endeavoring to stifle. There were no questions.
"The devil!" said d'Artagnan to himself. "It
seems like a woman! They search her; she resists; they use force—the
scoundrels!"
In spite of his prudence, d'Artagnan restrained
himself with great difficulty from taking a part in the scene that was going on
below.
"But I tell you that I am the mistress of the
house, gentlemen! I tell you I am Madame Bonacieux; I tell you I belong to the
queen!" cried the unfortunate woman.
"Madame Bonacieux!" murmured d'Artagnan. "Can I
be so lucky as to find what everybody is seeking for?"
The voice became more and more indistinct; a
tumultuous movement shook the partition. The victim resisted as much as a woman
could resist four men.
"Pardon, gentlemen—par—" murmured the voice,
which could now only be heard in inarticulate sounds.
"They are binding her; they are going to drag
her away," cried d'Artagnan to himself, springing up from the floor. "My sword!
Good, it is by my side! Planchet!"
"Monsieur."
"Run and seek Athos, Porthos and Aramis. One of
the three will certainly be at home, perhaps all three. Tell them to take arms,
to come here, and to run! Ah, I remember, Athos is at Monsieur de Treville's."
"But where are you going, monsieur, where are
you going?"
"I am going down by the window, in order to be
there the sooner," cried d'Artagnan. "You put back the boards, sweep the floor,
go out at the door, and run as I told you."
"Oh, monsieur! Monsieur! You will kill
yourself," cried Planchet.
"Hold your tongue, stupid fellow," said
d'Artagnan; and laying hold of the casement, he let himself gently down from the
first story, which fortunately was not very elevated, without doing himself the
slightest injury.
He then went straight to the door and knocked,
murmuring, "I will go myself and be caught in the mousetrap, but woe be to the
cats that shall pounce upon such a mouse!"
The knocker had scarcely sounded under the hand
of the young man before the tumult ceased, steps approached, the door was
opened, and d'Artagnan, sword in hand, rushed into the rooms of M. Bonacieux,
the door of which doubtless acted upon by a spring, closed after him.
Then those who dwelt in Bonacieux's unfortunate
house, together with the nearest neighbors, heard loud cries, stamping of feet,
clashing of swords, and breaking of furniture. A moment after, those who,
surprised by this tumult, had gone to their windows to learn the cause of it,
saw the door open, and four men, clothed in black, not COME out of it, but FLY,
like so many frightened crows, leaving on the ground and on the corners of the
furniture, feathers from their wings; that is to say, patches of their clothes
and fragments of their cloaks.
D'Artagnan was conqueror—without much effort,
it must be confessed, for only one of the officers was armed, and even he
defended himself for form's sake. It is true that the three others had
endeavored to knock the young man down with chairs, stools, and crockery; but
two or three scratches made by the Gascon's blade terrified them. Ten minutes
sufficed for their defeat, and d'Artagnan remained master of the field of
battle.
The neighbors who had opened their windows,
with the coolness peculiar to the inhabitants of Paris in these times of
perpetual riots and disturbances, closed them again as soon as they saw the four
men in black flee—their instinct telling them that for the time all was over.
Besides, it began to grow late, and then, as today, people went to bed early in
the quarter of the Luxembourg.
On being left alone with Mme. Bonacieux,
d'Artagnan turned toward her; the poor woman reclined where she had been left,
half-fainting upon an armchair. D'Artagnan examined her with a rapid glance.
She was a charming woman of twenty-five or
twenty-six years, with dark hair, blue eyes, and a nose slightly turned up,
admirable teeth, and a complexion marbled with rose and opal. There, however,
ended the signs which might have confounded her with a lady of rank. The hands
were white, but without delicacy; the feet did not bespeak the woman of quality.
Happily, d'Artagnan was not yet acquainted with such niceties.
While d'Artagnan was examining Mme. Bonacieux,
and was, as we have said, close to her, he saw on the ground a fine cambric
handkerchief, which he picked up, as was his habit, and at the corner of which
he recognized the same cipher he had seen on the handkerchief which had nearly
caused him and Aramis to cut each other's throat.
From that time, d'Artagnan had been cautious
with respect to handkerchiefs with arms on them, and he therefore placed in the
pocket of Mme. Bonacieux the one he had just picked up.
At that moment Mme. Bonacieux recovered her
senses. She opened her eyes, looked around her with terror, saw that the
apartment was empty and that she was alone with her liberator. She extended her
hands to him with a smile. Mme. Bonacieux had the sweetest smile in the world.
"Ah, monsieur!" said she, "you have saved me;
permit me to thank you."
"Madame," said d'Artagnan, "I have only done
what every gentleman would have done in my place; you owe me no thanks."
"Oh, yes, monsieur, oh, yes; and I hope to
prove to you that you have not served an ingrate. But what could these men, whom
I at first took for robbers, want with me, and why is Monsieur Bonacieux not
here?"
"Madame, those men were more dangerous than any
robbers could have been, for they are the agents of the cardinal; and as to your
husband, Monsieur Bonacieux, he is not here because he was yesterday evening
conducted to the Bastille."
"My husband in the Bastille!" cried Mme.
Bonacieux. "Oh, my God! What has he done? Poor dear man, he is innocence
itself!"
And something like a faint smile lighted the
still-terrified features of the young woman.
"What has he done, madame?" said d'Artagnan. "I
believe that his only crime is to have at the same time the good fortune and the
misfortune to be your husband."
"But, monsieur, you know then—"
"I know that you have been abducted, madame."
"And by whom? Do you know him? Oh, if you know
him, tell me!"
"By a man of from forty to forty-five years,
with black hair, a dark complexion, and a scar on his left temple."
"That is he, that is he; but his name?"
"Ah, his name? I do not know that."
"And did my husband know I had been carried
off?"
"He was informed of it by a letter, written to
him by the abductor himself."
"And does he suspect," said Mme. Bonacieux,
with some embarrassment, "the cause of this event?"
"He attributed it, I believe, to a political
cause."
"I doubted from the first; and now I think
entirely as he does. Then my dear Monsieur Bonacieux has not suspected me a
single instant?"
"So far from it, madame, he was too proud of
your prudence, and above all, of your love."
A second smile, almost imperceptible, stole
over the rosy lips of the pretty young woman.
"But," continued d'Artagnan, "how did you
escape?"
"I took advantage of a moment when they left me
alone; and as I had known since morning the reason of my abduction, with the
help of the sheets I let myself down from the window. Then, as I believed my
husband would be at home, I hastened hither."
"To place yourself under his protection?"
"Oh, no, poor dear man! I knew very well that
he was incapable of defending me; but as he could serve us in other ways, I
wished to inform him."
"Of what?"
"Oh, that is not my secret; I must not,
therefore, tell you."
"Besides," said d'Artagnan, "pardon me, madame,
if, guardsman as I am, I remind you of prudence—besides, I believe we are not
here in a very proper place for imparting confidences. The men I have put to
flight will return reinforced; if they find us here, we are lost. I have sent
for three of my friends, but who knows whether they were at home?"
"Yes, yes! You are right," cried the affrighted
Mme. Bonacieux; "let us fly! Let us save ourselves."
At these words she passed her arm under that of
d'Artagnan, and urged him forward eagerly.
"But whither shall we fly—whither escape?"
"Let us first withdraw from this house;
afterward we shall see."
The young woman and the young man, without
taking the trouble to shut the door after them, descended the Rue des Fossoyeurs
rapidly, turned into the Rue des Fosses-Monsieur-le-Prince, and did not stop
till they came to the Place St. Sulpice.
"And now what are we to do, and where do you
wish me to conduct you?" asked d'Artagnan.
"I am at quite a loss how to answer you, I
admit," said Mme. Bonacieux. "My intention was to inform Monsieur Laporte,
through my husband, in order that Monsieur Laporte might tell us precisely what
had taken place at the Louvre in the last three days, and whether there is any
danger in presenting myself there."
"But I," said d'Artagnan, "can go and inform
Monsieur Laporte."
"No doubt you could, only there is one
misfortune, and that is that Monsieur Bonacieux is known at the Louvre, and
would be allowed to pass; whereas you are not known there, and the gate would be
closed against you."
"Ah, bah!" said d'Artagnan; "you have at some
wicket of the Louvre a CONCIERGE who is devoted to you, and who, thanks to a
password, would—"
Mme. Bonacieux looked earnestly at the young
man.
"And if I give you this password," said she,
"would you forget it as soon as you used it?"
"By my honor, by the faith of a gentleman!"
said d'Artagnan, with an accent so truthful that no one could mistake it.
"Then I believe you. You appear to be a brave
young man; besides, your fortune may perhaps be the result of your devotedness."
"I will do, without a promise and voluntarily,
all that I can do to serve the king and be agreeable to the queen. Dispose of
me, then, as a friend."
"But I—where shall I go meanwhile?"
"Is there nobody from whose house Monsieur
Laporte can come and fetch you?"
"No, I can trust nobody."
"Stop," said d'Artagnan; "we are near Athos's
door. Yes, here it is."
"Who is this Athos?"
"One of my friends."
"But if he should be at home and see me?"
"He is not at home, and I will carry away the
key, after having placed you in his apartment."
"But if he should return?"
"Oh, he won't return; and if he should, he will
be told that I have brought a woman with me, and that woman is in his
apartment."
"But that will compromise me sadly, you know."
"Of what consequence? Nobody knows you.
Besides, we are in a situation to overlook ceremony."
"Come, then, let us go to your friend's house.
Where does he live?"
"Rue Ferou, two steps from here."
"Let us go!"
Both resumed their way. As d'Artagnan had
foreseen, Athos was not within. He took the key, which was customarily given him
as one of the family, ascended the stairs, and introduced Mme. Bonacieux into
the little apartment of which we have given a description.
"You are at home," said he. "Remain here,
fasten the door inside, and open it to nobody unless you hear three taps like
this;" and he tapped thrice—two taps close together and pretty hard, the other
after an interval, and lighter.
"That is well," said Mme. Bonacieux. "Now, in
my turn, let me give you my instructions."
"I am all attention."
"Present yourself at the wicket of the Louvre,
on the side of the Rue de l'Echelle, and ask for Germain."
"Well, and then?"
"He will ask you what you want, and you will
answer by these two words, 'Tours' and 'Bruxelles.' He will at once put himself
at your orders."
"And what shall I command him?"
"To go and fetch Monsieur Laporte, the queen's
VALET DE CHAMBRE."
"And when he shall have informed him, and
Monsieur Laporte is come?"
"You will send him to me."
"That is well; but where and how shall I see
you again?"
"Do you wish to see me again?"
"Certainly."
"Well, let that care be mine, and be at ease."
"I depend upon your word."
"You may."
D'Artagnan bowed to Mme. Bonacieux, darting at
her the most loving glance that he could possibly concentrate upon her charming
little person; and while he descended the stairs, he heard the door closed and
double-locked. In two bounds he was at the Louvre; as he entered the wicket of
L'Echelle, ten o'clock struck. All the events we have described had taken place
within a half hour.
Everything fell out as Mme. Bonacieux
prophesied. On hearing the password, Germain bowed. In a few minutes, Laporte
was at the lodge; in two words d'Artagnan informed him where Mme. Bonacieux was.
Laporte assured himself, by having it twice repeated, of the accurate address,
and set off at a run. Hardly, however, had he taken ten steps before he
returned.
"Young man," said he to d'Artagnan, "a
suggestion."
"What?"
"You may get into trouble by what has taken
place."
"You believe so?"
"Yes. Have you any friend whose clock is too
slow?"
"Well?"
"Go and call upon him, in order that he may
give evidence of your having been with him at half past nine. In a court of
justice that is called an alibi."
D'Artagnan found his advice prudent. He took to
his heels, and was soon at M. de Treville's; but instead of going into the
saloon with the rest of the crowd, he asked to be introduced to M. de Treville's
office. As d'Artagnan so constantly frequented the hotel, no difficulty was made
in complying with his request, and a servant went to inform M. de Treville that
his young compatriot, having something important to communicate, solicited a
private audience. Five minutes after, M. de Treville was asking d'Artagnan what
he could do to serve him, and what caused his visit at so late an hour.
"Pardon me, monsieur," said d'Artagnan, who had
profited by the moment he had been left alone to put back M. de Treville's clock
three-quarters of an hour, "but I thought, as it was yet only twenty-five
minutes past nine, it was not too late to wait upon you."
"Twenty-five minutes past nine!" cried M. de
Treville, looking at the clock; "why, that's impossible!"
"Look, rather, monsieur," said d'Artagnan, "the
clock shows it."
"That's true," said M. de Treville; "I believed
it later. But what can I do for you?"
Then d'Artagnan told M. de Treville a long
history about the queen. He expressed to him the fears he entertained with
respect to her Majesty; he related to him what he had heard of the projects of
the cardinal with regard to Buckingham, and all with a tranquillity and candor
of which M. de Treville was the more the dupe, from having himself, as we have
said, observed something fresh between the cardinal, the king, and the queen.
As ten o'clock was striking, d'Artagnan left M.
de Treville, who thanked him for his information, recommended him to have the
service of the king and queen always at heart, and returned to the saloon; but
at the foot of the stairs, d'Artagnan remembered he had forgotten his cane. He
consequently sprang up again, re-entered the office, with a turn of his finger
set the clock right again, that it might not be perceived the next day that it
had been put wrong, and certain from that time that he had a witness to prove
his alibi, he ran downstairs and soon found himself in the street.
11 IN WHICH THE PLOT THICKENS
His visit to M. de Treville being paid, the
pensive d'Artagnan took the longest way homeward.
On what was d'Artagnan thinking, that he
strayed thus from his path, gazing at the stars of heaven, and sometimes
sighing, sometimes smiling?
He was thinking of Mme. Bonacieux. For an
apprentice Musketeer the young woman was almost an ideal of love. Pretty,
mysterious, initiated in almost all the secrets of the court, which reflected
such a charming gravity over her pleasing features, it might be surmised that
she was not wholly unmoved; and this is an irresistible charm to novices in
love. Moreover, d'Artagnan had delivered her from the hands of the demons who
wished to search and ill treat her; and this important service had established
between them one of those sentiments of gratitude which so easily assume a more
tender character.
D'Artagnan already fancied himself, so rapid is
the flight of our dreams upon the wings of imagination, accosted by a messenger
from the young woman, who brought him some billet appointing a meeting, a gold
chain, or a diamond. We have observed that young cavaliers received presents
from their king without shame. Let us add that in these times of lax morality
they had no more delicacy with respect to the mistresses; and that the latter
almost always left them valuable and durable remembrances, as if they essayed to
conquer the fragility of their sentiments by the solidity of their gifts.
Without a blush, men made their way in the
world by the means of women blushing. Such as were only beautiful gave their
beauty, whence, without doubt, comes the proverb, "The most beautiful girl in
the world can only give what she has." Such as were rich gave in addition a part
of their money; and a vast number of heroes of that gallant period may be cited
who would neither have won their spurs in the first place, nor their battles
afterward, without the purse, more or less furnished, which their mistress
fastened to the saddle bow.
D'Artagnan owned nothing. Provincial
diffidence, that slight varnish, the ephemeral flower, that down of the peach,
had evaporated to the winds through the little orthodox counsels which the three
Musketeers gave their friend. D'Artagnan, following the strange custom of the
times, considered himself at Paris as on a campaign, neither more nor less than
if he had been in Flanders—Spain yonder, woman here. In each there was an enemy
to contend with, and contributions to be levied.
But, we must say, at the present moment
d'Artagnan was ruled by a feeling much more noble and disinterested. The mercer
had said that he was rich; the young man might easily guess that with so weak a
man as M. Bonacieux; and interest was almost foreign to this commencement of
love, which had been the consequence of it. We say ALMOST, for the idea that a
young, handsome, kind, and witty woman is at the same time rich takes nothing
from the beginning of love, but on the contrary strengthens it.
There are in affluence a crowd of aristocratic
cares and caprices which are highly becoming to beauty. A fine and white
stocking, a silken robe, a lace kerchief, a pretty slipper on the foot, a tasty
ribbon on the head do not make an ugly woman pretty, but they make a pretty
woman beautiful, without reckoning the hands, which gain by all this; the hands,
among women particularly, to be beautiful must be idle.
Then d'Artagnan, as the reader, from whom we
have not concealed the state of his fortune, very well knows—d'Artagnan was not
a millionaire; he hoped to become one someday, but the time which in his own
mind he fixed upon for this happy change was still far distant. In the
meanwhile, how disheartening to see the woman one loves long for those thousands
of nothings which constitute a woman's happiness, and be unable to give her
those thousands of nothings. At least, when the woman is rich and the lover is
not, that which he cannot offer she offers to herself; and although it is
generally with her husband's money that she procures herself this indulgence,
the gratitude for it seldom reverts to him.
Then d'Artagnan, disposed to become the most
tender of lovers, was at the same time a very devoted friend, In the midst of
his amorous projects for the mercer's wife, he did not forget his friends. The
pretty Mme. Bonacieux was just the woman to walk with in the Plain St. Denis or
in the fair of St. Germain, in company with Athos, Porthos, and Aramis, to whom
d'Artagnan had often remarked this. Then one could enjoy charming little
dinners, where one touches on one side the hand of a friend, and on the other
the foot of a mistress. Besides, on pressing occasions, in extreme difficulties,
d'Artagnan would become the preserver of his friends.
And M. Bonacieux? whom d'Artagnan had pushed
into the hands of the officers, denying him aloud although he had promised in a
whisper to save him. We are compelled to admit to our readers that d'Artagnan
thought nothing about him in any way; or that if he did think of him, it was
only to say to himself that he was very well where he was, wherever it might be.
Love is the most selfish of all the passions.
Let our readers reassure themselves. IF
d'Artagnan forgets his host, or appears to forget him, under the pretense of not
knowing where he has been carried, we will not forget him, and we know where he
is. But for the moment, let us do as did the amorous Gascon; we will see after
the worthy mercer later.
D'Artagnan, reflecting on his future amours,
addressing himself to the beautiful night, and smiling at the stars, ascended
the Rue Cherish-Midi, or Chase-Midi, as it was then called. As he found himself
in the quarter in which Aramis lived, he took it into his head to pay his friend
a visit in order to explain the motives which had led him to send Planchet with
a request that he would come instantly to the mousetrap. Now, if Aramis had been
at home when Planchet came to his abode, he had doubtless hastened to the Rue
des Fossoyeurs, and finding nobody there but his other two companions perhaps,
they would not be able to conceive what all this meant. This mystery required an
explanation; at least, so d'Artagnan declared to himself.
He likewise thought this was an opportunity for
talking about pretty little Mme. Bonacieux, of whom his head, if not his heart,
was already full. We must never look for discretion in first love. First love is
accompanied by such excessive joy that unless the joy be allowed to overflow, it
will stifle you.
Paris for two hours past had been dark, and
seemed a desert. Eleven o'clock sounded from all the clocks of the Faubourg St.
Germain. It was delightful weather. D'Artagnan was passing along a lane on the
spot where the Rue d'Assas is now situated, breathing the balmy emanations which
were borne upon the wind from the Rue de Vaugirard, and which arose from the
gardens refreshed by the dews of evening and the breeze of night. From a
distance resounded, deadened, however, by good shutters, the songs of the
tipplers, enjoying themselves in the cabarets scattered along the plain. Arrived
at the end of the lane, d'Artagnan turned to the left. The house in which Aramis
dwelt was situated between the Rue Cassette and the Rue Servandoni.
D'Artagnan had just passed the Rue Cassette,
and already perceived the door of his friend's house, shaded by a mass of
sycamores and clematis which formed a vast arch opposite the front of it, when
he perceived something like a shadow issuing from the Rue Servandoni. This
something was enveloped in a cloak, and d'Artagnan at first believed it was a
man; but by the smallness of the form, the hesitation of the walk, and the
indecision of the step, he soon discovered that it was a woman. Further, this
woman, as if not certain of the house she was seeking, lifted up her eyes to
look around her, stopped, went backward, and then returned again. D'Artagnan was
perplexed.
"Shall I go and offer her my services?" thought
he. "By her step she must be young; perhaps she is pretty. Oh, yes! But a woman
who wanders in the streets at this hour only ventures out to meet her lover. If
I should disturb a rendezvous, that would not be the best means of commencing an
acquaintance."
Meantime the young woman continued to advance,
counting the houses and windows. This was neither long nor difficult. There were
but three hotels in this part of the street; and only two windows looking toward
the road, one of which was in a pavilion parallel to that which Aramis occupied,
the other belonging to Aramis himself.
"PARIDIEU!" said d'Artagnan to himself, to
whose mind the niece of the theologian reverted, "PARDIEU, it would be droll if
this belated dove should be in search of our friend's house. But on my soul, it
looks so. Ah, my dear Aramis, this time I shall find you out." And d'Artagnan,
making himself as small as he could, concealed himself in the darkest side of
the street near a stone bench placed at the back of a niche.
The young woman continued to advance; and in
addition to the lightness of her step, which had betrayed her, she emitted a
little cough which denoted a sweet voice. D'Artagnan believed this cough to be a
signal.
Nevertheless, whether the cough had been
answered by a similar signal which had fixed the irresolution of the nocturnal
seeker, or whether without this aid she saw that she had arrived at the end of
her journey, she resolutely drew near to Aramis's shutter, and tapped, at three
equal intervals, with her bent finger.
"This is all very fine, dear Aramis," murmured
d'Artagnan. "Ah, Monsieur Hypocrite, I understand how you study theology."
The three blows were scarcely struck, when the
inside blind was opened and a light appeared through the panes of the outside
shutter.
"Ah, ah!" said the listener, "not through
doors, but through windows! Ah, this visit was expected. We shall see the
windows open, and the lady enter by escalade. Very pretty!"
But to the great astonishment of d'Artagnan,
the shutter remained closed. Still more, the light which had shone for an
instant disappeared, and all was again in obscurity.
D'Artagnan thought this could not last long,
and continued to look with all his eyes and listen with all his ears.
He was right; at the end of some seconds two
sharp taps were heard inside. The young woman in the street replied by a single
tap, and the shutter was opened a little way.
It may be judged whether d'Artagnan looked or
listened with avidity. Unfortunately the light had been removed into another
chamber; but the eyes of the young man were accustomed to the night. Besides,
the eyes of the Gascons have, as it is asserted, like those of cats, the faculty
of seeing in the dark.
D'Artagnan then saw that the young woman took
from her pocket a white object, which she unfolded quickly, and which took the
form of a handkerchief. She made her interlocutor observe the corner of this
unfolded object.
This immediately recalled to d'Artagnan's mind
the handkerchief which he had found at the feet of Mme. Bonacieux, which had
reminded him of that which he had dragged from under the feet of Aramis.
"What the devil could that handkerchief
signify?"
Placed where he was, d'Artagnan could not
perceive the face of Aramis. We say Aramis, because the young man entertained no
doubt that it was his friend who held this dialogue from the interior with the
lady of the exterior. Curiosity prevailed over prudence; and profiting by the
preoccupation into which the sight of the handkerchief appeared to have plunged
the two personages now on the scene, he stole from his hiding place, and quick
as lightning, but stepping with utmost caution, he ran and placed himself close
to the angle of the wall, from which his eye could pierce the interior of
Aramis's room.
Upon gaining this advantage d'Artagnan was near
uttering a cry of surprise; it was not Aramis who was conversing with the
nocturnal visitor, it was a woman! D'Artagnan, however, could only see enough to
recognize the form of her vestments, not enough to distinguish her features.
At the same instant the woman inside drew a
second handkerchief from her pocket, and exchanged it for that which had just
been shown to her. Then some words were spoken by the two women. At length the
shutter closed. The woman who was outside the window turned round, and passed
within four steps of d'Artagnan, pulling down the hood of her mantle; but the
precaution was too late, d'Artagnan had already recognized Mme. Bonacieux.
Mme. Bonacieux! The suspicion that it was she
had crossed the mind of d'Artagnan when she drew the handkerchief from her
pocket; but what probability was there that Mme. Bonacieux, who had sent for M.
Laporte in order to be reconducted to the Louvre, should be running about the
streets of Paris at half past eleven at night, at the risk of being abducted a
second time?
This must be, then, an affair of importance;
and what is the most important affair to a woman of twenty-five! Love.
But was it on her own account, or on account of
another, that she exposed herself to such hazards? This was a question the young
man asked himself, whom the demon of jealousy already gnawed, being in heart
neither more nor less than an accepted lover.
There was a very simple means of satisfying
himself whither Mme. Bonacieux was going; that was to follow her. This method
was so simple that d'Artagnan employed it quite naturally and instinctively.
But at the sight of the young man, who detached
himself from the wall like a statue walking from its niche, and at the noise of
the steps which she heard resound behind her, Mme. Bonacieux uttered a little
cry and fled.
D'Artagnan ran after her. It was not difficult
for him to overtake a woman embarrassed with her cloak. He came up with her
before she had traversed a third of the street. The unfortunate woman was
exhausted, not by fatigue, but by terror, and when d'Artagnan placed his hand
upon her shoulder, she sank upon one knee, crying in a choking voice, "Kill me,
if you please, you shall know nothing!"
D'Artagnan raised her by passing his arm round
her waist; but as he felt by her weight she was on the point of fainting, he
made haste to reassure her by protestations of devotedness. These protestations
were nothing for Mme. Bonacieux, for such protestations may be made with the
worst intentions in the world; but the voice was all. Mme. Bonacieux thought she
recognized the sound of that voice; she reopened her eyes, cast a quick glance
upon the man who had terrified her so, and at once perceiving it was d'Artagnan,
she uttered a cry of joy, "Oh, it is you, it is you! Thank God, thank God!"
"Yes, it is I," said d'Artagnan, "it is I, whom
God has sent to watch over you."
"Was it with that intention you followed me?"
asked the young woman, with a coquettish smile, whose somewhat bantering
character resumed its influence, and with whom all fear had disappeared from the
moment in which she recognized a friend in one she had taken for an enemy.
"No," said d'Artagnan; "no, I confess it. It
was chance that threw me in your way; I saw a woman knocking at the window of
one of my friends."
"One of your friends?" interrupted Mme.
Bonacieux.
"Without doubt; Aramis is one of my best
friends."
"Aramis! Who is he?"
"Come, come, you won't tell me you don't know
Aramis?"
"This is the first time I ever heard his name
pronounced."
"It is the first time, then, that you ever went
to that house?"
"Undoubtedly."
"And you did not know that it was inhabited by
a young man?"
"No."
"By a Musketeer?"
"No, indeed!"
"It was not he, then, you came to seek?"
"Not the least in the world. Besides, you must
have seen that the person to whom I spoke was a woman."
"That is true; but this woman is a friend of
Aramis—"
"I know nothing of that."
"—since she lodges with him."
"That does not concern me."
"But who is she?"
"Oh, that is not my secret."
"My dear Madame Bonacieux, you are charming;
but at the same time you are one of the most mysterious women."
"Do I lose by that?"
"No; you are, on the contrary, adorable."
"Give me your arm, then."
"Most willingly. And now?"
"Now escort me."
"Where?"
"Where I am going."
"But where are you going?"
"You will see, because you will leave me at the
door."
"Shall I wait for you?"
"That will be useless."
"You will return alone, then?"
"Perhaps yes, perhaps no."
"But will the person who shall accompany you
afterward be a man or a woman?"
"I don't know yet."
"But I will know it!"
"How so?"
"I will wait until you come out."
"In that case, adieu."
"Why so?"
"I do not want you."
"But you have claimed—"
"The aid of a gentleman, not the watchfulness
of a spy."
"The word is rather hard."
"How are they called who follow others in spite
of them?"
"They are indiscreet."
"The word is too mild."
"Well, madame, I perceive I must do as you
wish."
"Why did you deprive yourself of the merit of
doing so at once?"
"Is there no merit in repentance?"
"And do you really repent?"
"I know nothing about it myself. But what I
know is that I promise to do all you wish if you allow me to accompany you where
you are going."
"And you will leave me then?"
"Yes."
"Without waiting for my coming out again?"
"Yes."
"Word of honor?"
"By the faith of a gentleman. Take my arm, and
let us go."
D'Artagnan offered his arm to Mme. Bonacieux,
who willingly took it, half laughing, half trembling, and both gained the top of
Rue de la Harpe. Arriving there, the young woman seemed to hesitate, as she had
before done in the Rue Vaugirard. She seemed, however, by certain signs, to
recognize a door, and approaching that door, "And now, monsieur," said she, "it
is here I have business; a thousand thanks for your honorable company, which has
saved me from all the dangers to which, alone I was exposed. But the moment is
come to keep your word; I have reached my destination."
"And you will have nothing to fear on your
return?"
"I shall have nothing to fear but robbers."
"And that is nothing?"
"What could they take from me? I have not a
penny about me."
"You forget that beautiful handkerchief with
the coat of arms."
"Which?"
"That which I found at your feet, and replaced
in your pocket."
"Hold your tongue, imprudent man! Do you wish
to destroy me?"
"You see very plainly that there is still
danger for you, since a single word makes you tremble; and you confess that if
that word were heard you would be ruined. Come, come, madame!" cried d'Artagnan,
seizing her hands, and surveying her with an ardent glance, "come, be more
generous. Confide in me. Have you not read in my eyes that there is nothing but
devotion and sympathy in my heart?"
"Yes," replied Mme. Bonacieux; "therefore, ask
my own secrets, and I will reveal them to you; but those of others—that is quite
another thing."
"Very well," said d'Artagnan, "I shall discover
them; as these secrets may have an influence over your life, these secrets must
become mine."
"Beware of what you do!" cried the young woman,
in a manner so serious as to make d'Artagnan start in spite of himself. "Oh,
meddle in nothing which concerns me. Do not seek to assist me in that which I am
accomplishing. This I ask of you in the name of the interest with which I
inspire you, in the name of the service you have rendered me and which I never
shall forget while I have life. Rather, place faith in what I tell you. Have no
more concern about me; I exist no longer for you, any more than if you had never
seen me."
"Must Aramis do as much as I, madame?" said
d'Artagnan, deeply piqued.
"This is the second or third time, monsieur,
that you have repeated that name, and yet I have told you that I do not know
him."
"You do not know the man at whose shutter you
have just knocked? Indeed, madame, you believe me too credulous!"
"Confess that it is for the sake of making me
talk that you invent this story and create this personage."
"I invent nothing, madame; I create nothing. I
only speak that exact truth."
"And you say that one of your friends lives in
that house?"
"I say so, and I repeat it for the third time;
that house is one inhabited by my friend, and that friend is Aramis."
"All this will be cleared up at a later
period," murmured the young woman; "no, monsieur, be silent."
"If you could see my heart," said d'Artagnan,
"you would there read so much curiosity that you would pity me and so much love
that you would instantly satisfy my curiosity. We have nothing to fear from
those who love us."
"You speak very suddenly of love, monsieur,"
said the young woman, shaking her head.
"That is because love has come suddenly upon
me, and for the first time; and because I am only twenty."
The young woman looked at him furtively.
"Listen; I am already upon the scent," resumed
d'Artagnan. "About three months ago I was near having a duel with Aramis
concerning a handkerchief resembling the one you showed to the woman in his
house—for a handkerchief marked in the same manner, I am sure."
"Monsieur," said the young woman, "you weary me
very much, I assure you, with your questions."
"But you, madame, prudent as you are, think, if
you were to be arrested with that handkerchief, and that handkerchief were to be
seized, would you not be compromised?"
"In what way? The initials are only mine—C. B.,
Constance Bonacieux."
"Or Camille de Bois-Tracy."
"Silence, monsieur! Once again, silence! Ah,
since the dangers I incur on my own account cannot stop you, think of those you
may yourself run!"
"Me?"
"Yes; there is peril of imprisonment, risk of
life in knowing me."
"Then I will not leave you."
"Monsieur!" said the young woman, supplicating
him and clasping her hands together, "monsieur, in the name of heaven, by the
honor of a soldier, by the courtesy of a gentleman, depart! There, there
midnight sounds! That is the hour when I am expected."
"Madame," said the young man, bowing; "I can
refuse nothing asked of me thus. Be content; I will depart."
"But you will not follow me; you will not watch
me?"
"I will return home instantly."
"Ah, I was quite sure you were a good and brave
young man," said Mme. Bonacieux, holding out her hand to him, and placing the
other upon the knocker of a little door almost hidden in the wall.
D'Artagnan seized the hand held out to him, and
kissed it ardently.
"Ah! I wish I had never seen you!" cried
d'Artagnan, with that ingenuous roughness which women often prefer to the
affectations of politeness, because it betrays the depths of the thought and
proves that feeling prevails over reason.
"Well!" resumed Mme. Bonacieux, in a voice
almost caressing, and pressing the hand of d'Artagnan, who had not relinquished
hers, "well: I will not say as much as you do; what is lost for today may not be
lost forever. Who knows, when I shall be at liberty, that I may not satisfy your
curiosity?"
"And will you make the same promise to my
love?" cried d'Artagnan, beside himself with joy.
"Oh, as to that, I do not engage myself. That
depends upon the sentiments with which you may inspire me."
"Then today, madame—"
"Oh, today, I am no further than gratitude."
"Ah! You are too charming," said d'Artagnan,
sorrowfully; "and you abuse my love."
"No, I use your generosity, that's all. But be
of good cheer; with certain people, everything comes round."
"Oh, you render me the happiest of men! Do not
forget this evening—do not forget that promise."
"Be satisfied. In the proper time and place I
will remember everything. Now then, go, go, in the name of heaven! I was
expected at sharp midnight, and I am late."
"By five minutes."
"Yes; but in certain circumstances five minutes
are five ages."
"When one loves."
"Well! And who told you I had no affair with a
lover?"
"It is a man, then, who expects you?" cried
d'Artagnan. "A man!"
"The discussion is going to begin again!" said
Mme. Bonacieux, with a half-smile which was not exempt from a tinge of
impatience.
"No, no; I go, I depart! I believe in you, and
I would have all the merit of my devotion, even if that devotion were stupidity.
Adieu, madame, adieu!"
And as if he only felt strength to detach
himself by a violent effort from the hand he held, he sprang away, running,
while Mme. Bonacieux knocked, as at the shutter, three light and regular taps.
When he had gained the angle of the street, he turned. The door had been opened,
and shut again; the mercer's pretty wife had disappeared.
D'Artagnan pursued his way. He had given his
word not to watch Mme. Bonacieux, and if his life had depended upon the spot to
which she was going or upon the person who should accompany her, d'Artagnan
would have returned home, since he had so promised. Five minutes later he was in
the Rue des Fossoyeurs.
"Poor Athos!" said he; "he will never guess
what all this means. He will have fallen asleep waiting for me, or else he will
have returned home, where he will have learned that a woman had been there. A
woman with Athos! After all," continued d'Artagnan, "there was certainly one
with Aramis. All this is very strange; and I am curious to know how it will
end."
"Badly, monsieur, badly!" replied a voice which
the young man recognized as that of Planchet; for, soliloquizing aloud, as very
preoccupied people do, he had entered the alley, at the end of which were the
stairs which led to his chamber.
"How badly? What do you mean by that, you
idiot?" asked d'Artagnan. "What has happened?"
"All sorts of misfortunes."
"What?"
"In the first place, Monsieur Athos is
arrested."
"Arrested! Athos arrested! What for?"
"He was found in your lodging; they took him
for you."
"And by whom was he arrested?"
"By Guards brought by the men in black whom you
put to flight."
"Why did he not tell them his name? Why did he
not tell them he knew nothing about this affair?"
"He took care not to do so, monsieur; on the
contrary, he came up to me and said, 'It is your master that needs his liberty
at this moment and not I, since he knows everything and I know nothing. They
will believe he is arrested, and that will give him time; in three days I will
tell them who I am, and they cannot fail to let me go.'"
"Bravo, Athos! Noble heart!" murmured
d'Artagnan. "I know him well there! And what did the officers do?"
"Four conveyed him away, I don't know where—to
the Bastille or Fort l'Eveque. Two remained with the men in black, who rummaged
every place and took all the papers. The last two mounted guard at the door
during this examination; then, when all was over, they went away, leaving the
house empty and exposed."
"And Porthos and Aramis?"
"I could not find them; they did not come."
"But they may come any moment, for you left
word that I awaited them?"
"Yes, monsieur."
"Well, don't budge, then; if they come, tell
them what has happened. Let them wait for me at the Pomme-de-Pin. Here it would
be dangerous; the house may be watched. I will run to Monsieur de Treville to
tell them all this, and will meet them there."
"Very well, monsieur," said Planchet.
"But you will remain; you are not afraid?" said
d'Artagnan, coming back to recommend courage to his lackey.
"Be easy, monsieur," said Planchet; "you do not
know me yet. I am brave when I set about it. It is all in beginning. Besides, I
am a Picard."
"Then it is understood," said d'Artagnan; "you
would rather be killed than desert your post?"
"Yes, monsieur; and there is nothing I would
not do to prove to Monsieur that I am attached to him."
"Good!" said d'Artagnan to himself. "It appears
that the method I have adopted with this boy is decidedly the best. I shall use
it again upon occasion."
And with all the swiftness of his legs, already
a little fatigued however, with the perambulations of the day, d'Artagnan
directed his course toward M. de Treville's.
M. de Treville was not at his hotel. His
company was on guard at the Louvre; he was at the Louvre with his company.
It was necessary to reach M. de Treville; it
was important that he should be informed of what was passing. D'Artagnan
resolved to try and enter the Louvre. His costume of Guardsman in the company of
M. Dessessart ought to be his passport.
He therefore went down the Rue des Petits
Augustins, and came up to the quay, in order to take the New Bridge. He had at
first an idea of crossing by the ferry; but on gaining the riverside, he had
mechanically put his hand into his pocket, and perceived that he had not
wherewithal to pay his passage.
As he gained the top of the Rue Guenegaud, he
saw two persons coming out of the Rue Dauphine whose appearance very much struck
him. Of the two persons who composed this group, one was a man and the other a
woman. The woman had the outline of Mme. Bonacieux; the man resembled Aramis so
much as to be mistaken for him.
Besides, the woman wore that black mantle which
d'Artagnan could still see outlined on the shutter of the Rue de Vaugirard and
on the door of the Rue de la Harpe; still further, the man wore the uniform of a
Musketeer.
The woman's hood was pulled down, and the man
held a handkerchief to his face. Both, as this double precaution indicated, had
an interest in not being recognized.
They took the bridge. That was d'Artagnan's
road, as he was going to the Louvre. D'Artagnan followed them.
He had not gone twenty steps before he became
convinced that the woman was really Mme. Bonacieux and that the man was Aramis.
He felt at that instant all the suspicions of
jealousy agitating his heart. He felt himself doubly betrayed, by his friend and
by her whom he already loved like a mistress. Mme. Bonacieux had declared to
him, by all the gods, that she did not know Aramis; and a quarter of an hour
after having made this assertion, he found her hanging on the arm of Aramis.
D'Artagnan did not reflect that he had only
known the mercer's pretty wife for three hours; that she owed him nothing but a
little gratitude for having delivered her from the men in black, who wished to
carry her off, and that she had promised him nothing. He considered himself an
outraged, betrayed, and ridiculed lover. Blood and anger mounted to his face; he
was resolved to unravel the mystery.
The young man and young woman perceived they
were watched, and redoubled their speed. D'Artagnan determined upon his course.
He passed them, then returned so as to meet them exactly before the Samaritaine.
Which was illuminated by a lamp which threw its light over all that part of the
bridge.
D'Artagnan stopped before them, and they
stopped before him.
"What do you want, monsieur?" demanded the
Musketeer, recoiling a step, and with a foreign accent, which proved to
d'Artagnan that he was deceived in one of his conjectures.
"It is not Aramis!" cried he.
"No, monsieur, it is not Aramis; and by your
exclamation I perceive you have mistaken me for another, and pardon you."
"You pardon me?" cried d'Artagnan.
"Yes," replied the stranger. "Allow me, then,
to pass on, since it is not with me you have anything to do."
"You are right, monsieur, it is not with you
that I have anything to do; it is with Madame."
"With Madame! You do not know her," replied the
stranger.
"You are deceived, monsieur; I know her very
well."
"Ah," said Mme. Bonacieux; in a tone of
reproach, "ah, monsieur, I had your promise as a soldier and your word as a
gentleman. I hoped to be able to rely upon that."
"And I, madame!" said d'Artagnan, embarrassed;
"you promised me—"
"Take my arm, madame," said the stranger, "and
let us continue our way."
D'Artagnan, however, stupefied, cast down,
annihilated by all that happened, stood, with crossed arms, before the Musketeer
and Mme. Bonacieux.
The Musketeer advanced two steps, and pushed
d'Artagnan aside with his hand. D'Artagnan made a spring backward and drew his
sword. At the same time, and with the rapidity of lightning, the stranger drew
his.
"In the name of heaven, my Lord!" cried Mme.
Bonacieux, throwing herself between the combatants and seizing the swords with
her hands.
"My Lord!" cried d'Artagnan, enlightened by a
sudden idea, "my Lord! Pardon me, monsieur, but you are not—"
"My Lord the Duke of Buckingham," said Mme.
Bonacieux, in an undertone; "and now you may ruin us all."
"My Lord, Madame, I ask a hundred pardons! But
I love her, my Lord, and was jealous. You know what it is to love, my Lord.
Pardon me, and then tell me how I can risk my life to serve your Grace?"
"You are a brave young man," said Buckingham,
holding out his hand to d'Artagnan, who pressed it respectfully. "You offer me
your services; with the same frankness I accept them. Follow us at a distance of
twenty paces, as far as the Louvre, and if anyone watches us, slay him!"
D'Artagnan placed his naked sword under his
arm, allowed the duke and Mme. Bonacieux to take twenty steps ahead, and then
followed them, ready to execute the instructions of the noble and elegant
minister of Charles I.
Fortunately, he had no opportunity to give the
duke this proof of his devotion, and the young woman and the handsome Musketeer
entered the Louvre by the wicket of the Echelle without any interference.
As for d'Artagnan, he immediately repaired to
the cabaret of the Pomme-de-Pin, where he found Porthos and Aramis awaiting him.
Without giving them any explanation of the alarm and inconvenience he had caused
them, he told them that he had terminated the affair alone in which he had for a
moment believed he should need their assistance.
Meanwhile, carried away as we are by our
narrative, we must leave our three friends to themselves, and follow the Duke of
Buckingham and his guide through the labyrinths of the Louvre.
12 GEORGE VILLIERS, DUKE OF BUCKINGHAM
Mme. Bonacieux and the duke entered the Louvre
without difficulty. Mme. Bonacieux was known to belong to the queen; the duke
wore the uniform of the Musketeers of M. de Treville, who, as we have said, were
that evening on guard. Besides, Germain was in the interests of the queen; and
if anything should happen, Mme. Bonacieux would be accused of having introduced
her lover into the Louvre, that was all. She took the risk upon herself. Her
reputation would be lost, it is true; but of what value in the world was the
reputation of the little wife of a mercer?
Once within the interior of the court, the duke
and the young woman followed the wall for the space of about twenty-five steps.
This space passed, Mme. Bonacieux pushed a little servants' door, open by day
but generally closed at night. The door yielded. Both entered, and found
themselves in darkness; but Mme. Bonacieux was acquainted with all the turnings
and windings of this part of the Louvre, appropriated for the people of the
household. She closed the door after her, took the duke by the hand, and after a
few experimental steps, grasped a balustrade, put her foot upon the bottom step,
and began to ascend the staircase. The duke counted two stories. She then turned
to the right, followed the course of a long corridor, descended a flight, went a
few steps farther, introduced a key into a lock, opened a door, and pushed the
duke into an apartment lighted only by a lamp, saying, "Remain here, my Lord
Duke; someone will come." She then went out by the same door, which she locked,
so that the duke found himself literally a prisoner.
Nevertheless, isolated as he was, we must say
that the Duke of Buckingham did not experience an instant of fear. One of the
salient points of his character was the search for adventures and a love of
romance. Brave, rash, and enterprising, this was not the first time he had
risked his life in such attempts. He had learned that the pretended message from
Anne of Austria, upon the faith of which he had come to Paris, was a snare; but
instead of regaining England, he had, abusing the position in which he had been
placed, declared to the queen that he would not depart without seeing her. The
queen had at first positively refused; but at length became afraid that the
duke, if exasperated, would commit some folly. She had already decided upon
seeing him and urging his immediate departure, when, on the very evening of
coming to this decision, Mme. Bonacieux, who was charged with going to fetch the
duke and conducting him to the Louvre, was abducted. For two days no one knew
what had become of her, and everything remained in suspense; but once free, and
placed in communication with Laporte, matters resumed their course, and she
accomplished the perilous enterprise which, but for her arrest, would have been
executed three days earlier.
Buckingham, left alone, walked toward a mirror.
His Musketeer's uniform became him marvelously.
At thirty-five, which was then his age, he
passed, with just title, for the handsomest gentleman and the most elegant
cavalier of France or England.
The favorite of two kings, immensely rich,
all-powerful in a kingdom which he disordered at his fancy and calmed again at
his caprice, George Villiers, Duke of Buckingham, had lived one of those
fabulous existences which survive, in the course of centuries, to astonish
posterity.
Sure of himself, convinced of his own power,
certain that the laws which rule other men could not reach him, he went straight
to the object he aimed at, even were this object were so elevated and so
dazzling that it would have been madness for any other even to have contemplated
it. It was thus he had succeeded in approaching several times the beautiful and
proud Anne of Austria, and in making himself loved by dazzling her.
George Villiers placed himself before the
glass, as we have said, restored the undulations to his beautiful hair, which
the weight of his hat had disordered, twisted his mustache, and, his heart
swelling with joy, happy and proud at being near the moment he had so long
sighed for, he smiled upon himself with pride and hope.
At this moment a door concealed in the tapestry
opened, and a woman appeared. Buckingham saw this apparition in the glass; he
uttered a cry. It was the queen!
Anne of Austria was then twenty-six or
twenty-seven years of age; that is to say, she was in the full splendor of her
beauty.
Her carriage was that of a queen or a goddess;
her eyes, which cast the brilliancy of emeralds, were perfectly beautiful, and
yet were at the same time full of sweetness and majesty.
Her mouth was small and rosy; and although her
underlip, like that of all princes of the House of Austria, protruded slightly
beyond the other, it was eminently lovely in its smile, but as profoundly
disdainful in its contempt.
Her skin was admired for its velvety softness;
her hands and arms were of surpassing beauty, all the poets of the time singing
them as incomparable.
Lastly, her hair, which, from being light in
her youth, had become chestnut, and which she wore curled very plainly, and with
much powder, admirably set off her face, in which the most rigid critic could
only have desired a little less rouge, and the most fastidious sculptor a little
more fineness in the nose.
Buckingham remained for a moment dazzled. Never
had Anne of Austria appeared to him so beautiful, amid balls, fetes, or
carousals, as she appeared to him at this moment, dressed in a simple robe of
white satin, and accompanied by Donna Estafania—the only one of her Spanish
women who had not been driven from her by the jealousy of the king or by the
persecutions of Richelieu.
Anne of Austria took two steps forward.
Buckingham threw himself at her feet, and before the queen could prevent him,
kissed the hem of her robe.
"Duke, you already know that it is not I who
caused you to be written to."
"Yes, yes, madame! Yes, your Majesty!" cried
the duke. "I know that I must have been mad, senseless, to believe that snow
would become animated or marble warm; but what then! They who love believe
easily in love. Besides, I have lost nothing by this journey because I see you."
"Yes," replied Anne, "but you know why and how
I see you; because, insensible to all my sufferings, you persist in remaining in
a city where, by remaining, you run the risk of your life, and make me run the
risk of my honor. I see you to tell you that everything separates us—the depths
of the sea, the enmity of kingdoms, the sanctity of vows. It is sacrilege to
struggle against so many things, my Lord. In short, I see you to tell you that
we must never see each other again."
"Speak on, madame, speak on, Queen," said
Buckingham; "the sweetness of your voice covers the harshness of your words. You
talk of sacrilege! Why, the sacrilege is the separation of two hearts formed by
God for each other."
"My Lord," cried the queen, "you forget that I
have never said that I love you."
"But you have never told me that you did not
love me; and truly, to speak such words to me would be, on the part of your
Majesty, too great an ingratitude. For tell me, where can you find a love like
mine—a love which neither time, nor absence, nor despair can extinguish, a love
which contents itself with a lost ribbon, a stray look, or a chance word? It is
now three years, madame, since I saw you for the first time, and during those
three years I have loved you thus. Shall I tell you each ornament of your
toilet? Mark! I see you now. You were seated upon cushions in the Spanish
fashion; you wore a robe of green satin embroidered with gold and silver,
hanging sleeves knotted upon your beautiful arms—those lovely arms—with large
diamonds. You wore a close ruff, a small cap upon your head of the same color as
your robe, and in that cap a heron's feather. Hold! Hold! I shut my eyes, and I
can see you as you then were; I open them again, and I see what you are now—a
hundred time more beautiful!"
"What folly," murmured Anne of Austria, who had
not the courage to find fault with the duke for having so well preserved her
portrait in his heart, "what folly to feed a useless passion with such
remembrances!"
"And upon what then must I live? I have nothing
but memory. It is my happiness, my treasure, my hope. Every time I see you is a
fresh diamond which I enclose in the casket of my heart. This is the fourth
which you have let fall and I have picked up; for in three years, madame, I have
only seen you four times—the first, which I have described to you; the second,
at the mansion of Madame de Chevreuse; the third, in the gardens of Amiens."
"Duke," said the queen, blushing, "never speak
of that evening."
"Oh, let us speak of it; on the contrary, let
us speak of it! That is the most happy and brilliant evening of my life! You
remember what a beautiful night it was? How soft and perfumed was the air; how
lovely the blue heavens and star-enameled sky! Ah, then, madame, I was able for
one instant to be alone with you. Then you were about to tell me all—the
isolation of your life, the griefs of your heart. You leaned upon my arm—upon
this, madame! I felt, in bending my head toward you, your beautiful hair touch
my cheek; and every time that it touched me I trembled from head to foot. Oh,
Queen! Queen! You do not know what felicity from heaven, what joys from
paradise, are comprised in a moment like that. Take my wealth, my fortune, my
glory, all the days I have to live, for such an instant, for a night like that.
For that night, madame, that night you loved me, I will swear it."
"My Lord, yes; it is possible that the
influence of the place, the charm of the beautiful evening, the fascination of
your look—the thousand circumstances, in short, which sometimes unite to destroy
a woman—were grouped around me on that fatal evening; but, my Lord, you saw the
queen come to the aid of the woman who faltered. At the first word you dared to
utter, at the first freedom to which I had to reply, I called for help."
"Yes, yes, that is true. And any other love but
mine would have sunk beneath this ordeal; but my love came out from it more
ardent and more eternal. You believed that you would fly from me by returning to
Paris; you believed that I would not dare to quit the treasure over which my
master had charged me to watch. What to me were all the treasures in the world,
or all the kings of the earth! Eight days after, I was back again, madame. That
time you had nothing to say to me; I had risked my life and favor to see you but
for a second. I did not even touch your hand, and you pardoned me on seeing me
so submissive and so repentant."
"Yes, but calumny seized upon all those follies
in which I took no part, as you well know, my Lord. The king, excited by the
cardinal, made a terrible clamor. Madame de Vernet was driven from me, Putange
was exiled, Madame de Chevreuse fell into disgrace, and when you wished to come
back as ambassador to France, the king himself—remember, my lord—the king
himself opposed to it."
"Yes, and France is about to pay for her king's
refusal with a war. I am not allowed to see you, madame, but you shall every day
hear of me. What object, think you, have this expedition to Re and this league
with the Protestants of La Rochelle which I am projecting? The pleasure of
seeing you. I have no hope of penetrating, sword in hand, to Paris, I know that
well. But this war may bring round a peace; this peace will require a
negotiator; that negotiator will be me. They will not dare to refuse me then;
and I will return to Paris, and will see you again, and will be happy for an
instant. Thousands of men, it is true, will have to pay for my happiness with
their lives; but what is that to me, provided I see you again! All this is
perhaps folly—perhaps insanity; but tell me what woman has a lover more truly in
love; what queen a servant more ardent?"
"My Lord, my Lord, you invoke in your defense
things which accuse you more strongly. All these proofs of love which you would
give me are almost crimes."
"Because you do not love me, madame! If you
loved me, you would view all this otherwise. If you loved me, oh, if you loved
me, that would be too great happiness, and I should run mad. Ah, Madame de
Chevreuse was less cruel than you. Holland loved her, and she responded to his
love."
"Madame de Chevreuse was not queen," murmured
Anne of Austria, overcome, in spite of herself, by the expression of so profound
a passion.
"You would love me, then, if you were not
queen! Madame, say that you would love me then! I can believe that it is the
dignity of your rank alone which makes you cruel to me; I can believe that you
had been Madame de Chevreuse, poor Buckingham might have hoped. Thanks for those
sweet words! Oh, my beautiful sovereign, a hundred times, thanks!"
"Oh, my Lord! You have ill understood, wrongly
interpreted; I did not mean to say—"
"Silence, silence!" cried the duke. "If I am
happy in an error, do not have the cruelty to lift me from it. You have told me
yourself, madame, that I have been drawn into a snare; I, perhaps, may leave my
life in it—for, although it may be strange, I have for some time had a
presentiment that I should shortly die." And the duke smiled, with a smile at
once sad and charming.
"Oh, my God!" cried Anne of Austria, with an
accent of terror which proved how much greater an interest she took in the duke
than she ventured to tell.
"I do not tell you this, madame, to terrify
you; no, it is even ridiculous for me to name it to you, and, believe me, I take
no heed of such dreams. But the words you have just spoken, the hope you have
almost given me, will have richly paid all—were it my life."
"Oh, but I," said Anne, "I also, duke, have had
presentiments; I also have had dreams. I dreamed that I saw you lying bleeding,
wounded."
"In the left side, was it not, and with a
knife?" interrupted Buckingham.
"Yes, it was so, my Lord, it was so—in the left
side, and with a knife. Who can possibly have told you I had had that dream? I
have imparted it to no one but my God, and that in my prayers."
"I ask for no more. You love me, madame; it is
enough."
"I love you, I?"
"Yes, yes. Would God send the same dreams to
you as to me if you did not love me? Should we have the same presentiments if
our existences did not touch at the heart? You love me, my beautiful queen, and
you will weep for me?"
"Oh, my God, my God!" cried Anne of Austria,
"this is more than I can bear. In the name of heaven, Duke, leave me, go! I do
not know whether I love you or love you not; but what I know is that I will not
be perjured. Take pity on me, then, and go! Oh, if you are struck in France, if
you die in France, if I could imagine that your love for me was the cause of
your death, I could not console myself; I should run mad. Depart then, depart, I
implore you!"
"Oh, how beautiful you are thus! Oh, how I love
you!" said Buckingham.
"Go, go, I implore you, and return hereafter!
Come back as ambassador, come back as minister, come back surrounded with guards
who will defend you, with servants who will watch over you, and then I shall no
longer fear for your days, and I shall be happy in seeing you."
"Oh, is this true what you say?"
"Yes."
"Oh, then, some pledge of your indulgence, some
object which came from you, and may remind me that I have not been dreaming;
something you have worn, and that I may wear in my turn—a ring, a necklace, a
chain."
"Will you depart—will you depart, if I give you
that you demand?"
"Yes."
"This very instant?"
"Yes."
"You will leave France, you will return to
England?"
"I will, I swear to you."
"Wait, then, wait."
Anne of Austria re-entered her apartment, and
came out again almost immediately, holding a rosewood casket in her hand, with
her cipher encrusted with gold.
"Here, my Lord, here," said she, "keep this in
memory of me."
Buckingham took the casket, and fell a second
time on his knees.
"You have promised me to go," said the queen.
"And I keep my word. Your hand, madame, your
hand, and I depart!"
Anne of Austria stretched forth her hand,
closing her eyes, and leaning with the other upon Estafania, for she felt that
her strength was about to fail her.
Buckingham pressed his lips passionately to
that beautiful hand, and then rising, said, "Within six months, if I am not
dead, I shall have seen you again, madame—even if I have to overturn the world."
And faithful to the promise he had made, he rushed out of the apartment.
In the corridor he met Mme. Bonacieux, who
waited for him, and who, with the same precautions and the same good luck,
conducted him out of the Louvre.
13 MONSIEUR BONACIEUX
There was in all this, as may have been
observed, one personage concerned, of whom, notwithstanding his precarious
position, we have appeared to take but very little notice. This personage was M.
Bonacieux, the respectable martyr of the political and amorous intrigues which
entangled themselves so nicely together at this gallant and chivalric period.
Fortunately, the reader may remember, or may
not remember—fortunately we have promised not to lose sight of him.
The officers who arrested him conducted him
straight to the Bastille, where he passed trembling before a party of soldiers
who were loading their muskets. Thence, introduced into a half-subterranean
gallery, he became, on the part of those who had brought him, the object of the
grossest insults and the harshest treatment. The officers perceived that they
had not to deal with a gentleman, and they treated him like a very peasant.
At the end of half an hour or thereabouts, a
clerk came to put an end to his tortures, but not to his anxiety, by giving the
order to conduct M. Bonacieux to the Chamber of Examination. Ordinarily,
prisoners were interrogated in their cells; but they did not do so with M.
Bonacieux.
Two guards attended the mercer who made him
traverse a court and enter a corridor in which were three sentinels, opened a
door and pushed him unceremoniously into a low room, where the only furniture
was a table, a chair, and a commissary. The commissary was seated in the chair,
and was writing at the table.
The two guards led the prisoner toward the
table, and upon a sign from the commissary drew back so far as to be unable to
hear anything.
The commissary, who had till this time held his
head down over his papers, looked up to see what sort of person he had to do
with. This commissary was a man of very repulsive mien, with a pointed nose,
with yellow and salient cheek bones, with eyes small but keen and penetrating,
and an expression of countenance resembling at once the polecat and the fox. His
head, supported by a long and flexible neck, issued from his large black robe,
balancing itself with a motion very much like that of the tortoise thrusting his
head out of his shell. He began by asking M. Bonacieux his name, age, condition,
and abode.
The accused replied that his name was Jacques
Michel Bonacieux, that he was fifty-one years old, a retired mercer, and lived
Rue des Fossoyeurs, No. 14.
The commissary then, instead of continuing to
interrogate him, made him a long speech upon the danger there is for an obscure
citizen to meddle with public matters. He complicated this exordium by an
exposition in which he painted the power and the deeds of the cardinal, that
incomparable minister, that conqueror of past ministers, that example for
ministers to come—deeds and power which none could thwart with impunity.
After this second part of his discourse, fixing
his hawk's eye upon poor Bonacieux, he bade him reflect upon the gravity of his
situation.
The reflections of the mercer were already
made; he cursed the instant when M. Laporte formed the idea of marrying him to
his goddaughter, and particularly the moment when that goddaughter had been
received as Lady of the Linen to her Majesty.
At bottom the character of M. Bonacieux was one
of profound selfishness mixed with sordid avarice, the whole seasoned with
extreme cowardice. The love with which his young wife had inspired him was a
secondary sentiment, and was not strong enough to contend with the primitive
feelings we have just enumerated. Bonacieux indeed reflected on what had just
been said to him.
"But, Monsieur Commissary," said he, calmly,
"believe that I know and appreciate, more than anybody, the merit of the
incomparable eminence by whom we have the honor to be governed."
"Indeed?" asked the commissary, with an air of
doubt. "If that is really so, how came you in the Bastille?"
"How I came there, or rather why I am there,"
replied Bonacieux, "that is entirely impossible for me to tell you, because I
don't know myself; but to a certainty it is not for having, knowingly at least,
disobliged Monsieur the Cardinal."
"You must, nevertheless, have committed a
crime, since you are here and are accused of high treason."
"Of high treason!" cried Bonacieux, terrified;
"of high treason! How is it possible for a poor mercer, who detests Huguenots
and who abhors Spaniards, to be accused of high treason? Consider, monsieur, the
thing is absolutely impossible."
"Monsieur Bonacieux," said the commissary,
looking at the accused as if his little eyes had the faculty of reading to the
very depths of hearts, "you have a wife?"
"Yes, monsieur," replied the mercer, in a
tremble, feeling that it was at this point affairs were likely to become
perplexing; "that is to say, I HAD one."
"What, you 'had one'? What have you done with
her, then, if you have her no longer?"
"They have abducted her, monsieur."
"They have abducted her? Ah!"
Bonacieux inferred from this "Ah" that the
affair grew more and more intricate.
"They have abducted her," added the commissary;
"and do you know the man who has committed this deed?"
"I think I know him."
"Who is he?"
"Remember that I affirm nothing, Monsieur the
Commissary, and that I only suspect."
"Whom do you suspect? Come, answer freely."
M. Bonacieux was in the greatest perplexity
possible. Had he better deny everything or tell everything? By denying all, it
might be suspected that he must know too much to avow; by confessing all he
might prove his good will. He decided, then, to tell all.
"I suspect," said he, "a tall, dark man, of
lofty carriage, who has the air of a great lord. He has followed us several
times, as I think, when I have waited for my wife at the wicket of the Louvre to
escort her home."
The commissary now appeared to experience a
little uneasiness.
"And his name?" said he.
"Oh, as to his name, I know nothing about it;
but if I were ever to meet him, I should recognize him in an instant, I will
answer for it, were he among a thousand persons."
The face of the commissary grew still darker.
"You should recognize him among a thousand, say
you?" continued he.
"That is to say," cried Bonacieux, who saw he
had taken a false step, "that is to say—"
"You have answered that you should recognize
him," said the commissary. "That is all very well, and enough for today; before
we proceed further, someone must be informed that you know the ravisher of your
wife."
"But I have not told you that I know him!"
cried Bonacieux, in despair. "I told you, on the contrary—"
"Take away the prisoner," said the commissary
to the two guards.
"Where must we place him?" demanded the chief.
"In a dungeon."
"Which?"
"Good Lord! In the first one handy, provided it
is safe," said the commissary, with an indifference which penetrated poor
Bonacieux with horror.
"Alas, alas!" said he to himself, "misfortune
is over my head; my wife must have committed some frightful crime. They believe
me her accomplice, and will punish me with her. She must have spoken; she must
have confessed everything—a woman is so weak! A dungeon! The first he comes to!
That's it! A night is soon passed; and tomorrow to the wheel, to the gallows!
Oh, my God, my God, have pity on me!"
Without listening the least in the world to the
lamentations of M. Bonacieux—lamentations to which, besides, they must have been
pretty well accustomed—the two guards took the prisoner each by an arm, and led
him away, while the commissary wrote a letter in haste and dispatched it by an
officer in waiting.
Bonacieux could not close his eyes; not because
his dungeon was so very disagreeable, but because his uneasiness was so great.
He sat all night on his stool, starting at the least noise; and when the first
rays of the sun penetrated into his chamber, the dawn itself appeared to him to
have taken funereal tints.
All at once he heard his bolts drawn, and made
a terrified bound. He believed they were come to conduct him to the scaffold; so
that when he saw merely and simply, instead of the executioner he expected, only
his commissary of the preceding evening, attended by his clerk, he was ready to
embrace them both.
"Your affair has become more complicated since
yesterday evening, my good man, and I advise you to tell the whole truth; for
your repentance alone can remove the anger of the cardinal."
"Why, I am ready to tell everything," cried
Bonacieux, "at least, all that I know. Interrogate me, I entreat you!"
"Where is your wife, in the first place?"
"Why, did not I tell you she had been stolen
from me?"
"Yes, but yesterday at five o'clock in the
afternoon, thanks to you, she escaped."
"My wife escaped!" cried Bonacieux. "Oh,
unfortunate creature! Monsieur, if she has escaped, it is not my fault, I
swear."
"What business had you, then, to go into the
chamber of Monsieur d'Artagnan, your neighbor, with whom you had a long
conference during the day?"
"Ah, yes, Monsieur Commissary; yes, that is
true, and I confess that I was in the wrong. I did go to Monsieur d'Artagnan's."
"What was the aim of that visit?"
"To beg him to assist me in finding my wife. I
believed I had a right to endeavor to find her. I was deceived, as it appears,
and I ask your pardon."
"And what did Monsieur d'Artagnan reply?"
"Monsieur d'Artagnan promised me his
assistance; but I soon found out that he was betraying me."
"You impose upon justice. Monsieur d'Artagnan
made a compact with you; and in virtue of that compact put to flight the police
who had arrested your wife, and has placed her beyond reach."
"Fortunately, Monsieur d'Artagnan is in our
hands, and you shall be confronted with him."
"By my faith, I ask no better," cried
Bonacieux; "I shall not be sorry to see the face of an acquaintance."
"Bring in the Monsieur d'Artagnan," said the
commissary to the guards. The two guards led in Athos.
"Monsieur d'Artagnan," said the commissary,
addressing Athos, "declare all that passed yesterday between you and Monsieur."
"But," cried Bonacieux, "this is not Monsieur
d'Artagnan whom you show me."
"What! Not Monsieur d'Artagnan?" exclaimed the
commissary.
"Not the least in the world," replied
Bonacieux.
"What is this gentleman's name?" asked the
commissary.
"I cannot tell you; I don't know him."
"How! You don't know him?"
"No."
"Did you never see him?"
"Yes, I have seen him, but I don't know what he
calls himself."
"Your name?" replied the commissary.
"Athos," replied the Musketeer.
"But that is not a man's name; that is the name
of a mountain," cried the poor questioner, who began to lose his head.
"That is my name," said Athos, quietly.
"But you said that your name was d'Artagnan."
"Who, I?"
"Yes, you."
"Somebody said to me, 'You are Monsieur
d'Artagnan?' I answered, 'You think so?' My guards exclaimed that they were sure
of it. I did not wish to contradict them; besides, I might be deceived."
"Monsieur, you insult the majesty of justice."
"Not at all," said Athos, calmly.
"You are Monsieur d'Artagnan."
"You see, monsieur, that you say it again."
"But I tell you, Monsieur Commissary," cried
Bonacieux, in his turn, "there is not the least doubt about the matter. Monsieur
d'Artagnan is my tenant, although he does not pay me my rent—and even better on
that account ought I to know him. Monsieur d'Artagnan is a young man, scarcely
nineteen or twenty, and this gentleman must be thirty at least. Monsieur
d'Artagnan is in Monsieur Dessessart's Guards, and this gentleman is in the
company of Monsieur de Treville's Musketeers. Look at his uniform, Monsieur
Commissary, look at his uniform!"
"That's true," murmured the commissary;
"PARDIEU, that's true."
At this moment the door was opened quickly, and
a messenger, introduced by one of the gatekeepers of the Bastille, gave a letter
to the commissary.
"Oh, unhappy woman!" cried the commissary.
"How? What do you say? Of whom do you speak? It
is not of my wife, I hope!"
"On the contrary, it is of her. Yours is a
pretty business."
"But," said the agitated mercer, "do me the
pleasure, monsieur, to tell me how my own proper affair can become worse by
anything my wife does while I am in prison?"
"Because that which she does is part of a plan
concerted between you—of an infernal plan."
"I swear to you, Monsieur Commissary, that you
are in the profoundest error, that I know nothing in the world about what my
wife had to do, that I am entirely a stranger to what she has done; and that if
she has committed any follies, I renounce her, I abjure her, I curse her!"
"Bah!" said Athos to the commissary, "if you
have no more need of me, send me somewhere. Your Monsieur Bonacieux is very
tiresome."
The commissary designated by the same gesture
Athos and Bonacieux, "Let them be guarded more closely than ever."
"And yet," said Athos, with his habitual
calmness, "if it be Monsieur d'Artagnan who is concerned in this matter, I do
not perceive how I can take his place."
"Do as I bade you," cried the commissary, "and
preserve absolute secrecy. You understand!"
Athos shrugged his shoulders, and followed his
guards silently, while M. Bonacieux uttered lamentations enough to break the
heart of a tiger.
They locked the mercer in the same dungeon
where he had passed the night, and left him to himself during the day. Bonacieux
wept all day, like a true mercer, not being at all a military man, as he himself
informed us. In the evening, about nine o'clock, at the moment he had made up
his mind to go to bed, he heard steps in his corridor. These steps drew near to
his dungeon, the door was thrown open, and the guards appeared.
"Follow me," said an officer, who came up
behind the guards.
"Follow you!" cried Bonacieux, "follow you at
this hour! Where, my God?"
"Where we have orders to lead you."
"But that is not an answer."
"It is, nevertheless, the only one we can
give."
"Ah, my God, my God!" murmured the poor mercer,
"now, indeed, I am lost!" And he followed the guards who came for him,
mechanically and without resistance.
He passed along the same corridor as before,
crossed one court, then a second side of a building; at length, at the gate of
the entrance court he found a carriage surrounded by four guards on horseback.
They made him enter this carriage, the officer placed himself by his side, the
door was locked, and they were left in a rolling prison. The carriage was put in
motion as slowly as a funeral car. Through the closely fastened windows the
prisoner could perceive the houses and the pavement, that was all; but, true
Parisian as he was, Bonacieux could recognize every street by the milestones,
the signs, and the lamps. At the moment of arriving at St. Paul—the spot where
such as were condemned at the Bastille were executed—he was near fainting and
crossed himself twice. He thought the carriage was about to stop there. The
carriage, however, passed on.
Farther on, a still greater terror seized him
on passing by the cemetery of St. Jean, where state criminals were buried. One
thing, however, reassured him; he remembered that before they were buried their
heads were generally cut off, and he felt that his head was still on his
shoulders. But when he saw the carriage take the way to La Greve, when he
perceived the pointed roof of the Hotel de Ville, and the carriage passed under
the arcade, he believed it was over with him. He wished to confess to the
officer, and upon his refusal, uttered such pitiable cries that the officer told
him that if he continued to deafen him thus, he should put a gag in his mouth.
This measure somewhat reassured Bonacieux. If
they meant to execute him at La Greve, it could scarcely be worth while to gag
him, as they had nearly reached the place of execution. Indeed, the carriage
crossed the fatal spot without stopping. There remained, then, no other place to
fear but the Traitor's Cross; the carriage was taking the direct road to it.
This time there was no longer any doubt; it was
at the Traitor's Cross that lesser criminals were executed. Bonacieux had
flattered himself in believing himself worthy of St. Paul or of the Place de
Greve; it was at the Traitor's Cross that his journey and his destiny were about
to end! He could not yet see that dreadful cross, but he felt somehow as if it
were coming to meet him. When he was within twenty paces of it, he heard a noise
of people and the carriage stopped. This was more than poor Bonacieux could
endure, depressed as he was by the successive emotions which he had experienced;
he uttered a feeble groan which night have been taken for the last sigh of a
dying man, and fainted.
14 THE MAN OF MEUNG
The crowd was caused, not by the expectation of
a man to be hanged, but by the contemplation of a man who was hanged.
The carriage, which had been stopped for a
minute, resumed its way, passed through the crowd, threaded the Rue St. Honore,
turned into the Rue des Bons Enfants, and stopped before a low door.
The door opened; two guards received Bonacieux
in their arms from the officer who supported him. They carried him through an
alley, up a flight of stairs, and deposited him in an antechamber.
All these movements had been effected
mechanically, as far as he was concerned. He had walked as one walks in a dream;
he had a glimpse of objects as through a fog. His ears had perceived sounds
without comprehending them; he might have been executed at that moment without
his making a single gesture in his own defense or uttering a cry to implore
mercy.
He remained on the bench, with his back leaning
against the wall and his hands hanging down, exactly on the spot where the
guards placed him.
On looking around him, however, as he could
perceive no threatening object, as nothing indicated that he ran any real
danger, as the bench was comfortably covered with a well-stuffed cushion, as the
wall was ornamented with a beautiful Cordova leather, and as large red damask
curtains, fastened back by gold clasps, floated before the window, he perceived
by degrees that his fear was exaggerated, and he began to turn his head to the
right and the left, upward and downward.
At this movement, which nobody opposed, he
resumed a little courage, and ventured to draw up one leg and then the other. At
length, with the help of his two hands he lifted himself from the bench, and
found himself on his feet.
At this moment an officer with a pleasant face
opened a door, continued to exchange some words with a person in the next
chamber and then came up to the prisoner. "Is your name Bonacieux?" said he.
"Yes, Monsieur Officer," stammered the mercer,
more dead than alive, "at your service."
"Come in," said the officer.
And he moved out of the way to let the mercer
pass. The latter obeyed without reply, and entered the chamber, where he
appeared to be expected.
It was a large cabinet, close and stifling,
with the walls furnished with arms offensive and defensive, and in which there
was already a fire, although it was scarcely the end of the month of September.
A square table, covered with books and papers, upon which was unrolled an
immense plan of the city of La Rochelle, occupied the center of the room.
Standing before the chimney was a man of middle
height, of a haughty, proud mien; with piercing eyes, a large brow, and a thin
face, which was made still longer by a ROYAL (or IMPERIAL, as it is now called),
surmounted by a pair of mustaches. Although this man was scarcely thirty-six or
thirty-seven years of age, hair, mustaches, and royal, all began to be gray.
This man, except a sword, had all the appearance of a soldier; and his buff
boots still slightly covered with dust, indicated that he had been on horseback
in the course of the day.
This man was Armand Jean Duplessis, Cardinal de
Richelieu; not such as he is now represented—broken down like an old man,
suffering like a martyr, his body bent, his voice failing, buried in a large
armchair as in an anticipated tomb; no longer living but by the strength of his
genius, and no longer maintaining the struggle with Europe but by the eternal
application of his thoughts—but such as he really was at this period; that is to
say, an active and gallant cavalier, already weak of body, but sustained by that
moral power which made of him one of the most extraordinary men that ever lived,
preparing, after having supported the Duc de Nevers in his duchy of Mantua,
after having taken Nimes, Castres, and Uzes, to drive the English from the Isle
of Re and lay siege to La Rochelle.
At first sight, nothing denoted the cardinal;
and it was impossible for those who did not know his face to guess in whose
presence they were.
The poor mercer remained standing at the door,
while the eyes of the personage we have just described were fixed upon him, and
appeared to wish to penetrate even into the depths of the past.
"Is this that Bonacieux?" asked he, after a
moment of silence.
"Yes, monseigneur," replied the officer.
"That's well. Give me those papers, and leave
us."
The officer took from the table the papers
pointed out, gave them to him who asked for them, bowed to the ground, and
retired.
Bonacieux recognized in these papers his
interrogatories of the Bastille. From time to time the man by the chimney raised
his eyes from the writings, and plunged them like poniards into the heart of the
poor mercer.
At the end of ten minutes of reading and ten
seconds of examination, the cardinal was satisfied.
"That head has never conspired," murmured he,
"but it matters not; we will see."
"You are accused of high treason," said the
cardinal, slowly.
"So I have been told already, monseigneur,"
cried Bonacieux, giving his interrogator the title he had heard the officer give
him, "but I swear to you that I know nothing about it."
The cardinal repressed a smile.
"You have conspired with your wife, with Madame
de Chevreuse, and with my Lord Duke of Buckingham."
"Indeed, monseigneur," responded the mercer, "I
have heard her pronounce all those names."
"And on what occasion?"
"She said that the Cardinal de Richelieu had
drawn the Duke of Buckingham to Paris to ruin him and to ruin the queen."
"She said that?" cried the cardinal, with
violence.
"Yes, monseigneur, but I told her she was wrong
to talk about such things; and that his Eminence was incapable—"
"Hold your tongue! You are stupid," replied the
cardinal.
"That's exactly what my wife said,
monseigneur."
"Do you know who carried off your wife?"
"No, monseigneur."
"You have suspicions, nevertheless?"
"Yes, monseigneur; but these suspicions
appeared to be disagreeable to Monsieur the Commissary, and I no longer have
them."
"Your wife has escaped. Did you know that?"
"No, monseigneur. I learned it since I have
been in prison, and that from the conversation of Monsieur the Commissary—an
amiable man."
The cardinal repressed another smile.
"Then you are ignorant of what has become of
your wife since her flight."
"Absolutely, monseigneur; but she has most
likely returned to the Louvre."
"At one o'clock this morning she had not
returned."
"My God! What can have become of her, then?"
"We shall know, be assured. Nothing is
concealed from the cardinal; the cardinal knows everything."
"In that case, monseigneur, do you believe the
cardinal will be so kind as to tell me what has become of my wife?"
"Perhaps he may; but you must, in the first
place, reveal to the cardinal all you know of your wife's relations with Madame
de Chevreuse."
"But, monseigneur, I know nothing about them; I
have never seen her."
"When you went to fetch your wife from the
Louvre, did you always return directly home?"
"Scarcely ever; she had business to transact
with linen drapers, to whose houses I conducted her."
"And how many were there of these linen
drapers?"
"Two, monseigneur."
"And where did they live?"
"One in Rue de Vaugirard, the other Rue de la
Harpe."
"Did you go into these houses with her?"
"Never, monseigneur; I waited at the door."
"And what excuse did she give you for entering
all alone?"
"She gave me none; she told me to wait, and I
waited."
"You are a very complacent husband, my dear
Monsieur Bonacieux," said the cardinal.
"He calls me his dear Monsieur," said the
mercer to himself. "PESTE! Matters are going all right."
"Should you know those doors again?"
"Yes."
"Do you know the numbers?"
"Yes."
"What are they?"
"No. 25 in the Rue de Vaugirard; 75 in the Rue
de la Harpe."
"That's well," said the cardinal.
At these words he took up a silver bell, and
rang it; the officer entered.
"Go," said he, in a subdued voice, "and find
Rochefort. Tell him to come to me immediately, if he has returned."
"The count is here," said the officer, "and
requests to speak with your Eminence instantly."
"Let him come in, then!" said the cardinal,
quickly.
The officer sprang out of the apartment with
that alacrity which all the servants of the cardinal displayed in obeying him.
"To your Eminence!" murmured Bonacieux, rolling
his eyes round in astonishment.
Five seconds has scarcely elapsed after the
disappearance of the officer, when the door opened, and a new personage entered.
"It is he!" cried Bonacieux.
"He! What he?" asked the cardinal.
"The man who abducted my wife."
The cardinal rang a second time. The officer
reappeared.
"Place this man in the care of his guards
again, and let him wait till I send for him."
"No, monseigneur, no, it is not he!" cried
Bonacieux; "no, I was deceived. This is quite another man, and does not resemble
him at all. Monsieur is, I am sure, an honest man."
"Take away that fool!" said the cardinal.
The officer took Bonacieux by the arm, and led
him into the antechamber, where he found his two guards.
The newly introduced personage followed
Bonacieux impatiently with his eyes till he had gone out; and the moment the
door closed, "They have seen each other;" said he, approaching the cardinal
eagerly.
"Who?" asked his Eminence.
"He and she."
"The queen and the duke?" cried Richelieu.
"Yes."
"Where?"
"At the Louvre."
"Are you sure of it?"
"Perfectly sure."
"Who told you of it?"
"Madame de Lannoy, who is devoted to your
Eminence, as you know."
"Why did she not let me know sooner?"
"Whether by chance or mistrust, the queen made
Madame de Surgis sleep in her chamber, and detained her all day."
"Well, we are beaten! Now let us try to take
our revenge."
"I will assist you with all my heart,
monseigneur; be assured of that."
"How did it come about?"
"At half past twelve the queen was with her
women—"
"Where?"
"In her bedchamber—"
"Go on."
"When someone came and brought her a
handkerchief from her laundress."
"And then?"
"The queen immediately exhibited strong
emotion; and despite the rouge with which her face was covered evidently turned
pale—"
"And then, and then?"
"She then arose, and with altered voice,
'Ladies,' said she, 'wait for me ten minutes, I shall soon return.' She then
opened the door of her alcove, and went out."
"Why did not Madame de Lannoy come and inform
you instantly?"
"Nothing was certain; besides, her Majesty had
said, 'Ladies, wait for me,' and she did not dare to disobey the queen."
"How long did the queen remain out of the
chamber?"
"Three-quarters of an hour."
"None of her women accompanied her?"
"Only Donna Estafania."
"Did she afterward return?"
"Yes; but only to take a little rosewood
casket, with her cipher upon it, and went out again immediately."
"And when she finally returned, did she bring
that casket with her?"
"No."
"Does Madame de Lannoy know what was in that
casket?"
"Yes; the diamond studs which his Majesty gave
the queen."
"And she came back without this casket?"
"Yes."
"Madame de Lannoy, then, is of opinion that she
gave them to Buckingham?"
"She is sure of it."
"How can she be so?"
"In the course of the day Madame de Lannoy, in
her quality of tire-woman of the queen, looked for this casket, appeared uneasy
at not finding it, and at length asked information of the queen."
"And then the queen?"
"The queen became exceedingly red, and replied
that having in the evening broken one of those studs, she had sent it to her
goldsmith to be repaired."
"He must be called upon, and so ascertain if
the thing be true or not."
"I have just been with him."
"And the goldsmith?"
"The goldsmith has heard nothing of it."
"Well, well! Rochefort, all is not lost; and
perhaps—perhaps everything is for the best."
"The fact is that I do not doubt your
Eminence's genius—"
"Will repair the blunders of his agent—is that
it?"
"That is exactly what I was going to say, if
your Eminence had let me finish my sentence."
"Meanwhile, do you know where the Duchesse de
Chevreuse and the Duke of Buckingham are now concealed?"
"No, monseigneur; my people could tell me
nothing on that head."
"But I know."
"You, monseigneur?"
"Yes; or at least I guess. They were, one in
the Rue de Vaugirard, No. 25; the other in the Rue de la Harpe, No. 75."
"Does your Eminence command that they both be
instantly arrested?"
"It will be too late; they will be gone."
"But still, we can make sure that they are so."
"Take ten men of my Guardsmen, and search the
two houses thoroughly."
"Instantly, monseigneur." And Rochefort went
hastily out of the apartment.
The cardinal being left alone, reflected for an
instant and then rang the bell a third time. The same officer appeared.
"Bring the prisoner in again," said the
cardinal.
M. Bonacieux was introduced afresh, and upon a
sign from the cardinal, the officer retired.
"You have deceived me!" said the cardinal,
sternly.
"I," cried Bonacieux, "I deceive your
Eminence!"
"Your wife, in going to Rue de Vaugirard and
Rue de la Harpe, did not go to find linen drapers."
"Then why did she go, just God?"
"She went to meet the Duchesse de Chevreuse and
the Duke of Buckingham."
"Yes," cried Bonacieux, recalling all his
remembrances of the circumstances, "yes, that's it. Your Eminence is right. I
told my wife several times that it was surprising that linen drapers should live
in such houses as those, in houses that had no signs; but she always laughed at
me. Ah, monseigneur!" continued Bonacieux, throwing himself at his Eminence's
feet, "ah, how truly you are the cardinal, the great cardinal, the man of genius
whom all the world reveres!"
The cardinal, however contemptible might be the
triumph gained over so vulgar a being as Bonacieux, did not the less enjoy it
for an instant; then, almost immediately, as if a fresh thought has occurred, a
smile played upon his lips, and he said, offering his hand to the mercer, "Rise,
my friend, you are a worthy man."
"The cardinal has touched me with his hand! I
have touched the hand of the great man!" cried Bonacieux. "The great man has
called me his friend!"
"Yes, my friend, yes," said the cardinal, with
that paternal tone which he sometimes knew how to assume, but which deceived
none who knew him; "and as you have been unjustly suspected, well, you must be
indemnified. Here, take this purse of a hundred pistoles, and pardon me."
"I pardon you, monseigneur!" said Bonacieux,
hesitating to take the purse, fearing, doubtless, that this pretended gift was
but a pleasantry. "But you are able to have me arrested, you are able to have me
tortured, you are able to have me hanged; you are the master, and I could not
have the least word to say. Pardon you, monseigneur! You cannot mean that!"
"Ah, my dear Monsieur Bonacieux, you are
generous in this matter. I see it and I thank you for it. Thus, then, you will
take this bag, and you will go away without being too malcontent."
"I go away enchanted."
"Farewell, then, or rather, AU REVOIR!"
And the cardinal made him a sign with his hand,
to which Bonacieux replied by bowing to the ground. He then went out backward,
and when he was in the antechamber the cardinal heard him, in his enthusiasm,
crying aloud, "Long life to the Monseigneur! Long life to his Eminence! Long
life to the great cardinal!" The cardinal listened with a smile to this
vociferous manifestation of the feelings of M. Bonacieux; and then, when
Bonacieux's cries were no longer audible, "Good!" said he, "that man would
henceforward lay down his life for me." And the cardinal began to examine with
the greatest attention the map of La Rochelle, which, as we have said, lay open
on the desk, tracing with a pencil the line in which the famous dyke was to pass
which, eighteen months later, shut up the port of the besieged city. As he was
in the deepest of his strategic meditations, the door opened, and Rochefort
returned.
"Well?" said the cardinal, eagerly, rising with
a promptitude which proved the degree of importance he attached to the
commission with which he had charged the count.
"Well," said the latter, "a young woman of
about twenty-six or twenty-eight years of age, and a man of from thirty-five to
forty, have indeed lodged at the two houses pointed out by your Eminence; but
the woman left last night, and the man this morning."
"It was they!" cried the cardinal, looking at
the clock; "and now it is too late to have them pursued. The duchess is at
Tours, and the duke at Boulogne. It is in London they must be found."
"What are your Eminence's orders?"
"Not a word of what has passed. Let the queen
remain in perfect security; let her be ignorant that we know her secret. Let her
believe that we are in search of some conspiracy or other. Send me the keeper of
the seals, Seguier."
"And that man, what has your Eminence done with
him?"
"What man?" asked the cardinal.
"That Bonacieux."
"I have done with him all that could be done. I
have made him a spy upon his wife."
The Comte de Rochefort bowed like a man who
acknowledges the superiority of the master as great, and retired.
Left alone, the cardinal seated himself again
and wrote a letter, which he secured with his special seal. Then he rang. The
officer entered for the fourth time.
"Tell Vitray to come to me," said he, "and tell
him to get ready for a journey."
An instant after, the man he asked for was
before him, booted and spurred.
"Vitray," said he, "you will go with all speed
to London. You must not stop an instant on the way. You will deliver this letter
to Milady. Here is an order for two hundred pistoles; call upon my treasurer and
get the money. You shall have as much again if you are back within six days, and
have executed your commission well."
The messenger, without replying a single word,
bowed, took the letter, with the order for the two hundred pistoles, and
retired.
Here is what the letter contained:
MILADY, Be at the first ball at which the Duke
of Buckingham shall be present. He will wear on his doublet twelve diamond
studs; get as near to him as you can, and cut off two.
As soon as these studs shall be in your
possession, inform me.
15 MEN OF THE ROBE AND MEN OF THE SWORD
On the day after these events had taken place,
Athos not having reappeared, M. de Treville was informed by d'Artagnan and
Porthos of the circumstance. As to Aramis, he had asked for leave of absence for
five days, and was gone, it was said, to Rouen on family business.
M. de Treville was the father of his soldiers.
The lowest or the least known of them, as soon as he assumed the uniform of the
company, was as sure of his aid and support as if he had been his own brother.
He repaired, then, instantly to the office of
the LIEUTENANT-CRIMINEL. The officer who commanded the post of the Red Cross was
sent for, and by successive inquiries they learned that Athos was then lodged in
the Fort l'Eveque.
Athos had passed through all the examinations
we have seen Bonacieux undergo.
We were present at the scene in which the two
captives were confronted with each other. Athos, who had till that time said
nothing for fear that d'Artagnan, interrupted in his turn, should not have the
time necessary, from this moment declared that his name was Athos, and not
d'Artagnan. He added that he did not know either M. or Mme. Bonacieux; that he
had never spoken to the one or the other; that he had come, at about ten o'clock
in the evening, to pay a visit to his friend M. d'Artagnan, but that till that
hour he had been at M. de Treville's, where he had dined. "Twenty witnesses,"
added he, "could attest the fact"; and he named several distinguished gentlemen,
and among them was M. le Duc de la Tremouille.
The second commissary was as much bewildered as
the first had been by the simple and firm declaration of the Musketeer, upon
whom he was anxious to take the revenge which men of the robe like at all times
to gain over men of the sword; but the name of M. de Treville, and that of M. de
la Tremouille, commanded a little reflection.
Athos was then sent to the cardinal; but
unfortunately the cardinal was at the Louvre with the king.
It was precisely at this moment that M. de
Treville, on leaving the residence of the LIEUTENANT-CRIMINEL and the governor
of the Fort l'Eveque without being able to find Athos, arrived at the palace.
As captain of the Musketeers, M. de Treville
had the right of entry at all times.
It is well known how violent the king's
prejudices were against the queen, and how carefully these prejudices were kept
up by the cardinal, who in affairs of intrigue mistrusted women infinitely more
than men. One of the grand causes of this prejudice was the friendship of Anne
of Austria for Mme. de Chevreuse. These two women gave him more uneasiness than
the war with Spain, the quarrel with England, or the embarrassment of the
finances. In his eyes and to his conviction, Mme. de Chevreuse not only served
the queen in her political intrigues, but, what tormented him still more, in her
amorous intrigues.
At the first word the cardinal spoke of Mme. de
Chevreuse—who, though exiled to Tours and believed to be in that city, had come
to Paris, remained there five days, and outwitted the police—the king flew into
a furious passion. Capricious and unfaithful, the king wished to be called Louis
the Just and Louis the Chaste. Posterity will find a difficulty in understanding
this character, which history explains only by facts and never by reason.
But when the cardinal added that not only Mme.
de Chevreuse had been in Paris, but still further, that the queen had renewed
with her one of those mysterious correspondences which at that time was named a
CABAL; when he affirmed that he, the cardinal, was about to unravel the most
closely twisted thread of this intrigue; that at the moment of arresting in the
very act, with all the proofs about her, the queen's emissary to the exiled
duchess, a Musketeer had dared to interrupt the course of justice violently, by
falling sword in hand upon the honest men of the law, charged with investigating
impartially the whole affair in order to place it before the eyes of the
king—Louis XIII could not contain himself, and he made a step toward the queen's
apartment with that pale and mute indignation which, when in broke out, led this
prince to the commission of the most pitiless cruelty. And yet, in all this, the
cardinal had not yet said a word about the Duke of Buckingham.
At this instant M. de Treville entered, cool,
polite, and in irreproachable costume.
Informed of what had passed by the presence of
the cardinal and the alteration in the king's countenance, M. de Treville felt
himself something like Samson before the Philistines.
Louis XIII had already placed his hand on the
knob of the door; at the noise of M. de Treville's entrance he turned round.
"You arrive in good time, monsieur," said the king, who, when his passions were
raised to a certain point, could not dissemble; "I have learned some fine things
concerning your Musketeers."
"And I," said Treville, coldly, "I have some
pretty things to tell your Majesty concerning these gownsmen."
"What?" said the king, with hauteur.
"I have the honor to inform your Majesty,"
continued M. de Treville, in the same tone, "that a party of PROCUREURS,
commissaries, and men of the police—very estimable people, but very inveterate,
as it appears, against the uniform—have taken upon themselves to arrest in a
house, to lead away through the open street, and throw into the Fort l'Eveque,
all upon an order which they have refused to show me, one of my, or rather your
Musketeers, sire, of irreproachable conduct, of an almost illustrious
reputation, and whom your Majesty knows favorably, Monsieur Athos."
"Athos," said the king, mechanically; "yes,
certainly I know that name."
"Let your Majesty remember," said Treville,
"that Monsieur Athos is the Musketeer who, in the annoying duel which you are
acquainted with, had the misfortune to wound Monsieur de Cahusac so seriously. A
PROPOS, monseigneur," continued Treville. Addressing the cardinal, "Monsieur de
Cahusac is quite recovered, is he not?"
"Thank you," said the cardinal, biting his lips
with anger.
"Athos, then, went to pay a visit to one of his
friends absent at the time," continued Treville, "to a young Bearnais, a cadet
in his Majesty's Guards, the company of Monsieur Dessessart, but scarcely had he
arrived at his friend's and taken up a book, while waiting his return, when a
mixed crowd of bailiffs and soldiers came and laid siege to the house, broke
open several doors—"
The cardinal made the king a sign, which
signified, "That was on account of the affair about which I spoke to you."
"We all know that," interrupted the king; "for
all that was done for our service."
"Then," said Treville, "it was also for your
Majesty's service that one of my Musketeers, who was innocent, has been seized,
that he has been placed between two guards like a malefactor, and that this
gallant man, who has ten times shed his blood in your Majesty's service and is
ready to shed it again, has been paraded through the midst of an insolent
populace?"
"Bah!" said the king, who began to be shaken,
"was it so managed?"
"Monsieur de Treville," said the cardinal, with
the greatest phlegm, "does not tell your Majesty that this innocent Musketeer,
this gallant man, had only an hour before attacked, sword in hand, four
commissaries of inquiry, who were delegated by myself to examine into an affair
of the highest importance."
"I defy your Eminence to prove it," cried
Treville, with his Gascon freedom and military frankness; "for one hour before,
Monsieur Athos, who, I will confide it to your Majesty, is really a man of the
highest quality, did me the honor after having dined with me to be conversing in
the saloon of my hotel, with the Duc de la Tremouille and the Comte de Chalus,
who happened to be there."
The king looked at the cardinal.
"A written examination attests it," said the
cardinal, replying aloud to the mute interrogation of his Majesty; "and the
ill-treated people have drawn up the following, which I have the honor to
present to your Majesty."
"And is the written report of the gownsmen to
be placed in comparison with the word of honor of a swordsman?" replied Treville
haughtily.
"Come, come, Treville, hold your tongue," said
the king.
"If his Eminence entertains any suspicion
against one of my Musketeers," said Treville, "the justice of Monsieur the
Cardinal is so well known that I demand an inquiry."
"In the house in which the judicial inquiry was
made," continued the impassive cardinal, "there lodges, I believe, a young
Bearnais, a friend of the Musketeer."
"Your Eminence means Monsieur d'Artagnan."
"I mean a young man whom you patronize,
Monsieur de Treville."
"Yes, your Eminence, it is the same."
"Do you not suspect this young man of having
given bad counsel?"
"To Athos, to a man double his age?"
interrupted Treville. "No, monseigneur. Besides, d'Artagnan passed the evening
with me."
"Well," said the cardinal, "everybody seems to
have passed the evening with you."
"Does your Eminence doubt my word?" said
Treville, with a brow flushed with anger.
"No, God forbid," said the cardinal; "only, at
what hour was he with you?"
"Oh, as to that I can speak positively, your
Eminence; for as he came in I remarked that it was but half past nine by the
clock, although I had believed it to be later."
"At what hour did he leave your hotel?"
"At half past ten—an hour after the event."
"Well," replied the cardinal, who could not for
an instant suspect the loyalty of Treville, and who felt that the victory was
escaping him, "well, but Athos WAS taken in the house in the Rue des
Fossoyeurs."
"Is one friend forbidden to visit another, or a
Musketeer of my company to fraternize with a Guard of Dessessart's company?"
"Yes, when the house where he fraternizes is
suspected."
"That house is suspected, Treville," said the
king; "perhaps you did not know it?"
"Indeed, sire, I did not. The house may be
suspected; but I deny that it is so in the part of it inhabited my Monsieur
d'Artagnan, for I can affirm, sire, if I can believe what he says, that there
does not exist a more devoted servant of your Majesty, or a more profound
admirer of Monsieur the Cardinal."
"Was it not this d'Artagnan who wounded Jussac
one day, in that unfortunate encounter which took place near the Convent of the
Carmes-Dechausses?" asked the king, looking at the cardinal, who colored with
vexation.
"And the next day, Bernajoux. Yes, sire, yes,
it is the same; and your Majesty has a good memory."
"Come, how shall we decide?" said the king.
"That concerns your Majesty more than me," said
the cardinal. "I should affirm the culpability."
"And I deny it," said Treville. "But his
Majesty has judges, and these judges will decide."
"That is best," said the king. "Send the case
before the judges; it is their business to judge, and they shall judge."
"Only," replied Treville, "it is a sad thing
that in the unfortunate times in which we live, the purest life, the most
incontestable virtue, cannot exempt a man from infamy and persecution. The army,
I will answer for it, will be but little pleased at being exposed to rigorous
treatment on account of police affairs."
The expression was imprudent; but M. de
Treville launched it with knowledge of his cause. He was desirous of an
explosion, because in that case the mine throws forth fire, and fire enlightens.
"Police affairs!" cried the king, taking up
Treville's words, "police affairs! And what do you know about them, Monsieur?
Meddle with your Musketeers, and do not annoy me in this way. It appears,
according to your account, that if by mischance a Musketeer is arrested, France
is in danger. What a noise about a Musketeer! I would arrest ten of them,
VENTREBLEU, a hundred, even, all the company, and I would not allow a whisper."
"From the moment they are suspected by your
Majesty," said Treville, "the Musketeers are guilty; therefore, you see me
prepared to surrender my sword—for after having accused my soldiers, there can
be no doubt that Monsieur the Cardinal will end by accusing me. It is best to
constitute myself at once a prisoner with Athos, who is already arrested, and
with d'Artagnan, who most probably will be."
"Gascon-headed man, will you have done?" said
the king.
"Sire," replied Treville, without lowering his
voice in the least, "either order my Musketeer to be restored to me, or let him
be tried."
"He shall be tried," said the cardinal.
"Well, so much the better; for in that case I
shall demand of his Majesty permission to plead for him."
The king feared an outbreak.
"If his Eminence," said he, "did not have
personal motives—"
The cardinal saw what the king was about to say
and interrupted him:
"Pardon me," said he; "but the instant your
Majesty considers me a prejudiced judge, I withdraw."
"Come," said the king, "will you swear, by my
father, that Athos was at your residence during the event and that he took no
part in it?"
"By your glorious father, and by yourself, whom
I love and venerate above all the world, I swear it."
"Be so kind as to reflect, sire," said the
cardinal. "If we release the prisoner thus, we shall never know the truth."
"Athos may always be found," replied Treville,
"ready to answer, when it shall please the gownsmen to interrogate him. He will
not desert, Monsieur the Cardinal, be assured of that; I will answer for him."
"No, he will not desert," said the king; "he
can always be found, as Treville says. Besides," added he, lowering his voice
and looking with a suppliant air at the cardinal, "let us give them apparent
security; that is policy."
This policy of Louis XIII made Richelieu smile.
"Order it as you please, sire; you possess the
right of pardon."
"The right of pardoning only applies to the
guilty," said Treville, who was determined to have the last word, "and my
Musketeer is innocent. It is not mercy, then, that you are about to accord,
sire, it is justice."
"And he is in the Fort l'Eveque?" said the
king.
"Yes, sire, in solitary confinement, in a
dungeon, like the lowest criminal."
"The devil!" murmured the king; "what must be
done?"
"Sign an order for his release, and all will be
said," replied the cardinal. "I believe with your Majesty that Monsieur de
Treville's guarantee is more than sufficient."
Treville bowed very respectfully, with a joy
that was not unmixed with fear; he would have preferred an obstinate resistance
on the part of the cardinal to this sudden yielding.
The king signed the order for release, and
Treville carried it away without delay. As he was about to leave the presence,
the cardinal gave him a friendly smile, and said, "A perfect harmony reigns,
sire, between the leaders and the soldiers of your Musketeers, which must be
profitable for the service and honorable to all."
"He will play me some dog's trick or other, and
that immediately," said Treville. "One has never the last word with such a man.
But let us be quick—the king may change his mind in an hour; and at all events
it is more difficult to replace a man in the Fort l'Eveque or the Bastille who
has got out, than to keep a prisoner there who is in."
M. de Treville made his entrance triumphantly
into the Fort l'Eveque, whence he delivered the Musketeer, whose peaceful
indifference had not for a moment abandoned him.
The first time he saw d'Artagnan, "You have
come off well," said he to him; "there is your Jussac thrust paid for. There
still remains that of Bernajoux, but you must not be too confident."
As to the rest, M. de Treville had good reason
to mistrust the cardinal and to think that all was not over, for scarcely had
the captain of the Musketeers closed the door after him, than his Eminence said
to the king, "Now that we are at length by ourselves, we will, if your Majesty
pleases, converse seriously. Sire, Buckingham has been in Paris five days, and
only left this morning."
16 IN WHICH M. SEGUIER, KEEPER OF THE SEALS,
LOOKS MORE THAN ONCE FOR THE BELL, IN ORDER TO RING IT, AS HE DID BEFORE
It is impossible to form an idea of the
impression these few words made upon Louis XIII. He grew pale and red
alternately; and the cardinal saw at once that he had recovered by a single blow
all the ground he had lost.
"Buckingham in Paris!" cried he, "and why does
he come?"
"To conspire, no doubt, with your enemies, the
Huguenots and the Spaniards."
"No, PARDIEU, no! To conspire against my honor
with Madame de Chevreuse, Madame de Longueville, and the Condes."
"Oh, sire, what an idea! The queen is too
virtuous; and besides, loves your Majesty too well."
"Woman is weak, Monsieur Cardinal," said the
king; "and as to loving me much, I have my own opinion as to that love."
"I not the less maintain," said the cardinal,
"that the Duke of Buckingham came to Paris for a project wholly political."
"And I am sure that he came for quite another
purpose, Monsieur Cardinal; but if the queen be guilty, let her tremble!"
"Indeed," said the cardinal, "whatever
repugnance I may have to directing my mind to such a treason, your Majesty
compels me to think of it. Madame de Lannoy, whom, according to your Majesty's
command, I have frequently interrogated, told me this morning that the night
before last her Majesty sat up very late, that this morning she wept much, and
that she was writing all day."
"That's it!" cried the king; "to him, no doubt.
Cardinal, I must have the queen's papers."
"But how to take them, sire? It seems to me
that it is neither your Majesty nor myself who can charge himself with such a
mission."
"How did they act with regard to the Marechale
d'Ancre?" cried the king, in the highest state of choler; "first her closets
were thoroughly searched, and then she herself."
"The Marechale d'Ancre was no more than the
Marechale d'Ancre. A Florentine adventurer, sire, and that was all; while the
august spouse of your Majesty is Anne of Austria, Queen of France—that is to
say, one of the greatest princesses in the world."
"She is not the less guilty, Monsieur Duke! The
more she has forgotten the high position in which she was placed, the more
degrading is her fall. Besides, I long ago determined to put an end to all these
petty intrigues of policy and love. She has near her a certain Laporte."
"Who, I believe, is the mainspring of all this,
I confess," said the cardinal.
"You think then, as I do, that she deceives
me?" said the king.
"I believe, and I repeat it to your Majesty,
that the queen conspires against the power of the king, but I have not said
against his honor."
"And I—I tell you against both. I tell you the
queen does not love me; I tell you she loves another; I tell you she loves that
infamous Buckingham! Why did you not have him arrested while in Paris?"
"Arrest the Duke! Arrest the prime minister of
King Charles I! Think of it, sire! What a scandal! And if the suspicions of your
Majesty, which I still continue to doubt, should prove to have any foundation,
what a terrible disclosure, what a fearful scandal!"
"But as he exposed himself like a vagabond or a
thief, he should have been—"
Louis XIII stopped, terrified at what he was
about to say, while Richelieu, stretching out his neck, waited uselessly for the
word which had died on the lips of the king.
"He should have been—?"
"Nothing," said the king, "nothing. But all the
time he was in Paris, you, of course, did not lose sight of him?"
"No, sire."
"Where did he lodge?"
"Rue de la Harpe. No. 75."
"Where is that?"
"By the side of the Luxembourg."
"And you are certain that the queen and he did
not see each other?"
"I believe the queen to have too high a sense
of her duty, sire."
"But they have corresponded; it is to him that
the queen has been writing all the day. Monsieur Duke, I must have those
letters!"
"Sire, notwithstanding—"
"Monsieur Duke, at whatever price it may be, I
will have them."
"I would, however, beg your Majesty to
observe—"
"Do you, then, also join in betraying me,
Monsieur Cardinal, by thus always opposing my will? Are you also in accord with
Spain and England, with Madame de Chevreuse and the queen?"
"Sire," replied the cardinal, sighing, "I
believed myself secure from such a suspicion."
"Monsieur Cardinal, you have heard me; I will
have those letters."
"There is but one way."
"What is that?"
"That would be to charge Monsieur de Seguier,
the keeper of the seals, with this mission. The matter enters completely into
the duties of the post."
"Let him be sent for instantly."
"He is most likely at my hotel. I requested him
to call, and when I came to the Louvre I left orders if he came, to desire him
to wait."
"Let him be sent for instantly."
"Your Majesty's orders shall be executed; but—"
"But what?"
"But the queen will perhaps refuse to obey."
"My orders?"
"Yes, if she is ignorant that these orders come
from the king."
"Well, that she may have no doubt on that head,
I will go and inform her myself."
"Your Majesty will not forget that I have done
everything in my power to prevent a rupture."
"Yes, Duke, yes, I know you are very indulgent
toward the queen, too indulgent, perhaps; we shall have occasion, I warn you, at
some future period to speak of that."
"Whenever it shall please your Majesty; but I
shall be always happy and proud, sire, to sacrifice myself to the harmony which
I desire to see reign between you and the Queen of France."
"Very well, Cardinal, very well; but, meantime,
send for Monsieur the Keeper of the Seals. I will go to the queen."
And Louis XIII, opening the door of
communication, passed into the corridor which led from his apartments to those
of Anne of Austria.
The queen was in the midst of her women—Mme. de
Guitaut, Mme. de Sable, Mme. de Montbazon, and Mme. de Guemene. In a corner was
the Spanish companion, Donna Estafania, who had followed her from Madrid. Mme.
Guemene was reading aloud, and everybody was listening to her with attention
with the exception of the queen, who had, on the contrary, desired this reading
in order that she might be able, while feigning to listen, to pursue the thread
of her own thoughts.
These thoughts, gilded as they were by a last
reflection of love, were not the less sad. Anne of Austria, deprived of the
confidence of her husband, pursued by the hatred of the cardinal, who could not
pardon her for having repulsed a more tender feeling, having before her eyes the
example of the queen-mother whom that hatred had tormented all her life—though
Marie de Medicis, if the memoirs of the time are to be believed, had begun by
according to the cardinal that sentiment which Anne of Austria always refused
him—Anne of Austria had seen her most devoted servants fall around her, her most
intimate confidants, her dearest favorites. Like those unfortunate persons
endowed with a fatal gift, she brought misfortune upon everything she touched.
Her friendship was a fatal sign which called down persecution. Mme. de Chevreuse
and Mme. de Bernet were exiled, and Laporte did not conceal from his mistress
that he expected to be arrested every instant.
It was at the moment when she was plunged in
the deepest and darkest of these reflections that the door of the chamber
opened, and the king entered.
The reader hushed herself instantly. All the
ladies rose, and there was a profound silence. As to the king, he made no
demonstration of politeness, only stopping before the queen. "Madame," said he,
"you are about to receive a visit from the chancellor, who will communicate
certain matters to you with which I have charged him."
The unfortunate queen, who was constantly
threatened with divorce, exile, and trial even, turned pale under her rouge, and
could not refrain from saying, "But why this visit, sire? What can the
chancellor have to say to me that your Majesty could not say yourself?"
The king turned upon his heel without reply,
and almost at the same instant the captain of the Guards, M. de Guitant,
announced the visit of the chancellor.
When the chancellor appeared, the king had
already gone out by another door.
The chancellor entered, half smiling, half
blushing. As we shall probably meet with him again in the course of our history,
it may be well for our readers to be made at once acquainted with him.
This chancellor was a pleasant man. He was Des
Roches le Masle, canon of Notre Dame, who had formerly been valet of a bishop,
who introduced him to his Eminence as a perfectly devout man. The cardinal
trusted him, and therein found his advantage.
There are many stories related of him, and
among them this. After a wild youth, he had retired into a convent, there to
expiate, at least for some time, the follies of adolescence. On entering this
holy place, the poor penitent was unable to shut the door so close as to prevent
the passions he fled from entering with him. He was incessantly attacked by
them, and the superior, to whom he had confided this misfortune, wishing as much
as in him lay to free him from them, had advised him, in order to conjure away
the tempting demon, to have recourse to the bell rope, and ring with all his
might. At the denunciating sound, the monks would be rendered aware that
temptation was besieging a brother, and all the community would go to prayers.
This advice appeared good to the future
chancellor. He conjured the evil spirit with abundance of prayers offered up by
the monks. But the devil does not suffer himself to be easily dispossessed from
a place in which he has fixed his garrison. In proportion as they redoubled the
exorcisms he redoubled the temptations; so that day and night the bell was
ringing full swing, announcing the extreme desire for mortification which the
penitent experienced.
The monks had no longer an instant of repose.
By day they did nothing but ascend and descend the steps which led to the
chapel; at night, in addition to complines and matins, they were further obliged
to leap twenty times out of their beds and prostrate themselves on the floor of
their cells.
It is not known whether it was the devil who
gave way, or the monks who grew tired; but within three months the penitent
reappeared in the world with the reputation of being the most terrible POSSESSED
that ever existed.
On leaving the convent he entered into the
magistracy, became president on the place of his uncle, embraced the cardinal's
party, which did not prove want of sagacity, became chancellor, served his
Eminence with zeal in his hatred against the queen-mother and his vengeance
against Anne of Austria, stimulated the judges in the affair of Calais,
encouraged the attempts of M. de Laffemas, chief gamekeeper of France; then, at
length, invested with the entire confidence of the cardinal—a confidence which
he had so well earned—he received the singular commission for the execution of
which he presented himself in the queen's apartments.
The queen was still standing when he entered;
but scarcely had she perceived him then she reseated herself in her armchair,
and made a sign to her women to resume their cushions and stools, and with an
air of supreme hauteur, said, "What do you desire, monsieur, and with what
object do you present yourself here?"
"To make, madame, in the name of the king, and
without prejudice to the respect which I have the honor to owe to your Majesty a
close examination into all your papers."
"How, monsieur, an investigation of my
papers—mine! Truly, this is an indignity!"
"Be kind enough to pardon me, madame; but in
this circumstance I am but the instrument which the king employs. Has not his
Majesty just left you, and has he not himself asked you to prepare for this
visit?"
"Search, then, monsieur! I am a criminal, as it
appears. Estafania, give up the keys of my drawers and my desks."
For form's sake the chancellor paid a visit to
the pieces of furniture named; but he well knew that it was not in a piece of
furniture that the queen would place the important letter she had written that
day.
When the chancellor had opened and shut twenty
times the drawers of the secretaries, it became necessary, whatever hesitation
he might experience—it became necessary, I say, to come to the conclusion of the
affair; that is to say, to search the queen herself. The chancellor advanced,
therefore, toward Anne of Austria, and said with a very perplexed and
embarrassed air, "And now it remains for me to make the principal examination."
"What is that?" asked the queen, who did not
understand, or rather was not willing to understand.
"His majesty is certain that a letter has been
written by you during the day; he knows that it has not yet been sent to its
address. This letter is not in your table nor in your secretary; and yet this
letter must be somewhere."
"Would you dare to lift your hand to your
queen?" said Anne of Austria, drawing herself up to her full height, and fixing
her eyes upon the chancellor with an expression almost threatening.
"I am a faithful subject of the king, madame,
and all that his Majesty commands I shall do."
"Well, it is true!" said Anne of Austria; "and
the spies of the cardinal have served him faithfully. I have written a letter
today; that letter is not yet gone. The letter is here." And the queen laid her
beautiful hand on her bosom.
"Then give me that letter, madame," said the
chancellor.
"I will give it to none but the king monsieur,"
said Anne.
"If the king had desired that the letter should
be given to him, madame, he would have demanded it of you himself. But I repeat
to you, I am charged with reclaiming it; and if you do not give it up—"
"Well?"
"He has, then, charged me to take it from you."
"How! What do you say?"
"That my orders go far, madame; and that I am
authorized to seek for the suspected paper, even on the person of your Majesty."
"What horror!" cried the queen.
"Be kind enough, then, madame, to act more
compliantly."
"The conduct is infamously violent! Do you know
that, monsieur?"
"The king commands it, madame; excuse me."
"I will not suffer it! No, no, I would rather
die!" cried the queen, in whom the imperious blood of Spain and Austria began to
rise.
The chancellor made a profound reverence. Then,
with the intention quite patent of not drawing back a foot from the
accomplishment of the commission with which he was charged, and as the attendant
of an executioner might have done in the chamber of torture, he approached Anne
of Austria, for whose eyes at the same instant sprang tears of rage.
The queen was, as we have said, of great
beauty. The commission might well be called delicate; and the king had reached,
in his jealousy of Buckingham, the point of not being jealous of anyone else.
Without doubt the chancellor, Seguier looked
about at that moment for the rope of the famous bell; but not finding it he
summoned his resolution, and stretched forth his hands toward the place where
the queen had acknowledged the paper was to be found.
Anne of Austria took one step backward, became
so pale that it might be said she was dying, and leaning with her left hand upon
a table behind her to keep herself from falling, she with her right hand drew
the paper from her bosom and held it out to the keeper of the seals.
"There, monsieur, there is that letter!" cried
the queen, with a broken and trembling voice; "take it, and deliver me from your
odious presence."
The chancellor, who, on his part, trembled with
an emotion easily to be conceived, took the letter, bowed to the ground, and
retired. The door was scarcely closed upon him, when the queen sank, half
fainting, into the arms of her women.
The chancellor carried the letter to the king
without having read a single word of it. The king took it with a trembling hand,
looked for the address, which was wanting, became very pale, opened it slowly,
then seeing by the first words that it was addressed to the King of Spain, he
read it rapidly.
It was nothing but a plan of attack against the
cardinal. The queen pressed her brother and the Emperor of Austria to appear to
be wounded, as they really were, by the policy of Richelieu—the eternal object
of which was the abasement of the house of Austria—to declare war against
France, and as a condition of peace, to insist upon the dismissal of the
cardinal; but as to love, there was not a single word about it in all the
letter.
The king, quite delighted, inquired if the
cardinal was still at the Louvre; he was told that his Eminence awaited the
orders of his Majesty in the business cabinet.
The king went straight to him.
"There, Duke," said he, "you were right and I
was wrong. The whole intrigue is political, and there is not the least question
of love in this letter; but, on the other hand, there is abundant question of
you."
The cardinal took the letter, and read it with
the greatest attention; then, when he had arrived at the end of it, he read it a
second time. "Well, your Majesty," said he, "you see how far my enemies go; they
menace you with two wars if you do not dismiss me. In your place, in truth,
sire, I should yield to such powerful instance; and on my part, it would be a
real happiness to withdraw from public affairs."
"What say you, Duke?"
"I say, sire, that my health is sinking under
these excessive struggles and these never-ending labors. I say that according to
all probability I shall not be able to undergo the fatigues of the siege of La
Rochelle, and that it would be far better that you should appoint there either
Monsieur de Conde, Monsieur de Bassopierre, or some valiant gentleman whose
business is war, and not me, who am a churchman, and who am constantly turned
aside for my real vocation to look after matters for which I have no aptitude.
You would be the happier for it at home, sire, and I do not doubt you would be
the greater for it abroad."
"Monsieur Duke," said the king, "I understand
you. Be satisfied, all who are named in that letter shall be punished as they
deserve, even the queen herself."
"What do you say, sire? God forbid that the
queen should suffer the least inconvenience or uneasiness on my account! She has
always believed me, sire, to be her enemy; although your Majesty can bear
witness that I have always taken her part warmly, even against you. Oh, if she
betrayed your Majesty on the side of your honor, it would be quite another
thing, and I should be the first to say, 'No grace, sire—no grace for the
guilty!' Happily, there is nothing of the kind, and your Majesty has just
acquired a new proof of it."
"That is true, Monsieur Cardinal," said the
king, "and you were right, as you always are; but the queen, not the less,
deserves all my anger."
"It is you, sire, who have now incurred hers.
And even if she were to be seriously offended, I could well understand it; your
Majesty has treated her with a severity—"
"It is thus I will always treat my enemies and
yours, Duke, however high they may be placed, and whatever peril I may incur in
acting severely toward them."
"The queen is my enemy, but is not yours, sire;
on the contrary, she is a devoted, submissive, and irreproachable wife. Allow
me, then, sire, to intercede for her with your Majesty."
"Let her humble herself, then, and come to me
first."
"On the contrary, sire, set the example. You
have committed the first wrong, since it was you who suspected the queen."
"What! I make the first advances?" said the
king. "Never!"
"Sire, I entreat you to do so."
"Besides, in what manner can I make advances
first?"
"By doing a thing which you know will be
agreeable to her."
"What is that?"
"Give a ball; you know how much the queen loves
dancing. I will answer for it, her resentment will not hold out against such an
attention."
"Monsieur Cardinal, you know that I do not like
worldly pleasures."
"The queen will only be the more grateful to
you, as she knows your antipathy for that amusement; besides, it will be an
opportunity for her to wear those beautiful diamonds which you gave her recently
on her birthday and with which she has since had no occasion to adorn herself."
"We shall see, Monsieur Cardinal, we shall
see," said the king, who, in his joy at finding the queen guilty of a crime
which he cared little about, and innocent of a fault of which he had great
dread, was ready to make up all differences with her, "we shall see, but upon my
honor, you are too indulgent toward her."
"Sire," said the cardinal, "leave severity to
your ministers. Clemency is a royal virtue; employ it, and you will find that
you derive advantage therein."
Thereupon the cardinal, hearing the clock
strike eleven, bowed low, asking permission of the king to retire, and
supplicating him to come to a good understanding with the queen.
Anne of Austria, who, in consequence of the
seizure of her letter, expected reproaches, was much astonished the next day to
see the king make some attempts at reconciliation with her. Her first movement
was repellent. Her womanly pride and her queenly dignity had both been so
cruelly offended that she could not come round at the first advance; but,
overpersuaded by the advice of her women, she at last had the appearance of
beginning to forget. The king took advantage of this favorable moment to tell
her that her had the intention of shortly giving a fete.
A fete was so rare a thing for poor Anne of
Austria that at this announcement, as the cardinal had predicted, the last trace
of her resentment disappeared, if not from her heart at least from her
countenance. She asked upon what day this fete would take place, but the king
replied that he must consult the cardinal upon that head.
Indeed, every day the king asked the cardinal
when this fete should take place; and every day the cardinal, under some
pretext, deferred fixing it. Ten days passed away thus.
On the eighth day after the scene we have
described, the cardinal received a letter with the London stamp which only
contained these lines: "I have them; but I am unable to leave London for want of
money. Send me five hundred pistoles, and four or five days after I have
received them I shall be in Paris."
On the same day the cardinal received this
letter the king put his customary question to him.
Richelieu counted on his fingers, and said to
himself, "She will arrive, she says, four or five days after having received the
money. It will require four or five days for the transmission of the money, four
or five days for her to return; that makes ten days. Now, allowing for contrary
winds, accidents, and a woman's weakness, there are twelve days."
"Well, Monsieur Duke," said the king, "have you
made your calculations?"
"Yes, sire. Today is the twentieth of
September. The aldermen of the city give a fete on the third of October. That
will fall in wonderfully well; you will not appear to have gone out of your way
to please the queen."
Then the cardinal added, "A PROPOS, sire, do
not forget to tell her Majesty the evening before the fete that you should like
to see how her diamond studs become her."
17 BONACIEUX AT HOME
It was the second time the cardinal had
mentioned these diamond studs to the king. Louis XIII was struck with this
insistence, and began to fancy that this recommendation concealed some mystery.
More than once the king had been humiliated by
the cardinal, whose police, without having yet attained the perfection of the
modern police, were excellent, being better informed than himself, even upon
what was going on in his own household. He hoped, then, in a conversation with
Anne of Austria, to obtain some information from that conversation, and
afterward to come upon his Eminence with some secret which the cardinal either
knew or did not know, but which, in either case, would raise him infinitely in
the eyes of his minister.
He went then to the queen, and according to
custom accosted her with fresh menaces against those who surrounded her. Anne of
Austria lowered her head, allowed the torrent to flow on without replying,
hoping that it would cease of itself; but this was not what Louis XIII meant.
Louis XIII wanted a discussion from which some light or other might break,
convinced as he was that the cardinal had some afterthought and was preparing
for him one of those terrible surprises which his Eminence was so skillful in
getting up. He arrived at this end by his persistence in accusation.
"But," cried Anne of Austria, tired of these
vague attacks, "but, sire, you do not tell me all that you have in your heart.
What have I done, then? Let me know what crime I have committed. It is
impossible that your Majesty can make all this ado about a letter written to my
brother."
The king, attacked in a manner so direct, did
not know what to answer; and he thought that this was the moment for expressing
the desire which he was not going to have made until the evening before the
fete.
"Madame," said he, with dignity, "there will
shortly be a ball at the Hotel de Ville. I wish, in order to honor our worthy
aldermen, you should appear in ceremonial costume, and above all, ornamented
with the diamond studs which I gave you on your birthday. That is my answer."
The answer was terrible. Anne of Austria
believed that Louis XIII knew all, and that the cardinal had persuaded him to
employ this long dissimulation of seven or eight days, which, likewise, was
characteristic. She became excessively pale, leaned her beautiful hand upon a
CONSOLE, which hand appeared then like one of wax, and looking at the king with
terror in her eyes, she was unable to reply by a single syllable.
"You hear, madame," said the king, who enjoyed
the embarrassment to its full extent, but without guessing the cause. "You hear,
madame?"
"Yes, sire, I hear," stammered the queen.
"You will appear at this ball?"
"Yes."
"With those studs?"
"Yes."
The queen's paleness, if possible, increased;
the king perceived it, and enjoyed it with that cold cruelty which was one of
the worst sides of his character.
"Then that is agreed," said the king, "and that
is all I had to say to you."
"But on what day will this ball take place?"
asked Anne of Austria.
Louis XIII felt instinctively that he ought not
to reply to this question, the queen having put it in an almost dying voice.
"Oh, very shortly, madame," said he; "but I do
not precisely recollect the date of the day. I will ask the cardinal."
"It was the cardinal, then, who informed you of
this fete?"
"Yes, madame," replied the astonished king;
"but why do you ask that?"
"It was he who told you to invite me to appear
with these studs?"
"That is to say, madame—"
"It was he, sire, it was he!"
"Well, and what does it signify whether it was
he or I? Is there any crime in this request?"
"No, sire."
"Then you will appear?"
"Yes, sire."
"That is well," said the king, retiring, "that
is well; I count upon it."
The queen made a curtsy, less from etiquette
than because her knees were sinking under her. The king went away enchanted.
"I am lost," murmured the queen, "lost!—for the
cardinal knows all, and it is he who urges on the king, who as yet knows nothing
but will soon know everything. I am lost! My God, my God, my God!"
She knelt upon a cushion and prayed, with her
head buried between her palpitating arms.
In fact, her position was terrible. Buckingham
had returned to London; Mme. Chevreuse was at Tours. More closely watched than
ever, the queen felt certain, without knowing how to tell which, that one of her
women had betrayed her. Laporte could not leave the Louvre; she had not a soul
in the world in whom she could confide. Thus, while contemplating the misfortune
which threatened her and the abandonment in which she was left, she broke out
into sobs and tears.
"Can I be of service to your Majesty?" said all
at once a voice full of sweetness and pity.
The queen turned sharply round, for there could
be no deception in the expression of that voice; it was a friend who spoke thus.
In fact, at one of the doors which opened into
the queen's apartment appeared the pretty Mme. Bonacieux. She had been engaged
in arranging the dresses and linen in a closet when the king entered; she could
not get out and had heard all.
The queen uttered a piercing cry at finding
herself surprised—for in her trouble she did not at first recognize the young
woman who had been given to her by Laporte.
"Oh, fear nothing, madame!" said the young
woman, clasping her hands and weeping herself at the queen's sorrows; "I am your
Majesty's, body and soul, and however far I may be from you, however inferior
may be my position, I believe I have discovered a means of extricating your
Majesty from your trouble."
"You, oh, heaven, you!" cried the queen; "but
look me in the face. I am betrayed on all sides. Can I trust in you?"
"Oh, madame!" cried the young woman, falling on
her knees; "upon my soul, I am ready to die for your Majesty!"
This expression sprang from the very bottom of
the heart, and, like the first, there was no mistaking it.
"Yes," continued Mme. Bonacieux, "yes, there
are traitors here; but by the holy name of the Virgin, I swear that no one is
more devoted to your Majesty than I am. Those studs which the king speaks of,
you gave them to the Duke of Buckingham, did you not? Those studs were enclosed
in a little rosewood box which he held under his arm? Am I deceived? Is it not
so, madame?"
"Oh, my God, my God!" murmured the queen, whose
teeth chattered with fright.
"Well, those studs," continued Mme. Bonacieux,
"we must have them back again."
"Yes, without doubt, it is necessary," cried
the queen; "but how am I to act? How can it be effected?"
"Someone must be sent to the duke."
"But who, who? In whom can I trust?"
"Place confidence in me, madame; do me that
honor, my queen, and I will find a messenger."
"But I must write."
"Oh, yes; that is indispensable. Two words from
the hand of your Majesty and your private seal."
"But these two words would bring about my
condemnation, divorce, exile!"
"Yes, if they fell into infamous hands. But I
will answer for these two words being delivered to their address."
"Oh, my God! I must then place my life, my
honor, my reputation, in your hands?"
"Yes, yes, madame, you must; and I will save
them all."
"But how? Tell me at least the means."
"My husband had been at liberty these two or
three days. I have not yet had time to see him again. He is a worthy, honest man
who entertains neither love nor hatred for anybody. He will do anything I wish.
He will set out upon receiving an order from me, without knowing what he
carries, and he will carry your Majesty's letter, without even knowing it is
from your Majesty, to the address which is on it."
The queen took the two hands of the young woman
with a burst of emotion, gazed at her as if to read her very heart, and seeing
nothing but sincerity in her beautiful eyes, embraced her tenderly.
"Do that," cried she, "and you will have saved
my life, you will have saved my honor!"
"Do not exaggerate the service I have the
happiness to render your Majesty. I have nothing to save for your Majesty; you
are only the victim of perfidious plots."
"That is true, that is true, my child," said
the queen, "you are right."
"Give me then, that letter, madame; time
presses."
The queen ran to a little table, on which were
ink, paper, and pens. She wrote two lines, sealed the letter with her private
seal, and gave it to Mme. Bonacieux.
"And now," said the queen, "we are forgetting
one very necessary thing."
"What is that, madame?"
"Money."
Mme. Bonacieux blushed.
"Yes, that is true," said she, "and I will
confess to your Majesty that my husband—"
"Your husband has none. Is that what you would
say?"
"He has some, but he is very avaricious; that
is his fault. Nevertheless, let not your Majesty be uneasy, we will find means."
"And I have none, either," said the queen.
Those who have read the MEMOIRS of Mme. de Motteville will not be astonished at
this reply. "But wait a minute."
Anne of Austria ran to her jewel case.
"Here," said she, "here is a ring of great
value, as I have been assured. It came from my brother, the King of Spain. It is
mine, and I am at liberty to dispose of it. Take this ring; raise money with it,
and let your husband set out."
"In an hour you shall be obeyed."
"You see the address," said the queen, speaking
so low that Mme. Bonacieux could hardly hear what she said, "To my Lord Duke of
Buckingham, London."
"The letter shall be given to himself."
"Generous girl!" cried Anne of Austria.
Mme. Bonacieux kissed the hands of the queen,
concealed the paper in the bosom of her dress, and disappeared with the
lightness of a bird.
Ten minutes afterward she was at home. As she
told the queen, she had not seen her husband since his liberation; she was
ignorant of the change that had taken place in him with respect to the
cardinal—a change which had since been strengthened by two or three visits from
the Comte de Rochefort, who had become the best friend of Bonacieux, and had
persuaded him, without much trouble, was putting his house in order, the
furniture of which he had found mostly broken and his closets nearly
empty—justice not being one of the three things which King Solomon names as
leaving no traces of their passage. As to the servant, she had run away at the
moment of her master's arrest. Terror had had such an effect upon the poor girl
that she had never ceased walking from Paris till she reached Burgundy, her
native place.
The worthy mercer had, immediately upon
re-entering his house, informed his wife of his happy return, and his wife had
replied by congratulating him, and telling him that the first moment she could
steal from her duties should be devoted to paying him a visit.
This first moment had been delayed five days,
which, under any other circumstances, might have appeared rather long to M.
Bonacieux; but he had, in the visit he had made to the cardinal and in the
visits Rochefort had made him, ample subjects for reflection, and as everybody
knows, nothing makes time pass more quickly than reflection.
This was the more so because Bonacieux's
reflections were all rose-colored. Rochefort called him his friend, his dear
Bonacieux, and never ceased telling him that the cardinal had a great respect
for him. The mercer fancied himself already on the high road to honors and
fortune.
On her side Mme. Bonacieux had also reflected;
but, it must be admitted, upon something widely different from ambition. In
spite of herself her thoughts constantly reverted to that handsome young man who
was so brave and appeared to be so much in love. Married at eighteen to M.
Bonacieux, having always lived among her husband's friends—people little capable
of inspiring any sentiment whatever in a young woman whose heart was above her
position—Mme. Bonacieux had remained insensible to vulgar seductions; but at
this period the title of gentleman had great influence with the citizen class,
and d'Artagnan was a gentleman. Besides, he wore the uniform of the Guards,
which next to that of the Musketeers was most admired by the ladies. He was, we
repeat, handsome, young, and bold; he spoke of love like a man who did love and
was anxious to be loved in return. There was certainly enough in all this to
turn a head only twenty-three years old, and Mme. Bonacieux had just attained
that happy period of life.
The couple, then, although they had not seen
each other for eight days, and during that time serious events had taken place
in which both were concerned, accosted each other with a degree of
preoccupation. Nevertheless, Bonacieux manifested real joy, and advanced toward
his wife with open arms. Madame Bonacieux presented her cheek to him.
"Let us talk a little," said she.
"How!" said Bonacieux, astonished.
"Yes, I have something of the highest
importance to tell you."
"True," said he, "and I have some questions
sufficiently serious to put to you. Describe to me your abduction, I pray you."
"Oh, that's of no consequence just now," said
Mme. Bonacieux.
"And what does it concern, then—my captivity?"
"I heard of it the day it happened; but as you
were not guilty of any crime, as you were not guilty of any intrigue, as you, in
short, knew nothing that could compromise yourself or anybody else, I attached
no more importance to that event than it merited."
"You speak very much at your ease, madame,"
said Bonacieux, hurt at the little interest his wife showed in him. "Do you know
that I was plunged during a day and night in a dungeon of the Bastille?"
"Oh, a day and night soon pass away. Let us
return to the object that brings me here."
"What, that which brings you home to me? Is it
not the desire of seeing a husband again from whom you have been separated for a
week?" asked the mercer, piqued to the quick.
"Yes, that first, and other things afterward."
"Speak."
"It is a thing of the highest interest, and
upon which our future fortune perhaps depends."
"The complexion of our fortune has changed very
much since I saw you, Madam Bonacieux, and I should not be astonished if in the
course of a few months it were to excite the envy of many folks."
"Yes, particularly if you follow the
instructions I am about to give you."
"Me?"
"Yes, you. There is good and holy action to be
performed, monsieur, and much money to be gained at the same time."
Mme. Bonacieux knew that in talking of money to
her husband, she took him on his weak side. But a man, were he even a mercer,
when he had talked for ten minutes with Cardinal Richelieu, is no longer the
same man.
"Much money to be gained?" said Bonacieux,
protruding his lip.
"Yes, much."
"About how much?"
"A thousand pistoles, perhaps."
"What you demand of me is serious, then?"
"It is indeed."
"What must be done?"
"You must go away immediately. I will give you
a paper which you must not part with on any account, and which you will deliver
into the proper hands."
"And whither am I to go?"
"To London."
"I go to London? Go to! You jest! I have no
business in London."
"But others wish that you should go there."
"But who are those others? I warn you that I
will never again work in the dark, and that I will know not only to what I
expose myself, but for whom I expose myself."
"An illustrious person sends you; an
illustrious person awaits you. The recompense will exceed your expectations;
that is all I promise you."
"More intrigues! Nothing but intrigues! Thank
you, madame, I am aware of them now; Monsieur Cardinal has enlightened me on
that head."
"The cardinal?" cried Mme. Bonacieux. "Have you
seen the cardinal?"
"He sent for me," answered the mercer, proudly.
"And you responded to his bidding, you
imprudent man?"
"Well, I can't say I had much choice of going
or not going, for I was taken to him between two guards. It is true also, that
as I did not then know his Eminence, if I had been able to dispense with the
visit, I should have been enchanted."
"He ill-treated you, then; he threatened you?"
"He gave me his hand, and called me his friend.
His friend! Do you hear that, madame? I am the friend of the great cardinal!"
"Of the great cardinal!"
"Perhaps you would contest his right to that
title, madame?"
"I would contest nothing; but I tell you that
the favor of a minister is ephemeral, and that a man must be mad to attach
himself to a minister. There are powers above his which do not depend upon a man
or the issue of an event; it is to these powers we should rally."
"I am sorry for it, madame, but I acknowledge
not her power but that of the great man whom I have the honor to serve."
"You serve the cardinal?"
"Yes, madame; and as his servant, I will not
allow you to be concerned in plots against the safety of the state, or to serve
the intrigues of a woman who is not French and who has a Spanish heart.
Fortunately we have the great cardinal; his vigilant eye watches over and
penetrates to the bottom of the heart."
Bonacieux was repeating, word for word, a
sentence which he had heard from the Comte de Rochefort; but the poor wife, who
had reckoned on her husband, and who, in that hope, had answered for him to the
queen, did not tremble the less, both at the danger into which she had nearly
cast herself and at the helpless state to which she was reduced. Nevertheless,
knowing the weakness of her husband, and more particularly his cupidity, she did
not despair of bringing him round to her purpose.
"Ah, you are a cardinalist, then, monsieur, are
you?" cried she; "and you serve the party of those who maltreat your wife and
insult your queen?"
"Private interests are as nothing before the
interests of all. I am for those who save the state," said Bonacieux,
emphatically.
"And what do you know about the state you talk
of?" said Mme. Bonacieux, shrugging her shoulders. "Be satisfied with being a
plain, straightforward citizen, and turn to that side which offers the most
advantages."
"Eh, eh!" said Bonacieux, slapping a plump,
round bag, which returned a sound a money; "what do you think of this, Madame
Preacher?"
"Whence comes that money?"
"You do not guess?"
"From the cardinal?"
"From him, and from my friend the Comte de
Rochefort."
"The Comte de Rochefort! Why it was he who
carried me off!"
"That may be, madame!"
"And you receive silver from that man?"
"Have you not said that that abduction was
entirely political?"
"Yes; but that abduction had for its object the
betrayal of my mistress, to draw from me by torture confessions that might
compromise the honor, and perhaps the life, of my august mistress."
"Madame," replied Bonacieux, "your august
mistress is a perfidious Spaniard, and what the cardinal does is well done."
"Monsieur," said the young woman, "I know you
to be cowardly, avaricious, and foolish, but I never till now believed you
infamous!"
"Madame," said Bonacieux, who had never seen
his wife in a passion, and who recoiled before this conjugal anger, "madame,
what do you say?"
"I say you are a miserable creature!" continued
Mme. Bonacieux, who saw she was regaining some little influence over her
husband. "You meddle with politics, do you—and still more, with cardinalist
politics? Why, you sell yourself, body and soul, to the demon, the devil, for
money!"
"No, to the cardinal."
"It's the same thing," cried the young woman.
"Who calls Richelieu calls Satan."
"Hold your tongue, hold your tongue, madame!
You may be overheard."
"Yes, you are right; I should be ashamed for
anyone to know your baseness."
"But what do you require of me, then? Let us
see."
"I have told you. You must depart instantly,
monsieur. You must accomplish loyally the commission with which I deign to
charge you, and on that condition I pardon everything, I forget everything; and
what is more," and she held out her hand to him, "I restore my love."
Bonacieux was cowardly and avaricious, but he
loved his wife. He was softened. A man of fifty cannot long bear malice with a
wife of twenty-three. Mme. Bonacieux saw that he hesitated.
"Come! Have you decided?" said she.
"But, my dear love, reflect a little upon what
you require of me. London is far from Paris, very far, and perhaps the
commission with which you charge me is not without dangers?"
"What matters it, if you avoid them?"
"Hold, Madame Bonacieux," said the mercer,
"hold! I positively refuse; intrigues terrify me. I have seen the Bastille. My!
Whew! That's a frightful place, that Bastille! Only to think of it makes my
flesh crawl. They threatened me with torture. Do you know what torture is?
Wooden points that they stick in between your legs till your bones stick out!
No, positively I will not go. And, MORBLEU, why do you not go yourself? For in
truth, I think I have hitherto been deceived in you. I really believe you are a
man, and a violent one, too."
"And you, you are a woman—a miserable woman,
stupid and brutal. You are afraid, are you? Well, if you do not go this very
instant, I will have you arrested by the queen's orders, and I will have you
placed in the Bastille which you dread so much."
Bonacieux fell into a profound reflection. He
weighed the two angers in his brain—that of the cardinal and that of the queen;
that of the cardinal predominated enormously.
"Have me arrested on the part of the queen,"
said he, "and I—I will appeal to his Eminence."
At once Mme. Bonacieux saw that she had gone
too far, and she was terrified at having communicated so much. She for a moment
contemplated with fright that stupid countenance, impressed with the invincible
resolution of a fool that is overcome by fear.
"Well, be it so!" said she. "Perhaps, when all
is considered, you are right. In the long run, a man knows more about politics
than a woman, particularly such as, like you, Monsieur Bonacieux, have conversed
with the cardinal. And yet it is very hard," added she, "that a man upon whose
affection I thought I might depend, treats me thus unkindly and will not comply
with any of my fancies."
"That is because your fancies go too far,"
replied the triumphant Bonacieux, "and I mistrust them."
"Well, I will give it up, then," said the young
woman, sighing. "It is well as it is; say no more about it."
"At least you should tell me what I should have
to do in London," replied Bonacieux, who remembered a little too late that
Rochefort had desired him to endeavor to obtain his wife's secrets.
"It is of no use for you to know anything about
it," said the young woman, whom an instinctive mistrust now impelled to draw
back. "It was about one of those purchases that interest women—a purchase by
which much might have been gained."
But the more the young woman excused herself,
the more important Bonacieux thought the secret which she declined to confide to
him. He resolved then to hasten immediately to the residence of the Comte de
Rochefort, and tell him that the queen was seeking for a messenger to send to
London.
"Pardon me for quitting you, my dear Madame
Bonacieux," said he; "but, not knowing you would come to see me, I had made an
engagement with a friend. I shall soon return; and if you will wait only a few
minutes for me, as soon as I have concluded my business with that friend, as it
is growing late, I will come back and reconduct you to the Louvre."
"Thank you, monsieur, you are not brave enough
to be of any use to me whatever," replied Mme. Bonacieux. "I shall return very
safely to the Louvre all alone."
"As you please, Madame Bonacieux," said the
ex-mercer. "Shall I see you again soon?"
"Next week I hope my duties will afford me a
little liberty, and I will take advantage of it to come and put things in order
here, as they must necessarily be much deranged."
"Very well; I shall expect you. You are not
angry with me?"
"Not the least in the world."
"Till then, then?"
"Till then."
Bonacieux kissed his wife's hand, and set off
at a quick pace.
"Well," said Mme. Bonacieux, when her husband
had shut the street door and she found herself alone; "that imbecile lacked but
one thing to become a cardinalist. And I, who have answered for him to the
queen—I, who have promised my poor mistress—ah, my God, my God! She will take me
for one of those wretches with whom the palace swarms and who are placed about
her as spies! Ah, Monsieur Bonacieux, I never did love you much, but now it is
worse than ever. I hate you, and on my word you shall pay for this!"
At the moment she spoke these words a rap on
the ceiling made her raise her head, and a voice which reached her through the
ceiling cried, "Dear Madame Bonacieux, open for me the little door on the alley,
and I will come down to you."
18 LOVER AND HUSBAND
"Ah, Madame," said d'Artagnan, entering by the
door which the young woman opened for him, "allow me to tell you that you have a
bad sort of a husband."
"You have, then, overheard our conversation?"
asked Mme. Bonacieux, eagerly, and looking at d'Artagnan with disquiet.
"The whole."
"But how, my God?"
"By a mode of proceeding known to myself, and
by which I likewise overheard the more animated conversation which he had with
the cardinal's police."
"And what did you understand by what we said?"
"A thousand things. In the first place, that,
unfortunately, your husband is a simpleton and a fool; in the next place, you
are in trouble, of which I am very glad, as it gives me a opportunity of placing
myself at your service, and God knows I am ready to throw myself into the fire
for you; finally, that the queen wants a brave, intelligent, devoted man to make
a journey to London for her. I have at least two of the three qualities you
stand in need of, and here I am."
Mme. Bonacieux made no reply; but her heart
beat with joy and secret hope shone in her eyes.
"And what guarantee will you give me," asked
she, "if I consent to confide this message to you?"
"My love for you. Speak! Command! What is to be
done?"
"My God, my God!" murmured the young woman,
"ought I to confide such a secret to you, monsieur? You are almost a boy."
"I see that you require someone to answer for
me?"
"I admit that would reassure me greatly."
"Do you know Athos?"
"No."
"Porthos?"
"No."
"Aramis?"
"No. Who are these gentleman?"
"Three of the king's Musketeers. Do you know
Monsieur de Treville, their captain?"
"Oh, yes, him! I know him; not personally, but
from having heard the queen speak of him more than once as a brave and loyal
gentleman."
"You do not fear lest he should betray you to
the cardinal?"
"Oh, no, certainly not!"
"Well, reveal your secret to him, and ask him
whether, however important, however valuable, however terrible it may be, you
may not confide it to me."
"But this secret is not mine, and I cannot
reveal it in this manner."
"You were about to confide it to Monsieur
Bonacieux," said d'Artagnan, with chagrin.
"As one confides a letter to the hollow of a
tree, to the wing of a pigeon, to the collar of a dog."
"And yet, me—you see plainly that I love you."
"You say so."
"I am an honorable man."
"You say so."
"I am a gallant fellow."
"I believe it."
"I am brave."
"Oh, I am sure of that!"
"Then, put me to the proof."
Mme. Bonacieux looked at the young man,
restrained for a minute by a last hesitation; but there was such an ardor in his
eyes, such persuasion in his voice, that she felt herself constrained to confide
in him. Besides, she found herself in circumstances where everything must be
risked for the sake of everything. The queen might be as much injured by too
much reticence as by too much confidence; and—let us admit it—the involuntary
sentiment which she felt for her young protector decided her to speak.
"Listen," said she; "I yield to your
protestations, I yield to your assurances. But I swear to you, before God who
hears us, that if you betray me, and my enemies pardon me, I will kill myself,
while accusing you of my death."
"And I—I swear to you before God, madame," said
d'Artagnan, "that if I am taken while accomplishing the orders you give me, I
will die sooner than do anything that may compromise anyone."
Then the young woman confided in him the
terrible secret of which chance had already communicated to him a part in front
of the Samaritaine. This was their mutual declaration of love.
D'Artagnan was radiant with joy and pride. This
secret which he possessed, this woman whom he loved! Confidence and love made
him a giant.
"I go," said he; "I go at once."
"How, you will go!" said Mme. Bonacieux; "and
your regiment, your captain?"
"By my soul, you had made me forget all that,
dear Constance! Yes, you are right; a furlough is needful."
"Still another obstacle," murmured Mme.
Bonacieux, sorrowfully.
"As to that," cried d'Artagnan, after a moment
of reflection, "I shall surmount it, be assured."
"How so?"
"I will go this very evening to Treville, whom
I will request to ask this favor for me of his brother-in-law, Monsieur
Dessessart."
"But another thing."
"What?" asked d'Artagnan, seeing that Mme.
Bonacieux hesitated to continue.
"You have, perhaps, no money?"
"PERHAPS is too much," said d'Artagnan,
smiling.
"Then," replied Mme. Bonacieux, opening a
cupboard and taking from it the very bag which a half hour before her husband
had caressed so affectionately, "take this bag."
"The cardinal's?" cried d'Artagnan, breaking
into a loud laugh, he having heard, as may be remembered, thanks to the broken
boards, every syllable of the conversation between the mercer and his wife.
"The cardinal's," replied Mme. Bonacieux. "You
see it makes a very respectable appearance."
"PARDIEU," cried d'Artagnan, "it will be a
double amusing affair to save the queen with the cardinal's money!"
"You are an amiable and charming young man,"
said Mme. Bonacieux. "Be assured you will not find her Majesty ungrateful."
"Oh, I am already grandly recompensed!" cried
d'Artagnan. "I love you; you permit me to tell you that I do—that is already
more happiness than I dared to hope."
"Silence!" said Mme. Bonacieux, starting.
"What!"
"Someone is talking in the street."
"It is the voice of—"
"Of my husband! Yes, I recognize it!"
D'Artagnan ran to the door and pushed the bolt.
"He shall not come in before I am gone," said
he; "and when I am gone, you can open to him."
"But I ought to be gone, too. And the
disappearance of his money; how am I to justify it if I am here?"
"You are right; we must go out."
"Go out? How? He will see us if we go out."
"Then you must come up into my room."
"Ah," said Mme. Bonacieux, "you speak that in a
tone that frightens me!"
Mme. Bonacieux pronounced these words with
tears in her eyes. d'Artagnan saw those tears, and much disturbed, softened, he
threw himself at her feet.
"With me you will be as safe as in a temple; I
give you my word of a gentleman."
"Let us go," said she, "I place full confidence
in you, my friend!"
D'Artagnan drew back the bolt with precaution,
and both, light as shadows, glided through the interior door into the passage,
ascended the stairs as quietly as possible, and entered d'Artagnan's chambers.
Once there, for greater security, the young man
barricaded the door. They both approached the window, and through a slit in the
shutter they saw Bonacieux talking with a man in a cloak.
At sight of this man, d'Artagnan started, and
half drawing his sword, sprang toward the door.
It was the man of Meung.
"What are you going to do?" cried Mme.
Bonacieux; "you will ruin us all!"
"But I have sworn to kill that man!" said
d'Artagnan.
"Your life is devoted from this moment, and
does not belong to you. In the name of the queen I forbid you to throw yourself
into any peril which is foreign to that of your journey."
"And do you command nothing in your own name?"
"In my name," said Mme. Bonacieux, with great
emotion, "in my name I beg you! But listen; they appear to be speaking of me."
D'Artagnan drew near the window, and lent his
ear.
M. Bonacieux had opened his door, and seeing
the apartment, had returned to the man in the cloak, whom he had left alone for
an instant.
"She is gone," said he; "she must have returned
to the Louvre."
"You are sure," replied the stranger, "that she
did not suspect the intentions with which you went out?"
"No," replied Bonacieux, with a self-sufficient
air, "she is too superficial a woman."
"Is the young Guardsman at home?"
"I do not think he is; as you see, his shutter
is closed, and you can see no light shine through the chinks of the shutters."
"All the same, it is well to be certain."
"How so?"
"By knocking at his door. Go."
"I will ask his servant."
Bonacieux re-entered the house, passed through
the same door that had afforded a passage for the two fugitives, went up to
d'Artagnan's door, and knocked.
No one answered. Porthos, in order to make a
greater display, had that evening borrowed Planchet. As to d'Artagnan, he took
care not to give the least sign of existence.
The moment the hand of Bonacieux sounded on the
door, the two young people felt their hearts bound within them.
"There is nobody within," said Bonacieux.
"Never mind. Let us return to your apartment.
We shall be safer there than in the doorway."
"Ah, my God!" whispered Mme. Bonacieux, "we
shall hear no more."
"On the contrary," said d'Artagnan, "we shall
hear better."
D'Artagnan raised the three or four boards
which made his chamber another ear of Dionysius, spread a carpet on the floor,
went upon his knees, and made a sign to Mme. Bonacieux to stoop as he did toward
the opening.
"You are sure there is nobody there?" said the
stranger.
"I will answer for it," said Bonacieux.
"And you think that your wife—"
"Has returned to the Louvre."
"Without speaking to anyone but yourself?"
"I am sure of it."
"That is an important point, do you
understand?"
"Then the news I brought you is of value?"
"The greatest, my dear Bonacieux; I don't
conceal this from you."
"Then the cardinal will be pleased with me?"
"I have no doubt of it."
"The great cardinal!"
"Are you sure, in her conversation with you,
that your wife mentioned no names?"
"I think not."
"She did not name Madame de Chevreuse, the Duke
of Buckingham, or Madame de Vernet?"
"No; she only told me she wished to send me to
London to serve the interests of an illustrious personage."
"The traitor!" murmured Mme. Bonacieux.
"Silence!" said d'Artagnan, taking her hand,
which, without thinking of it, she abandoned to him.
"Never mind," continued the man in the cloak;
"you were a fool not to have pretended to accept the mission. You would then be
in present possession of the letter. The state, which is now threatened, would
be safe, and you—"
"And I?"
"Well you—the cardinal would have given you
letters of nobility."
"Did he tell you so?"
"Yes, I know that he meant to afford you that
agreeable surprise."
"Be satisfied," replied Bonacieux; "my wife
adores me, and there is yet time."
"The ninny!" murmured Mme. Bonacieux.
"Silence!" said d'Artagnan, pressing her hand
more closely.
"How is there still time?" asked the man in the
cloak.
"I go to the Louvre; I ask for Mme. Bonacieux;
I say that I have reflected; I renew the affair; I obtain the letter, and I run
directly to the cardinal."
"Well, go quickly! I will return soon to learn
the result of your trip."
The stranger went out.
"Infamous!" said Mme. Bonacieux, addressing
this epithet to her husband.
"Silence!" said d'Artagnan, pressing her hand
still more warmly.
A terrible howling interrupted these
reflections of d'Artagnan and Mme. Bonacieux. It was her husband, who had
discovered the disappearance of the moneybag, and was crying "Thieves!"
"Oh, my God!" cried Mme. Bonacieux, "he will
rouse the whole quarter."
Bonacieux called a long time; but as such
cries, on account of their frequency, brought nobody in the Rue des Fossoyeurs,
and as lately the mercer's house had a bad name, finding that nobody came, he
went out continuing to call, his voice being heard fainter and fainter as he
went in the direction of the Rue du Bac.
"Now he is gone, it is your turn to get out,"
said Mme. Bonacieux. "Courage, my friend, but above all, prudence, and think
what you owe to the queen."
"To her and to you!" cried d'Artagnan. "Be
satisfied, beautiful Constance. I shall become worthy of her gratitude; but
shall I likewise return worthy of your love?"
The young woman only replied by the beautiful
glow which mounted to her cheeks. A few seconds afterward d'Artagnan also went
out enveloped in a large cloak, which ill-concealed the sheath of a long sword.
Mme. Bonacieux followed him with her eyes, with
that long, fond look with which he had turned the angle of the street, she fell
on her knees, and clasping her hands, "Oh, my God," cried she, "protect the
queen, protect me!"
19 PLAN OF CAMPAIGN
D'Artagnan went straight to M. de Treville's.
He had reflected that in a few minutes the cardinal would be warned by this
cursed stranger, who appeared to be his agent, and he judged, with reason, he
had not a moment to lose.
The heart of the young man overflowed with joy.
An opportunity presented itself to him in which there would be at the same time
glory to be acquired, and money to be gained; and as a far higher encouragement,
it brought him into close intimacy with a woman he adored. This chance did,
then, for him at once more than he would have dared to ask of Providence.
M. de Treville was in his saloon with his
habitual court of gentlemen. D'Artagnan, who was known as a familiar of the
house, went straight to his office, and sent word that he wished to see him on
something of importance.
D'Artagnan had been there scarcely five minutes
when M. de Treville entered. At the first glance, and by the joy which was
painted on his countenance, the worthy captain plainly perceived that something
new was on foot.
All the way along d'Artagnan had been
consulting with himself whether he should place confidence in M. de Treville, or
whether he should only ask him to give him CARTE BLANCHE for some secret affair.
But M. de Treville had always been so thoroughly his friend, had always been so
devoted to the king and queen, and hated the cardinal so cordially, that the
young man resolved to tell him everything.
"Did you ask for me, my good friend?" said M.
de Treville.
"Yes, monsieur," said d'Artagnan, lowering his
voice, "and you will pardon me, I hope, for having disturbed you when you know
the importance of my business."
"Speak, then, I am all attention."
"It concerns nothing less," said d'Artagnan,
"than the honor, perhaps the life of the queen."
"What did you say?" asked M. de Treville,
glancing round to see if they were surely alone, and then fixing his questioning
look upon d'Artagnan.
"I say, monsieur, that chance has rendered me
master of a secret—"
"Which you will guard, I hope, young man, as
your life."
"But which I must impart to you, monsieur, for
you alone can assist me in the mission I have just received from her Majesty."
"Is this secret your own?"
"No, monsieur; it is her Majesty's."
"Are you authorized by her Majesty to
communicate it to me?"
"No, monsieur, for, on the contrary, I am
desired to preserve the profoundest mystery."
"Why, then, are you about to betray it to me?"
"Because, as I said, without you I can do
nothing; and I am afraid you will refuse me the favor I come to ask if you do
not know to what end I ask it."
"Keep your secret, young man, and tell me what
you wish."
"I wish you to obtain for me, from Monsieur
Dessessart, leave of absence for fifteen days."
"When?"
"This very night."
"You leave Paris?"
"I am going on a mission."
"May you tell me whither?"
"To London."
"Has anyone an interest in preventing your
arrival there?"
"The cardinal, I believe, would give the world
to prevent my success."
"And you are going alone?"
"I am going alone."
"In that case you will not get beyond Bondy. I
tell you so, by the faith of de Treville."
"How so?"
"You will be assassinated."
"And I shall die in the performance of my
duty."
"But your mission will not be accomplished."
"That is true," replied d'Artagnan.
"Believe me," continued Treville, "in
enterprises of this kind, in order that one may arrive, four must set out."
"Ah, you are right, monsieur," said d'Artagnan;
"but you know Athos, Porthos, and Aramis, and you know if I can dispose of
them."
"Without confiding to them the secret which I
am not willing to know?"
"We are sworn, once for all, to implicit
confidence and devotedness against all proof. Besides, you can tell them that
you have full confidence in me, and they will not be more incredulous than you."
"I can send to each of them leave of absence
for fifteen days, that is all—to Athos, whose wound still makes him suffer, to
go to the waters of Forges; to Porthos and Aramis to accompany their friend,
whom they are not willing to abandon in such a painful condition. Sending their
leave of absence will be proof enough that I authorize their journey."
"Thanks, monsieur. You are a hundred times too
good."
"Begone, then, find them instantly, and let all
be done tonight! Ha! But first write your request to Dessessart. Perhaps you had
a spy at your heels; and your visit, if it should ever be known to the cardinal,
will thus seem legitimate."
D'Artagnan drew up his request, and M. de
Treville, on receiving it, assured him that by two o'clock in the morning the
four leaves of absence should be at the respective domiciles of the travelers.
"Have the goodness to send mine to Athos's
residence. I should dread some disagreeable encounter if I were to go home."
"Be easy. Adieu, and a prosperous voyage. A
PROPOS," said M. de Treville, calling him back.
D'Artagnan returned.
"Have you any money?"
D'Artagnan tapped the bag he had in his pocket.
"Enough?" asked M. de Treville.
"Three hundred pistoles."
"Oh, plenty! That would carry you to the end of
the world. Begone, then!"
D'Artagnan saluted M. de Treville, who held out
his hand to him; d'Artagnan pressed it with a respect mixed with gratitude.
Since his first arrival at Paris, he had had constant occasion to honor this
excellent man, whom he had always found worthy, loyal, and great.
His first visit was to Aramis, at whose
residence he had not been since the famous evening on which he had followed Mme.
Bonacieux. Still further, he had seldom seen the young Musketeer; but every time
he had seen him, he had remarked a deep sadness imprinted on his countenance.
This evening, especially, Aramis was melancholy
and thoughtful. d'Artagnan asked some questions about this prolonged melancholy.
Aramis pleaded as his excuse a commentary upon the eighteenth chapter of St.
Augustine, which he was forced to write in Latin for the following week, and
which preoccupied him a good deal.
After the two friends had been chatting a few
moments, a servant from M. de Treville entered, bringing a sealed packet.
"What is that?" asked Aramis.
"The leave of absence Monsieur has asked for,"
replied the lackey.
"For me! I have asked for no leave of absence."
"Hold your tongue and take it!" said
d'Artagnan. "And you, my friend, there is a demipistole for your trouble; you
will tell Monsieur de Treville that Monsieur Aramis is very much obliged to him.
Go."
The lackey bowed to the ground and departed.
"What does all this mean?" asked Aramis.
"Pack up all you want for a journey of a
fortnight, and follow me."
"But I cannot leave Paris just now without
knowing—"
Aramis stopped.
"What is become of her? I suppose you mean—"
continued d'Artagnan.
"Become of whom?" replied Aramis.
"The woman who was here—the woman with the
embroidered handkerchief."
"Who told you there was a woman here?" replied
Aramis, becoming as pale as death.
"I saw her."
"And you know who she is?"
"I believe I can guess, at least."
"Listen!" said Aramis. "Since you appear to
know so many things, can you tell me what is become of that woman?"
"I presume that she has returned to Tours."
"To Tours? Yes, that may be. You evidently know
her. But why did she return to Tours without telling me anything?"
"Because she was in fear of being arrested."
"Why has she not written to me, then?"
"Because she was afraid of compromising you."
"d'Artagnan, you restore me to life!" cried
Aramis. "I fancied myself despised, betrayed. I was so delighted to see her
again! I could not have believed she would risk her liberty for me, and yet for
what other cause could she have returned to Paris?"
"For the cause which today takes us to
England."
"And what is this cause?" demanded Aramis.
"Oh, you'll know it someday, Aramis; but at
present I must imitate the discretion of 'the doctor's niece.'"
Aramis smiled, as he remembered the tale he had
told his friends on a certain evening. "Well, then, since she has left Paris,
and you are sure of it, d'Artagnan, nothing prevents me, and I am ready to
follow you. You say we are going—"
"To see Athos now, and if you will come
thither, I beg you to make haste, for we have lost much time already. A PROPOS,
inform Bazin."
"Will Bazin go with us?" asked Aramis.
"Perhaps so. At all events, it is best that he
should follow us to Athos's."
Aramis called Bazin, and, after having ordered
him to join them at Athos's residence, said "Let us go then," at the same time
taking his cloak, sword, and three pistols, opening uselessly two or three
drawers to see if he could not find stray coin. When well assured this search
was superfluous, he followed d'Artagnan, wondering to himself how this young
Guardsman should know so well who the lady was to whom he had given hospitality,
and that he should know better than himself what had become of her.
Only as they went out Aramis placed his hand
upon the arm of d'Artagnan, and looking at him earnestly, "You have not spoken
of this lady?" said he.
"To nobody in the world."
"Not even to Athos or Porthos?"
"I have not breathed a syllable to them."
"Good enough!"
Tranquil on this important point, Aramis
continued his way with d'Artagnan, and both soon arrived at Athos's dwelling.
They found him holding his leave of absence in one hand, and M. de Treville's
note in the other.
"Can you explain to me what signify this leave
of absence and this letter, which I have just received?" said the astonished
Athos.
My dear Athos,
I wish, as your health absolutely requires it,
that you should rest for a fortnight. Go, then, and take the waters of Forges,
or any that may be more agreeable to you, and recuperate yourself as quickly as
possible.
Yours affectionate,
de Treville
"Well, this leave of absence and that letter
mean that you must follow me, Athos."
"To the waters of Forges?"
"There or elsewhere."
"In the king's service?"
"Either the king's or the queen's. Are we not
their Majesties' servants?"
At that moment Porthos entered. "PARDIEU!" said
he, "here is a strange thing! Since when, I wonder, in the Musketeers, did they
grant men leave of absence without their asking for it?"
"Since," said d'Artagnan, "they have friends
who ask it for them."
"Ah, ah!" said Porthos, "it appears there's
something fresh here."
"Yes, we are going—" said Aramis.
"To what country?" demanded Porthos.
"My faith! I don't know much about it," said
Athos. "Ask d'Artagnan."
"To London, gentlemen," said d'Artagnan.
"To London!" cried Porthos; "and what the devil
are we going to do in London?"
"That is what I am not at liberty to tell you,
gentlemen; you must trust to me."
"But in order to go to London," added Porthos,
"money is needed, and I have none."
"Nor I," said Aramis.
"Nor I," said Athos.
"I have," replied d'Artagnan, pulling out his
treasure from his pocket, and placing it on the table. "There are in this bag
three hundred pistoles. Let each take seventy-five; that is enough to take us to
London and back. Besides, make yourselves easy; we shall not all arrive at
London."
"Why so?"
"Because, in all probability, some one of us
will be left on the road."
"Is this, then, a campaign upon which we are
now entering?"
"One of a most dangerous kind, I give you
notice."
"Ah! But if we do risk being killed," said
Porthos, "at least I should like to know what for."
"You would be all the wiser," said Athos.
"And yet," said Aramis, "I am somewhat of
Porthos's opinion."
"Is the king accustomed to give you such
reasons? No. He says to you jauntily, 'Gentlemen, there is fighting going on in
Gascony or in Flanders; go and fight,' and you go there. Why? You need give
yourselves no more uneasiness about this."
"d'Artagnan is right," said Athos; "here are
our three leaves of absence which came from Monsieur de Treville, and here are
three hundred pistoles which came from I don't know where. So let us go and get
killed where we are told to go. Is life worth the trouble of so many questions?
D'Artagnan, I am ready to follow you."
"And I also," said Porthos.
"And I also," said Aramis. "And, indeed, I am
not sorry to quit Paris; I had need of distraction."
"Well, you will have distractions enough,
gentlemen, be assured," said d'Artagnan.
"And, now, when are we to go?" asked Athos.
"Immediately," replied d'Artagnan; "we have not
a minute to lose."
"Hello, Grimaud! Planchet! Mousqueton! Bazin!"
cried the four young men, calling their lackeys, "clean my boots, and fetch the
horses from the hotel."
Each Musketeer was accustomed to leave at the
general hotel, as at a barrack, his own horse and that of his lackey. Planchet,
Grimaud, Mousqueton, and Bazin set off at full speed.
"Now let us lay down the plan of campaign,"
said Porthos. "Where do we go first?"
"To Calais," said d'Artagnan; "that is the most
direct line to London."
"Well," said Porthos, "this is my advice—"
"Speak!"
"Four men traveling together would be
suspected. D'Artagnan will give each of us his instructions. I will go by the
way of Boulogne to clear the way; Athos will set out two hours after, by that of
Amiens; Aramis will follow us by that of Noyon; as to d'Artagnan, he will go by
what route he thinks is best, in Planchet's clothes, while Planchet will follow
us like d'Artagnan, in the uniform of the Guards."
"Gentlemen," said Athos, "my opinion is that it
is not proper to allow lackeys to have anything to do in such an affair. A
secret may, by chance, be betrayed by gentlemen; but it is almost always sold by
lackeys."
"Porthos's plan appears to me to be
impracticable," said d'Artagnan, "inasmuch as I am myself ignorant of what
instructions I can give you. I am the bearer of a letter, that is all. I have
not, and I cannot make three copies of that letter, because it is sealed. We
must, then, as it appears to me, travel in company. This letter is here, in this
pocket," and he pointed to the pocket which contained the letter. "If I should
be killed, one of you must take it, and continue the route; if he be killed, it
will be another's turn, and so on—provided a single one arrives, that is all
that is required."
"Bravo, d'Artagnan, your opinion is mine,"
cried Athos, "Besides, we must be consistent; I am going to take the waters, you
will accompany me. Instead of taking the waters of Forges, I go and take sea
waters; I am free to do so. If anyone wishes to stop us, I will show Monsieur de
Treville's letter, and you will show your leaves of absence. If we are attacked,
we will defend ourselves; if we are tried, we will stoutly maintain that we were
only anxious to dip ourselves a certain number of times in the sea. They would
have an easy bargain of four isolated men; whereas four men together make a
troop. We will arm our four lackeys with pistols and musketoons; if they send an
army out against us, we will give battle, and the survivor, as d'Artagnan says,
will carry the letter."
"Well said," cried Aramis; "you don't often
speak, Athos, but when you do speak, it is like St. John of the Golden Mouth. I
agree to Athos's plan. And you, Porthos?"
"I agree to it, too," said Porthos, "if
d'Artagnan approves of it. D'Artagnan, being the bearer of the letter, is
naturally the head of the enterprise; let him decide, and we will execute."
"Well," said d'Artagnan, "I decide that we
should adopt Athos's plan, and that we set off in half an hour."
"Agreed!" shouted the three Musketeers in
chorus.
Each one, stretching out his hand to the bag,
took his seventy-five pistoles, and made his preparations to set out at the time
appointed.
20 THE JOURNEY
At two o'clock in the morning, our four
adventurers left Paris by the Barriere St. Denis. As long as it was dark they
remained silent; in spite of themselves they submitted to the influence of the
obscurity, and apprehended ambushes on every side.
With the first rays of day their tongues were
loosened; with the sun gaiety revived. It was like the eve of a battle; the
heart beat, the eyes laughed, and they felt that the life they were perhaps
going to lose, was, after all, a good thing.
Besides, the appearance of the caravan was
formidable. The black horses of the Musketeers, their martial carriage, with the
regimental step of these noble companions of the soldier, would have betrayed
the most strict incognito. The lackeys followed, armed to the teeth.
All went well till they arrived at Chantilly,
which they reached about eight o'clock in the morning. They needed breakfast,
and alighted at the door of an AUBERGE, recommended by a sign representing St.
Martin giving half his cloak to a poor man. They ordered the lackeys not to
unsaddle the horses, and to hold themselves in readiness to set off again
immediately.
They entered the common hall, and placed
themselves at table. A gentleman, who had just arrived by the route of
Dammartin, was seated at the same table, and was breakfasting. He opened the
conversation about rain and fine weather; the travelers replied. He drank to
their good health, and the travelers returned his politeness.
But at the moment Mousqueton came to announce
that the horses were ready, and they were arising from table, the stranger
proposed to Porthos to drink the health of the cardinal. Porthos replied that he
asked no better if the stranger, in his turn, would drink the health of the
king. The stranger cried that he acknowledged no other king but his Eminence.
Porthos called him drunk, and the stranger drew his sword.
"You have committed a piece of folly," said
Athos, "but it can't be helped; there is no drawing back. Kill the fellow, and
rejoin us as soon as you can."
All three remounted their horses, and set out
at a good pace, while Porthos was promising his adversary to perforate him with
all the thrusts known in the fencing schools.
"There goes one!" cried Athos, at the end of
five hundred paces.
"But why did that man attack Porthos rather
than any other one of us?" asked Aramis.
"Because, as Porthos was talking louder than
the rest of us, he took him for the chief," said d'Artagnan.
"I always said that this cadet from Gascony was
a well of wisdom," murmured Athos; and the travelers continued their route.
At Beauvais they stopped two hours, as well to
breathe their horses a little as to wait for Porthos. At the end of two hours,
as Porthos did not come, not any news of him, they resumed their journey.
At a league from Beauvais, where the road was
confined between two high banks, they fell in with eight or ten men who, taking
advantage of the road being unpaved in this spot, appeared to be employed in
digging holes and filling up the ruts with mud.
Aramis, not liking to soil his boots with this
artificial mortar, apostrophized them rather sharply. Athos wished to restrain
him, but it was too late. The laborers began to jeer the travelers and by their
insolence disturbed the equanimity even of the cool Athos, who urged on his
horse against one of them.
Then each of these men retreated as far as the
ditch, from which each took a concealed musket; the result was that our seven
travelers were outnumbered in weapons. Aramis received a ball which passed
through his shoulder, and Mousqueton another ball which lodged in the fleshy
part which prolongs the lower portion of the loins. Therefore Mousqueton alone
fell from his horse, not because he was severely wounded, but not being able to
see the wound, he judged it to be more serious than it really was.
"It was an ambuscade!" shouted d'Artagnan.
"Don't waste a charge! Forward!"
Aramis, wounded as he was, seized the mane of
his horse, which carried him on with the others. Mousqueton's horse rejoined
them, and galloped by the side of his companions.
"That will serve us for a relay," said Athos.
"I would rather have had a hat," said
d'Artagnan. "Mine was carried away by a ball. By my faith, it is very fortunate
that the letter was not in it."
"They'll kill poor Porthos when he comes up,"
said Aramis.
"If Porthos were on his legs, he would have
rejoined us by this time," said Athos. "My opinion is that on the ground the
drunken man was not intoxicated."
They continued at their best speed for two
hours, although the horses were so fatigued that it was to be feared they would
soon refuse service.
The travelers had chosen crossroads in the hope
that they might meet with less interruption; but at Crevecoeur, Aramis declared
he could proceed no farther. In fact, it required all the courage which he
concealed beneath his elegant form and polished manners to bear him so far. He
grew more pale every minute, and they were obliged to support him on his horse.
They lifted him off at the door of a cabaret, left Bazin with him, who, besides,
in a skirmish was more embarrassing than useful, and set forward again in the
hope of sleeping at Amiens.
"MORBLEU," said Athos, as soon as they were
again in motion, "reduced to two masters and Grimaud and Planchet! MORBLEU! I
won't be their dupe, I will answer for it. I will neither open my mouth nor draw
my sword between this and Calais. I swear by—"
"Don't waste time in swearing," said
d'Artagnan; "let us gallop, if our horses will consent."
And the travelers buried their rowels in their
horses' flanks, who thus vigorously stimulated recovered their energies. They
arrived at Amiens at midnight, and alighted at the AUBERGE of the Golden Lily.
The host had the appearance of as honest a man
as any on earth. He received the travelers with his candlestick in one hand and
his cotton nightcap in the other. He wished to lodge the two travelers each in a
charming chamber; but unfortunately these charming chambers were at the opposite
extremities of the hotel. d'Artagnan and Athos refused them. The host replied
that he had no other worthy of their Excellencies; but the travelers declared
they would sleep in the common chamber, each on a mattress which might be thrown
upon the ground. The host insisted; but the travelers were firm, and he was
obliged to do as they wished.
They had just prepared their beds and
barricaded their door within, when someone knocked at the yard shutter; they
demanded who was there, and recognizing the voices of their lackeys, opened the
shutter. It was indeed Planchet and Grimaud.
"Grimaud can take care of the horses," said
Planchet. "If you are willing, gentlemen, I will sleep across your doorway, and
you will then be certain that nobody can reach you."
"And on what will you sleep?" said d'Artagnan.
"Here is my bed," replied Planchet, producing a
bundle of straw.
"Come, then," said d'Artagnan, "you are right.
Mine host's face does not please me at all; it is too gracious."
"Nor me either," said Athos.
Planchet mounted by the window and installed
himself across the doorway, while Grimaud went and shut himself up in the
stable, undertaking that by five o'clock in the morning he and the four horses
should be ready.
The night was quiet enough. Toward two o'clock
in the morning somebody endeavored to open the door; but as Planchet awoke in an
instant and cried, "Who goes there?" somebody replied that he was mistaken, and
went away.
At four o'clock in the morning they heard a
terrible riot in the stables. Grimaud had tried to waken the stable boys, and
the stable boys had beaten him. When they opened the window, they saw the poor
lad lying senseless, with his head split by a blow with a pitchfork.
Planchet went down into the yard, and wished to
saddle the horses; but the horses were all used up. Mousqueton's horse which had
traveled for five or six hours without a rider the day before, might have been
able to pursue the journey; but by an inconceivable error the veterinary
surgeon, who had been sent for, as it appeared, to bleed one of the host's
horses, had bled Mousqueton's.
This began to be annoying. All these successive
accidents were perhaps the result of chance; but they might be the fruits of a
plot. Athos and d'Artagnan went out, while Planchet was sent to inquire if there
were not three horses for sale in the neighborhood. At the door stood two
horses, fresh, strong, and fully equipped. These would just have suited them. He
asked where their masters were, and was informed that they had passed the night
in the inn, and were then settling their bill with the host.
Athos went down to pay the reckoning, while
d'Artagnan and Planchet stood at the street door. The host was in a lower and
back room, to which Athos was requested to go.
Athos entered without the least mistrust, and
took out two pistoles to pay the bill. The host was alone, seated before his
desk, one of the drawers of which was partly open. He took the money which Athos
offered to him, and after turning and turning it over and over in his hands,
suddenly cried out that it was bad, and that he would have him and his
companions arrested as forgers.
"You blackguard!" cried Athos, going toward
him, "I'll cut your ears off!"
At the same instant, four men, armed to the
teeth, entered by side doors, and rushed upon Athos.
"I am taken!" shouted Athos, with all the power
of his lungs. "Go on, d'Artagnan! Spur, spur!" and he fired two pistols.
D'Artagnan and Planchet did not require twice
bidding; they unfastened the two horses that were waiting at the door, leaped
upon them, buried their spurs in their sides, and set off at full gallop.
"Do you know what has become of Athos?" asked
d'Artagnan of Planchet, as they galloped on.
"Ah, monsieur," said Planchet, "I saw one fall
at each of his two shots, and he appeared to me, through the glass door, to be
fighting with his sword with the others."
"Brave Athos!" murmured d'Artagnan, "and to
think that we are compelled to leave him; maybe the same fate awaits us two
paces hence. Forward, Planchet, forward! You are a brave fellow."
"As I told you, monsieur," replied Planchet,
"Picards are found out by being used. Besides, I am here in my own country, and
that excites me."
And both, with free use of the spur, arrived at
St. Omer without drawing bit. At St. Omer they breathed their horses with the
bridles passed under their arms for fear of accident, and ate a morsel from
their hands on the stones of the street, after they departed again.
At a hundred paces from the gates of Calais,
d'Artagnan's horse gave out, and could not by any means be made to get up again,
the blood flowing from his eyes and his nose. There still remained Planchet's
horse; but he stopped short, and could not be made to move a step.
Fortunately, as we have said, they were within
a hundred paces of the city; they left their two nags upon the high road, and
ran toward the quay. Planchet called his master's attention to a gentleman who
had just arrived with his lackey, and only preceded them by about fifty paces.
They made all speed to come up to this gentleman, who appeared to be in great
haste. His boots were covered with dust, and he inquired if he could not
instantly cross over to England.
"Nothing would be more easy," said the captain
of a vessel ready to set sail, "but this morning came an order to let no one
leave without express permission from the cardinal."
"I have that permission," said the gentleman,
drawing the paper from his pocket; "here it is."
"Have it examined by the governor of the port,"
said the shipmaster, "and give me the preference."
"Where shall I find the governor?"
"At his country house."
"And that is situated?"
"At a quarter of a league from the city. Look,
you may see it from here—at the foot of that little hill, that slated roof."
"Very well," said the gentleman. And, with his
lackey, he took the road to the governor's country house.
D'Artagnan and Planchet followed the gentleman
at a distance of five hundred paces. Once outside the city, d'Artagnan overtook
the gentleman as he was entering a little wood.
"Monsieur, you appear to be in great haste?"
"No one can be more so, monsieur."
"I am sorry for that," said d'Artagnan; "for as
I am in great haste likewise, I wish to beg you to render me a service."
"What?"
"To let me sail first."
"That's impossible," said the gentleman; "I
have traveled sixty leagues in forty hours, and by tomorrow at midday I must be
in London."
"I have performed that same distance in forty
hours, and by ten o'clock in the morning I must be in London."
"Very sorry, monsieur; but I was here first,
and will not sail second."
"I am sorry, too, monsieur; but I arrived
second, and must sail first."
"The king's service!" said the gentleman.
"My own service!" said d'Artagnan.
"But this is a needless quarrel you seek with
me, as it seems to me."
"PARBLEU! What do you desire it to be?"
"What do you want?"
"Would you like to know?"
"Certainly."
"Well, then, I wish that order of which you are
bearer, seeing that I have not one of my own and must have one."
"You jest, I presume."
"I never jest."
"Let me pass!"
"You shall not pass."
"My brave young man, I will blow out your
brains. HOLA, Lubin, my pistols!"
"Planchet," called out d'Artagnan, "take care
of the lackey; I will manage the master."
Planchet, emboldened by the first exploit,
sprang upon Lubin; and being strong and vigorous, he soon got him on the broad
of his back, and placed his knee upon his breast.
"Go on with your affair, monsieur," cried
Planchet; "I have finished mine."
Seeing this, the gentleman drew his sword, and
sprang upon d'Artagnan; but he had too strong an adversary. In three seconds
d'Artagnan had wounded him three times, exclaiming at each thrust, "One for
Athos, one for Porthos; and one for Aramis!"
At the third hit the gentleman fell like a log.
D'Artagnan believed him to be dead, or at least insensible, and went toward him
for the purpose of taking the order; but the moment he extended his hand to
search for it, the wounded man, who had not dropped his sword, plunged the point
into d'Artagnan's breast, crying, "One for you!"
"And one for me—the best for last!" cried
d'Artagnan, furious, nailing him to the earth with a fourth thrust through his
body.
This time the gentleman closed his eyes and
fainted. D'Artagnan searched his pockets, and took from one of them the order
for the passage. It was in the name of Comte de Wardes.
Then, casting a glance on the handsome young
man, who was scarcely twenty-five years of age, and whom he was leaving in his
gore, deprived of sense and perhaps dead, he gave a sigh for that unaccountable
destiny which leads men to destroy each other for the interests of people who
are strangers to them and who often do not even know that they exist. But he was
soon aroused from these reflections by Lubin, who uttered loud cries and
screamed for help with all his might.
Planchet grasped him by the throat, and pressed
as hard as he could. "Monsieur," said he, "as long as I hold him in this manner,
he can't cry, I'll be bound; but as soon as I let go he will howl again. I know
him for a Norman, and Normans are obstinate."
In fact, tightly held as he was, Lubin
endeavored still to cry out.
"Stay!" said d'Artagnan; and taking out his
handkerchief, he gagged him.
"Now," said Planchet, "let us bind him to a
tree."
This being properly done, they drew the Comte
de Wardes close to his servant; and as night was approaching, and as the wounded
man and the bound man were at some little distance within the wood, it was
evident they were likely to remain there till the next day.
"And now," said d'Artagnan, "to the
Governor's."
"But you are wounded, it seems," said Planchet.
"Oh, that's nothing! Let us attend to what is
more pressing first, and then we will attend to my wound; besides, it does not
seem very dangerous."
And they both set forward as fast as they could
toward the country house of the worthy functionary.
The Comte de Wardes was announced, and
d'Artagnan was introduced.
"You have an order signed by the cardinal?"
said the governor.
"Yes, monsieur," replied d'Artagnan; "here it
is."
"Ah, ah! It is quite regular and explicit,"
said the governor.
"Most likely," said d'Artagnan; "I am one of
his most faithful servants."
"It appears that his Eminence is anxious to
prevent someone from crossing to England?"
"Yes; a certain d'Artagnan, a Bearnese
gentleman who left Paris in company with three of his friends, with the
intention of going to London."
"Do you know him personally?" asked the
governor.
"Whom?"
"This d'Artagnan."
"Perfectly well."
"Describe him to me, then."
"Nothing more easy."
And d'Artagnan gave, feature for feature, a
description of the Comte de Wardes.
"Is he accompanied?"
"Yes; by a lackey named Lubin."
"We will keep a sharp lookout for them; and if
we lay hands on them his Eminence may be assured they will be reconducted to
Paris under a good escort."
"And by doing so, Monsieur the Governor," said
d'Artagnan, "you will deserve well of the cardinal."
"Shall you see him on your return, Monsieur
Count?"
"Without a doubt."
"Tell him, I beg you, that I am his humble
servant."
"I will not fail."
Delighted with this assurance the governor
countersigned the passport and delivered it to d'Artagnan. D'Artagnan lost no
time in useless compliments. He thanked the governor, bowed, and departed. Once
outside, he and Planchet set off as fast as they could; and by making a long
detour avoided the wood and reentered the city by another gate.
The vessel was quite ready to sail, and the
captain was waiting on the wharf. "Well?" said he, on perceiving d'Artagnan.
"Here is my pass countersigned," said the
latter.
"And that other gentleman?
"He will not go today," said d'Artagnan; "but
here, I'll pay you for us two."
"In that case let us go," said the shipmaster.
"Let us go," repeated d'Artagnan.
He leaped with Planchet into the boat, and five
minutes after they were on board. It was time; for they had scarcely sailed half
a league, when d'Artagnan saw a flash and heard a detonation. It was the cannon
which announced the closing of the port.
He had now leisure to look to his wound.
Fortunately, as d'Artagnan had thought, it was not dangerous. The point of the
sword had touched a rib, and glanced along the bone. Still further, his shirt
had stuck to the wound, and he had lost only a few drops of blood.
D'Artagnan was worn out with fatigue. A
mattress was laid upon the deck for him. He threw himself upon it, and fell
asleep.
On the morrow, at break of day, they were still
three or four leagues from the coast of England. The breeze had been so light
all night, they had made but little progress. At ten o'clock the vessel cast
anchor in the harbor of Dover, and at half past ten d'Artagnan placed his foot
on English land, crying, "Here I am at last!"
But that was not all; they must get to London.
In England the post was well served. D'Artagnan and Planchet took each a post
horse, and a postillion rode before them. In a few hours they were in the
capital.
D'Artagnan did not know London; he did not know
a word of English; but he wrote the name of Buckingham on a piece of paper, and
everyone pointed out to him the way to the duke's hotel.
The duke was at Windsor hunting with the king.
D'Artagnan inquired for the confidential valet of the duke, who, having
accompanied him in all his voyages, spoke French perfectly well; he told him
that he came from Paris on an affair of life and death, and that he must speak
with his master instantly.
The confidence with which d'Artagnan spoke
convinced Patrick, which was the name of this minister of the minister. He
ordered two horses to be saddled, and himself went as guide to the young
Guardsman. As for Planchet, he had been lifted from his horse as stiff as a
rush; the poor lad's strength was almost exhausted. d'Artagnan seemed iron.
On their arrival at the castle they learned
that Buckingham and the king were hawking in the marshes two or three leagues
away. In twenty minutes they were on the spot named. Patrick soon caught the
sound of his master's voice calling his falcon.
"Whom must I announce to my Lord Duke?" asked
Patrick.
"The young man who one evening sought a quarrel
with him on the Pont Neuf, opposite the Samaritaine."
"A singular introduction!"
"You will find that it is as good as another."
Patrick galloped off, reached the duke, and
announced to him in the terms directed that a messenger awaited him.
Buckingham at once remembered the circumstance,
and suspecting that something was going on in France of which it was necessary
he should be informed, he only took the time to inquire where the messenger was,
and recognizing from afar the uniform of the Guards, he put his horse into a
gallop, and rode straight up to d'Artagnan. Patrick discreetly kept in the
background.
"No misfortune has happened to the queen?"
cried Buckingham, the instant he came up, throwing all his fear and love into
the question.
"I believe not; nevertheless I believe she runs
some great peril from which your Grace alone can extricate her."
"I!" cried Buckingham. "What is it? I should be
too happy to be of any service to her. Speak, speak!"
"Take this letter," said d'Artagnan.
"This letter! From whom comes this letter?"
"From her Majesty, as I think."
"From her Majesty!" said Buckingham, becoming
so pale that d'Artagnan feared he would faint as he broke the seal.
"What is this rent?" said he, showing
d'Artagnan a place where it had been pierced through.
"Ah," said d'Artagnan, "I did not see that; it
was the sword of the Comte de Wardes which made that hole, when he gave me a
good thrust in the breast."
"You are wounded?" asked Buckingham, as he
opened the letter.
"Oh, nothing but a scratch," said d'Artagnan.
"Just heaven, what have I read?" cried the
duke. "Patrick, remain here, or rather join the king, wherever he may be, and
tell his Majesty that I humbly beg him to excuse me, but an affair of the
greatest importance recalls me to London. Come, monsieur, come!" and both set
off towards the capital at full gallop.
21 THE COUNTESS DE WINTER
As they rode along, the duke endeavored to draw
from d'Artagnan, not all that had happened, but what d'Artagnan himself knew. By
adding all that he heard from the mouth of the young man to his own
remembrances, he was enabled to form a pretty exact idea of a position of the
seriousness of which, for the rest, the queen's letter, short but explicit, gave
him the clue. But that which astonished him most was that the cardinal, so
deeply interested in preventing this young man from setting his foot in England,
had not succeeded in arresting him on the road. It was then, upon the
manifestation of this astonishment, that d'Artagnan related to him the
precaution taken, and how, thanks to the devotion of his three friends, whom he
had left scattered and bleeding on the road, he had succeeded in coming off with
a single sword thrust, which had pierced the queen's letter and for which he had
repaid M. de Wardes with such terrible coin. While he was listening to this
recital, delivered with the greatest simplicity, the duke looked from time to
time at the young man with astonishment, as if he could not comprehend how so
much prudence, courage, and devotedness could be allied with a countenance which
indicated not more than twenty years.
The horses went like the wind, and in a few
minutes they were at the gates of London. D'Artagnan imagined that on arriving
in town the duke would slacken his pace, but it was not so. He kept on his way
at the same rate, heedless about upsetting those whom he met on the road. In
fact, in crossing the city two or three accidents of this kind happened; but
Buckingham did not even turn his head to see what became of those he had knocked
down. d'Artagnan followed him amid cries which strongly resembled curses.
On entering the court of his hotel, Buckingham
sprang from his horse, and without thinking what became of the animal, threw the
bridle on his neck, and sprang toward the vestibule. D'Artagnan did the same,
with a little more concern, however, for the noble creatures, whose merits he
fully appreciated; but he had the satisfaction of seeing three or four grooms
run from the kitchens and the stables, and busy themselves with the steeds.
The duke walked so fast that d'Artagnan had
some trouble in keeping up with him. He passed through several apartments, of an
elegance of which even the greatest nobles of France had not even an idea, and
arrived at length in a bedchamber which was at once a miracle of taste and of
richness. In the alcove of this chamber was a door concealed in the tapestry
which the duke opened with a little gold key which he wore suspended from his
neck by a chain of the same metal. With discretion d'Artagnan remained behind;
but at the moment when Buckingham crossed the threshold, he turned round, and
seeing the hesitation of the young man, "Come in!" cried he, "and if you have
the good fortune to be admitted to her Majesty's presence, tell her what you
have seen."
Encouraged by this invitation, d'Artagnan
followed the duke, who closed the door after them. The two found themselves in a
small chapel covered with a tapestry of Persian silk worked with gold, and
brilliantly lighted with a vast number of candles. Over a species of altar, and
beneath a canopy of blue velvet, surmounted by white and red plumes, was a
full-length portrait of Anne of Austria, so perfect in its resemblance that
d'Artagnan uttered a cry of surprise on beholding it. One might believe the
queen was about to speak. On the altar, and beneath the portrait, was the casket
containing the diamond studs.
The duke approached the altar, knelt as a
priest might have done before a crucifix, and opened the casket. "There," said
he, drawing from the casket a large bow of blue ribbon all sparkling with
diamonds, "there are the precious studs which I have taken an oath should be
buried with me. The queen gave them to me, the queen requires them again. Her
will be done, like that of God, in all things."
Then, he began to kiss, one after the other,
those dear studs with which he was about to part. All at once he uttered a
terrible cry.
"What is the matter?" exclaimed d'Artagnan,
anxiously; "what has happened to you, my Lord?"
"All is lost!" cried Buckingham, becoming as
pale as a corpse; "two of the studs are wanting, there are only ten."
"Can you have lost them, my Lord, or do you
think they have been stolen?"
"They have been stolen," replied the duke, "and
it is the cardinal who has dealt this blow. Hold; see! The ribbons which held
them have been cut with scissors."
"If my Lord suspects they have been stolen,
perhaps the person who stole them still has them in his hands."
"Wait, wait!" said the duke. "The only time I
have worn these studs was at a ball given by the king eight days ago at Windsor.
The Comtesse de Winter, with whom I had quarreled, became reconciled to me at
that ball. That reconciliation was nothing but the vengeance of a jealous woman.
I have never seen her from that day. The woman is an agent of the cardinal."
"He has agents, then, throughout the world?"
cried d'Artagnan.
"Oh, yes," said Buckingham, grating his teeth
with rage. "Yes, he is a terrible antagonist. But when is this ball to take
place?"
"Monday next."
"Monday next! Still five days before us. That's
more time than we want. Patrick!" cried the duke, opening the door of the
chapel, "Patrick!" His confidential valet appeared.
"My jeweler and my secretary."
The valet went out with a mute promptitude
which showed him accustomed to obey blindly and without reply.
But although the jeweler had been mentioned
first, it was the secretary who first made his appearance. This was simply
because he lived in the hotel. He found Buckingham seated at a table in his
bedchamber, writing orders with his own hand.
"Mr. Jackson," said he, "go instantly to the
Lord Chancellor, and tell him that I charge him with the execution of these
orders. I wish them to be promulgated immediately."
"But, my Lord, if the Lord Chancellor
interrogates me upon the motives which may have led your Grace to adopt such an
extraordinary measure, what shall I reply?"
"That such is my pleasure, and that I answer
for my will to no man."
"Will that be the answer," replied the
secretary, smiling, "which he must transmit to his Majesty if, by chance, his
Majesty should have the curiosity to know why no vessel is to leave any of the
ports of Great Britain?"
"You are right, Mr. Jackson," replied
Buckingham. "He will say, in that case, to the king that I am determined on war,
and that this measure is my first act of hostility against France."
The secretary bowed and retired.
"We are safe on that side," said Buckingham,
turning toward d'Artagnan. "If the studs are not yet gone to Paris, they will
not arrive till after you."
"How so?"
"I have just placed an embargo on all vessels
at present in his Majesty's ports, and without particular permission, not one
dare lift an anchor."
D'Artagnan looked with stupefaction at a man
who thus employed the unlimited power with which he was clothed by the
confidence of a king in the prosecution of his intrigues. Buckingham saw by the
expression of the young man's face what was passing in his mind, and he smiled.
"Yes," said he, "yes, Anne of Austria is my
true queen. Upon a word from her, I would betray my country, I would betray my
king, I would betray my God. She asked me not to send the Protestants of La
Rochelle the assistance I promised them; I have not done so. I broke my word, it
is true; but what signifies that? I obeyed my love; and have I not been richly
paid for that obedience? It was to that obedience I owe her portrait."
D'Artagnan was amazed to note by what fragile
and unknown threads the destinies of nations and the lives of men are suspended.
He was lost in these reflections when the goldsmith entered. He was an
Irishman—one of the most skillful of his craft, and who himself confessed that
he gained a hundred thousand livres a year by the Duke of Buckingham.
"Mr. O'Reilly," said the duke, leading him into
the chapel, "look at these diamond studs, and tell me what they are worth
apiece."
The goldsmith cast a glance at the elegant
manner in which they were set, calculated, one with another, what the diamonds
were worth, and without hesitation said, "Fifteen hundred pistoles each, my
Lord."
"How many days would it require to make two
studs exactly like them? You see there are two wanting."
"Eight days, my Lord."
"I will give you three thousand pistoles apiece
if I can have them by the day after tomorrow."
"My Lord, they shall be yours."
"You are a jewel of a man, Mr. O'Reilly; but
that is not all. These studs cannot be trusted to anybody; it must be done in
the palace."
"Impossible, my Lord! There is no one but
myself can so execute them that one cannot tell the new from the old."
"Therefore, my dear Mr. O'Reilly, you are my
prisoner. And if you wish ever to leave my palace, you cannot; so make the best
of it. Name to me such of your workmen as you need, and point out the tools they
must bring."
The goldsmith knew the duke. He knew all
objection would be useless, and instantly determined how to act.
"May I be permitted to inform my wife?" said
he.
"Oh, you may even see her if you like, my dear
Mr. O'Reilly. Your captivity shall be mild, be assured; and as every
inconvenience deserves its indemnification, here is, in addition to the price of
the studs, an order for a thousand pistoles, to make you forget the annoyance I
cause you."
D'Artagnan could not get over the surprise
created in him by this minister, who thus open-handed, sported with men and
millions.
As to the goldsmith, he wrote to his wife,
sending her the order for the thousand pistoles, and charging her to send him,
in exchange, his most skillful apprentice, an assortment of diamonds, of which
he gave the names and the weight, and the necessary tools.
Buckingham conducted the goldsmith to the
chamber destined for him, and which, at the end of half an hour, was transformed
into a workshop. Then he placed a sentinel at each door, with an order to admit
nobody upon any pretense but his VALET DE CHAMBRE, Patrick. We need not add that
the goldsmith, O'Reilly, and his assistant, were prohibited from going out under
any pretext. This point, settled, the duke turned to d'Artagnan. "Now, my young
friend," said he, "England is all our own. What do you wish for? What do you
desire?"
"A bed, my Lord," replied d'Artagnan. "At
present, I confess, that is the thing I stand most in need of."
Buckingham gave d'Artagnan a chamber adjoining
his own. He wished to have the young man at hand—not that he at all mistrusted
him, but for the sake of having someone to whom he could constantly talk of the
queen.
In one hour after, the ordinance was published
in London that no vessel bound for France should leave port, not even the packet
boat with letters. In the eyes of everybody this was a declaration of war
between the two kingdoms.
On the day after the morrow, by eleven o'clock,
the two diamond studs were finished, and they were so completely imitated, so
perfectly alike, that Buckingham could not tell the new ones from the old ones,
and experts in such matters would have been deceived as he was. He immediately
called d'Artagnan. "Here," said he to him, "are the diamond studs that you came
to bring; and be my witness that I have done all that human power could do."
"Be satisfied, my Lord, I will tell all that I
have seen. But does your Grace mean to give me the studs without the casket?"
"The casket would encumber you. Besides, the
casket is the more precious from being all that is left to me. You will say that
I keep it."
"I will perform your commission, word for word,
my Lord."
"And now," resumed Buckingham, looking
earnestly at the young man, "how shall I ever acquit myself of the debt I owe
you?"
D'Artagnan blushed up to the whites of his
eyes. He saw that the duke was searching for a means of making him accept
something and the idea that the blood of his friends and himself was about to be
paid for with English gold was strangely repugnant to him.
"Let us understand each other, my Lord,"
replied d'Artagnan, "and let us make things clear beforehand in order that there
may be no mistake. I am in the service of the King and Queen of France, and form
part of the company of Monsieur Dessessart, who, as well as his brother-in-law,
Monsieur de Treville, is particularly attached to their Majesties. What I have
done, then, has been for the queen, and not at all for your Grace. And still
further, it is very probable I should not have done anything of this, if it had
not been to make myself agreeable to someone who is my lady, as the queen is
yours."
"Yes," said the duke, smiling, "and I even
believe that I know that other person; it is—"
"My Lord, I have not named her!" interrupted
the young man, warmly.
"That is true," said the duke; "and it is to
this person I am bound to discharge my debt of gratitude."
"You have said, my Lord; for truly, at this
moment when there is question of war, I confess to you that I see nothing in
your Grace but an Englishman, and consequently an enemy whom I should have much
greater pleasure in meeting on the field of battle than in the park at Windsor
or the corridors of the Louvre—all which, however, will not prevent me from
executing to the very point my commission or from laying down my life, if there
be need of it, to accomplish it; but I repeat it to your Grace, without your
having personally on that account more to thank me for in this second interview
than for what I did for you in the first."
"We say, 'Proud as a Scotsman,'" murmured the
Duke of Buckingham.
"And we say, 'Proud as a Gascon,'" replied
d'Artagnan. "The Gascons are the Scots of France."
D'Artagnan bowed to the duke, and was retiring.
"Well, are you going away in that manner?
Where, and how?"
"That's true!"
"Fore Gad, these Frenchmen have no
consideration!"
"I had forgotten that England was an island,
and that you were the king of it."
"Go to the riverside, ask for the brig SUND,
and give this letter to the captain; he will convey you to a little port, where
certainly you are not expected, and which is ordinarily only frequented by
fishermen."
"The name of that port?"
"St. Valery; but listen. When you have arrived
there you will go to a mean tavern, without a name and without a sign—a mere
fisherman's hut. You cannot be mistaken; there is but one."
"Afterward?"
"You will ask for the host, and will repeat to
him the word 'Forward!'"
"Which means?"
"In French, EN AVANT. It is the password. He
will give you a horse all saddled, and will point out to you the road you ought
to take. You will find, in the same way, four relays on your route. If you will
give at each of these relays your address in Paris, the four horses will follow
you thither. You already know two of them, and you appeared to appreciate them
like a judge. They were those we rode on; and you may rely upon me for the
others not being inferior to them. These horses are equipped for the field.
However proud you may be, you will not refuse to accept one of them, and to
request your three companions to accept the others—that is, in order to make war
against us. Besides, the end justified the means, as you Frenchmen say, does it
not?"
"Yes, my Lord, I accept them," said d'Artagnan;
"and if it please God, we will make a good use of your presents."
"Well, now, your hand, young man. Perhaps we
shall soon meet on the field of battle; but in the meantime we shall part good
friends, I hope."
"Yes, my Lord; but with the hope of soon
becoming enemies."
"Be satisfied; I promise you that."
"I depend upon your word, my Lord."
D'Artagnan bowed to the duke, and made his way
as quickly as possible to the riverside. Opposite the Tower of London he found
the vessel that had been named to him, delivered his letter to the captain, who
after having it examined by the governor of the port made immediate preparations
to sail.
Fifty vessels were waiting to set out. Passing
alongside one of them, d'Artagnan fancied he perceived on board it the woman of
Meung—the same whom the unknown gentleman had called Milady, and whom d'Artagnan
had thought so handsome; but thanks to the current of the stream and a fair
wind, his vessel passed so quickly that he had little more than a glimpse of
her.
The next day about nine o'clock in the morning,
he landed at St. Valery. D'Artagnan went instantly in search of the inn, and
easily discovered it by the riotous noise which resounded from it. War between
England and France was talked of as near and certain, and the jolly sailors were
having a carousal.
D'Artagnan made his way through the crowd,
advanced toward the host, and pronounced the word "Forward!" The host instantly
made him a sign to follow, went out with him by a door which opened into a yard,
led him to the stable, where a saddled horse awaited him, and asked him if he
stood in need of anything else.
"I want to know the route I am to follow," said
d'Artagnan.
"Go from hence to Blangy, and from Blangy to
Neufchatel. At Neufchatel, go to the tavern of the Golden Harrow, give the
password to the landlord, and you will find, as you have here, a horse ready
saddled."
"Have I anything to pay?" demanded d'Artagnan.
"Everything is paid," replied the host, "and
liberally. Begone, and may God guide you!"
"Amen!" cried the young man, and set off at
full gallop.
Four hours later he was in Neufchatel. He
strictly followed the instructions he had received. At Neufchatel, as at St.
Valery, he found a horse quite ready and awaiting him. He was about to remove
the pistols from the saddle he had quit to the one he was about to fill, but he
found the holsters furnished with similar pistols.
"Your address at Paris?"
"Hotel of the Guards, company of Dessessart."
"Enough," replied the questioner.
"Which route must I take?" demanded d'Artagnan,
in his turn.
"That of Rouen; but you will leave the city on
your right. You must stop at the little village of Eccuis, in which there is but
one tavern—the Shield of France. Don't condemn it from appearances; you will
find a horse in the stables quite as good as this."
"The same password?"
"Exactly."
"Adieu, master!"
"A good journey, gentlemen! Do you want
anything?"
D'Artagnan shook his head, and set off at full
speed. At Eccuis, the same scene was repeated. He found as provident a host and
a fresh horse. He left his address as he had done before, and set off again at
the same pace for Pontoise. At Pontoise he changed his horse for the last time,
and at nine o'clock galloped into the yard of Treville's hotel. He had made
nearly sixty leagues in little more than twelve hours.
M. de Treville received him as if he had seen
him that same morning; only, when pressing his hand a little more warmly than
usual, he informed him that the company of Dessessart was on duty at the Louvre,
and that he might repair at once to his post.
22 THE BALLET OF LA MERLAISON
On the morrow, nothing was talked of in Paris
but the ball which the aldermen of the city were to give to the king and queen,
and in which their Majesties were to dance the famous La Merlaison—the favorite
ballet of the king.
Eight days had been occupied in preparations at
the Hotel de Ville for this important evening. The city carpenters had erected
scaffolds upon which the invited ladies were to be placed; the city grocer had
ornamented the chambers with two hundred FLAMBEAUX of white wax, a piece of
luxury unheard of at that period; and twenty violins were ordered, and the price
for them fixed at double the usual rate, upon condition, said the report, that
they should be played all night.
At ten o'clock in the morning the Sieur de la
Coste, ensign in the king's Guards, followed by two officers and several archers
of that body, came to the city registrar, named Clement, and demanded of him all
the keys of the rooms and offices of the hotel. These keys were given up to him
instantly. Each of them had ticket attached to it, by which it might be
recognized; and from that moment the Sieur de la Coste was charged with the care
of all the doors and all the avenues.
At eleven o'clock came in his turn Duhallier,
captain of the Guards, bringing with him fifty archers, who were distributed
immediately through the Hotel de Ville, at the doors assigned them.
At three o'clock came two companies of the
Guards, one French, the other Swiss. The company of French guards was composed
of half of M. Duhallier's men and half of M. Dessessart's men.
At six in the evening the guests began to come.
As fast as they entered, they were placed in the grand saloon, on the platforms
prepared for them.
At nine o'clock Madame la Premiere Presidente
arrived. As next to the queen, she was the most considerable personage of the
fete, she was received by the city officials, and placed in a box opposite to
that which the queen was to occupy.
At ten o'clock, the king's collation,
consisting of preserves and other delicacies, was prepared in the little room on
the side of the church of St. Jean, in front of the silver buffet of the city,
which was guarded by four archers.
At midnight great cries and loud acclamations
were heard. It was the king, who was passing through the streets which led from
the Louvre to the Hotel de Ville, and which were all illuminated with colored
lanterns.
Immediately the aldermen, clothed in their
cloth robes and preceded by six sergeants, each holding a FLAMBEAU in his hand,
went to attend upon the king, whom they met on the steps, where the provost of
the merchants made him the speech of welcome—a compliment to which his Majesty
replied with an apology for coming so late, laying the blame upon the cardinal,
who had detained him till eleven o'clock, talking of affairs of state.
His Majesty, in full dress, was accompanied by
his royal Highness, M. le Comte de Soissons, by the Grand Prior, by the Duc de
Longueville, by the Duc d'Euboeuf, by the Comte d'Harcourt, by the Comte de la
Roche-Guyon, by M. de Liancourt, by M. de Baradas, by the Comte de Cramail, and
by the Chevalier de Souveray. Everybody noticed that the king looked dull and
preoccupied.
A private room had been prepared for the king
and another for Monsieur. In each of these closets were placed masquerade
dresses. The same had been done for the queen and Madame the President. The
nobles and ladies of their Majesties' suites were to dress, two by two, in
chambers prepared for the purpose. Before entering his closet the king desired
to be informed the moment the cardinal arrived.
Half an hour after the entrance of the king,
fresh acclamations were heard; these announced the arrival of the queen. The
aldermen did as they had done before, and preceded by their sergeants, advanced
to receive their illustrious guest. The queen entered the great hall; and it was
remarked that, like the king, she looked dull and even weary.
At the moment she entered, the curtain of a
small gallery which to that time had been closed, was drawn, and the pale face
of the cardinal appeared, he being dressed as a Spanish cavalier. His eyes were
fixed upon those of the queen, and a smile of terrible joy passed over his lips;
the queen did not wear her diamond studs.
The queen remained for a short time to receive
the compliments of the city dignitaries and to reply to the salutations of the
ladies. All at once the king appeared with the cardinal at one of the doors of
the hall. The cardinal was speaking to him in a low voice, and the king was very
pale.
The king made his way through the crowd without
a mask, and the ribbons of his doublet scarcely tied. He went straight to the
queen, and in an altered voice said, "Why, madame, have you not thought proper
to wear your diamond studs, when you know it would give me so much
gratification?"
The queen cast a glance around her, and saw the
cardinal behind, with a diabolical smile on his countenance.
"Sire," replied the queen, with a faltering
voice, "because, in the midst of such a crowd as this, I feared some accident
might happen to them."
"And you were wrong, madame. If I made you that
present it was that you might adorn yourself therewith. I tell you that you were
wrong."
The voice of the king was tremulous with anger.
Everybody looked and listened with astonishment, comprehending nothing of what
passed.
"Sire," said the queen, "I can send for them to
the Louvre, where they are, and thus your Majesty's wishes will be complied
with."
"Do so, madame, do so, and that at once; for
within an hour the ballet will commence."
The queen bent in token of submission, and
followed the ladies who were to conduct her to her room. On his part the king
returned to his apartment.
There was a moment of trouble and confusion in
the assembly. Everybody had remarked that something had passed between the king
and queen; but both of them had spoken so low that everybody, out of respect,
withdrew several steps, so that nobody had heard anything. The violins began to
sound with all their might, but nobody listened to them.
The king came out first from his room. He was
in a most elegant hunting costume; and Monsieur and the other nobles were
dressed like him. This was the costume that best became the king. So dressed, he
really appeared the first gentleman of his kingdom.
The cardinal drew near to the king, and placed
in his hand a small casket. The king opened it, and found in it two diamond
studs.
"What does this mean?" demanded he of the
cardinal.
"Nothing," replied the latter; "only, if the
queen has the studs, which I very much doubt, count them, sire, and if you only
find ten, ask her Majesty who can have stolen from her the two studs that are
here."
The king looked at the cardinal as if to
interrogate him; but he had not time to address any question to him—a cry of
admiration burst from every mouth. If the king appeared to be the first
gentleman of his kingdom, the queen was without doubt the most beautiful woman
in France.
It is true that the habit of a huntress became
her admirably. She wore a beaver hat with blue feathers, a surtout of gray-pearl
velvet, fastened with diamond clasps, and a petticoat of blue satin, embroidered
with silver. On her left shoulder sparkled the diamond studs, on a bow of the
same color as the plumes and the petticoat.
The king trembled with joy and the cardinal
with vexation; although, distant as they were from the queen, they could not
count the studs. The queen had them. The only question was, had she ten or
twelve?
At that moment the violins sounded the signal
for the ballet. The king advanced toward Madame the President, with whom he was
to dance, and his Highness Monsieur with the queen. They took their places, and
the ballet began.
The king danced facing the queen, and every
time he passed by her, he devoured with his eyes those studs of which he could
not ascertain the number. A cold sweat covered the brow of the cardinal.
The ballet lasted an hour, and had sixteen
ENTREES. The ballet ended amid the applause of the whole assemblage, and
everyone reconducted his lady to her place; but the king took advantage of the
privilege he had of leaving his lady, to advance eagerly toward the queen.
"I thank you, madame," said he, "for the
deference you have shown to my wishes, but I think you want two of the studs,
and I bring them back to you."
With these words he held out to the queen the
two studs the cardinal had given him.
"How, sire?" cried the young queen, affecting
surprise, "you are giving me, then, two more: I shall have fourteen."
In fact the king counted them, and the twelve
studs were all on her Majesty's shoulder.
The king called the cardinal.
"What does this mean, Monsieur Cardinal?" asked
the king in a severe tone.
"This means, sire," replied the cardinal, "that
I was desirous of presenting her Majesty with these two studs, and that not
daring to offer them myself, I adopted this means of inducing her to accept
them."
"And I am the more grateful to your Eminence,"
replied Anne of Austria, with a smile that proved she was not the dupe of this
ingenious gallantry, "from being certain that these two studs alone have cost
you as much as all the others cost his Majesty."
Then saluting the king and the cardinal, the
queen resumed her way to the chamber in which she had dressed, and where she was
to take off her costume.
The attention which we have been obliged to
give, during the commencement of the chapter, to the illustrious personages we
have introduced into it, has diverted us for an instant from him to whom Anne of
Austria owed the extraordinary triumph she had obtained over the cardinal; and
who, confounded, unknown, lost in the crowd gathered at one of the doors, looked
on at this scene, comprehensible only to four persons—the king, the queen, his
Eminence, and himself.
The queen had just regained her chamber, and
d'Artagnan was about to retire, when he felt his shoulder lightly touched. He
turned and saw a young woman, who made him a sign to follow her. The face of
this young woman was covered with a black velvet mask; but notwithstanding this
precaution, which was in fact taken rather against others than against him, he
at once recognized his usual guide, the light and intelligent Mme. Bonacieux.
On the evening before, they had scarcely seen
each other for a moment at the apartment of the Swiss guard, Germain, whither
d'Artagnan had sent for her. The haste which the young woman was in to convey to
the queen the excellent news of the happy return of her messenger prevented the
two lovers from exchanging more than a few words. D'Artagnan therefore followed
Mme. Bonacieux moved by a double sentiment—love and curiosity. All the way, and
in proportion as the corridors became more deserted, d'Artagnan wished to stop
the young woman, seize her and gaze upon her, were it only for a minute; but
quick as a bird she glided between his hands, and when he wished to speak to
her, her finger placed upon her mouth, with a little imperative gesture full of
grace, reminded him that he was under the command of a power which he must
blindly obey, and which forbade him even to make the slightest complaint. At
length, after winding about for a minute or two, Mme. Bonacieux opened the door
of a closet, which was entirely dark, and led d'Artagnan into it. There she made
a fresh sign of silence, and opened a second door concealed by tapestry. The
opening of this door disclosed a brilliant light, and she disappeared.
D'Artagnan remained for a moment motionless,
asking himself where he could be; but soon a ray of light which penetrated
through the chamber, together with the warm and perfumed air which reached him
from the same aperture, the conversation of two of three ladies in language at
once respectful and refined, and the word "Majesty" several times repeated,
indicated clearly that he was in a closet attached to the queen's apartment. The
young man waited in comparative darkness and listened.
The queen appeared cheerful and happy, which
seemed to astonish the persons who surrounded her and who were accustomed to see
her almost always sad and full of care. The queen attributed this joyous feeling
to the beauty of the fete, to the pleasure she had experienced in the ballet;
and as it is not permissible to contradict a queen, whether she smile or weep,
everybody expatiated on the gallantry of the aldermen of the city of Paris.
Although d'Artagnan did not at all know the
queen, he soon distinguished her voice from the others, at first by a slightly
foreign accent, and next by that tone of domination naturally impressed upon all
royal words. He heard her approach and withdraw from the partially open door;
and twice or three times he even saw the shadow of a person intercept the light.
At length a hand and an arm, surpassingly
beautiful in their form and whiteness, glided through the tapestry. D'Artagnan
at once comprehended that this was his recompense. He cast himself on his knees,
seized the hand, and touched it respectfully with his lips. Then the hand was
withdrawn, leaving in his an object which he perceived to be a ring. The door
immediately closed, and d'Artagnan found himself again in complete obscurity.
D'Artagnan placed the ring on his finger, and
again waited; it was evident that all was not yet over. After the reward of his
devotion, that of his love was to come. Besides, although the ballet was danced,
the evening had scarcely begun. Supper was to be served at three, and the clock
of St. Jean had struck three quarters past two.
The sound of voices diminished by degrees in
the adjoining chamber. The company was then heard departing; then the door of
the closet in which d'Artagnan was, was opened, and Mme. Bonacieux entered.
"You at last?" cried d'Artagnan.
"Silence!" said the young woman, placing her
hand upon his lips; "silence, and go the same way you came!"
"But where and when shall I see you again?"
cried d'Artagnan.
"A note which you will find at home will tell
you. Begone, begone!"
At these words she opened the door of the
corridor, and pushed d'Artagnan out of the room. D'Artagnan obeyed like a child,
without the least resistance or objection, which proved that he was really in
love.
23 THE RENDEZVOUS
D'Artagnan ran home immediately, and although
it was three o'clock in the morning and he had some of the worst quarters of
Paris to traverse, he met with no misadventure. Everyone knows that drunkards
and lovers have a protecting deity.
He found the door of his passage open, sprang
up the stairs and knocked softly in a manner agreed upon between him and his
lackey. Planchet*, whom he had sent home two hours before from the Hotel de
Ville, telling him to sit up for him, opened the door for him.
*The reader may ask, "How came Planchet here?"
when he was left "stiff as a rush" in London. In the intervening time Buckingham
perhaps sent him to Paris, as he did the horses.
"Has anyone brought a letter for me?" asked
d'Artagnan, eagerly.
"No one has BROUGHT a letter, monsieur,"
replied Planchet; "but one has come of itself."
"What do you mean, blockhead?"
"I mean to say that when I came in, although I
had the key of your apartment in my pocket, and that key had never quit me, I
found a letter on the green table cover in your bedroom."
"And where is that letter?"
"I left it where I found it, monsieur. It is
not natural for letters to enter people's houses in this manner. If the window
had been open or even ajar, I should think nothing of it; but, no—all was
hermetically sealed. Beware, monsieur; there is certainly some magic
underneath."
Meanwhile, the young man had darted in to his
chamber, and opened the letter. It was from Mme. Bonacieux, and was expressed in
these terms:
"There are many thanks to be offered to you,
and to be transmitted to you. Be this evening about ten o'clock at St. Cloud, in
front of the pavilion which stands at the corner of the house of M.
d'Estrees.—C.B."
While reading this letter, d'Artagnan felt his
heart dilated and compressed by that delicious spasm which tortures and caresses
the hearts of lovers.
It was the first billet he had received; it was
the first rendezvous that had been granted him. His heart, swelled by the
intoxication of joy, felt ready to dissolve away at the very gate of that
terrestrial paradise called Love!
"Well, monsieur," said Planchet, who had
observed his master grow red and pale successively, "did I not guess truly? Is
it not some bad affair?"
"You are mistaken, Planchet," replied
d'Artagnan; "and as a proof, there is a crown to drink my health."
"I am much obliged to Monsieur for the crown he
had given me, and I promise him to follow his instructions exactly; but it is
not the less true that letters which come in this way into shut-up houses—"
"Fall from heaven, my friend, fall from
heaven."
"Then Monsieur is satisfied?" asked Planchet.
"My dear Planchet, I am the happiest of men!"
"And I may profit by Monsieur's happiness, and
go to bed?"
"Yes, go."
"May the blessings of heaven fall upon
Monsieur! But it is not the less true that that letter—"
And Planchet retired, shaking his head with an
air of doubt, which the liberality of d'Artagnan had not entirely effaced.
Left alone, d'Artagnan read and reread his
billet. Then he kissed and rekissed twenty times the lines traced by the hand of
his beautiful mistress. At length he went to bed, fell asleep, and had golden
dreams.
At seven o'clock in the morning he arose and
called Planchet, who at the second summons opened the door, his countenance not
yet quite freed from the anxiety of the preceding night.
"Planchet," said d'Artagnan, "I am going out
for all day, perhaps. You are, therefore, your own master till seven o'clock in
the evening; but at seven o'clock you must hold yourself in readiness with two
horses."
"There!" said Planchet. "We are going again, it
appears, to have our hides pierced in all sorts of ways."
"You will take your musketoon and your
pistols."
"There, now! Didn't I say so?" cried Planchet.
"I was sure of it—the cursed letter!"
"Don't be afraid, you idiot; there is nothing
in hand but a party of pleasure."
"Ah, like the charming journey the other day,
when it rained bullets and produced a crop of steel traps!"
"Well, if you are really afraid, Monsieur
Planchet," resumed d'Artagnan, "I will go without you. I prefer traveling alone
to having a companion who entertains the least fear."
"Monsieur does me wrong," said Planchet; "I
thought he had seen me at work."
"Yes, but I thought perhaps you had worn out
all your courage the first time."
"Monsieur shall see that upon occasion I have
some left; only I beg Monsieur not to be too prodigal of it if he wishes it to
last long."
"Do you believe you have still a certain amount
of it to expend this evening?"
"I hope so, monsieur."
"Well, then, I count on you."
"At the appointed hour I shall be ready; only I
believed that Monsieur had but one horse in the Guard stables."
"Perhaps there is but one at this moment; but
by this evening there will be four."
"It appears that our journey was a remounting
journey, then?"
"Exactly so," said d'Artagnan; and nodding to
Planchet, he went out.
M. Bonacieux was at his door. D'Artagnan's
intention was to go out without speaking to the worthy mercer; but the latter
made so polite and friendly a salutation that his tenant felt obliged, not only
to stop, but to enter into conversation with him.
Besides, how is it possible to avoid a little
condescension toward a husband whose pretty wife has appointed a meeting with
you that same evening at St. Cloud, opposite D'Estrees's pavilion? D'Artagnan
approached him with the most amiable air he could assume.
The conversation naturally fell upon the
incarceration of the poor man. M. Bonacieux, who was ignorant that d'Artagnan
had overheard his conversation with the stranger of Meung, related to his young
tenant the persecutions of that monster, M. de Laffemas, whom he never ceased to
designate, during his account, by the title of the "cardinal's executioner," and
expatiated at great length upon the Bastille, the bolts, the wickets, the
dungeons, the gratings, the instruments of torture.
D'Artagnan listened to him with exemplary
complaisance, and when he had finished said, "And Madame Bonacieux, do you know
who carried her off?—For I do not forget that I owe to that unpleasant
circumstance the good fortune of having made your acquaintance."
"Ah!" said Bonacieux, "they took good care not
to tell me that; and my wife, on her part, has sworn to me by all that's sacred
that she does not know. But you," continued M. Bonacieux, in a tine of perfect
good fellowship, "what has become of you all these days? I have not seen you nor
your friends, and I don't think you could gather all that dust that I saw
Planchet brush off your boots yesterday from the pavement of Paris."
"You are right, my dear Monsieur Bonacieux, my
friends and I have been on a little journey."
"Far from here?"
"Oh, Lord, no! About forty leagues only. We
went to take Monsieur Athos to the waters of Forges, where my friends still
remain."
"And you have returned, have you not?" replied
M. Bonacieux, giving to his countenance a most sly air. "A handsome young fellow
like you does not obtain long leaves of absence from his mistress; and we were
impatiently waited for at Paris, were we not?"
"My faith!" said the young man, laughing, "I
confess it, and so much more the readily, my dear Bonacieux, as I see there is
no concealing anything from you. Yes, I was expected, and very impatiently, I
acknowledge."
A slight shade passed over the brow of
Bonacieux, but so slight that d'Artagnan did not perceive it.
"And we are going to be recompensed for our
diligence?" continued the mercer, with a trifling alteration in his voice—so
trifling, indeed, that d'Artagnan did not perceive it any more than he had the
momentary shade which, an instant before, had darkened the countenance of the
worthy man.
"Ah, may you be a true prophet!" said
d'Artagnan, laughing.
"No; what I say," replied Bonacieux, "is only
that I may know whether I am delaying you."
"Why that question, my dear host?" asked
d'Artagnan. "Do you intend to sit up for me?"
"No; but since my arrest and the robbery that
was committed in my house, I am alarmed every time I hear a door open,
particularly in the night. What the deuce can you expect? I am no swordsman."
"Well, don't be alarmed if I return at one, two
or three o'clock in the morning; indeed, do not be alarmed if I do not come at
all."
This time Bonacieux became so pale that
d'Artagnan could not help perceiving it, and asked him what was the matter.
"Nothing," replied Bonacieux, "nothing. Since
my misfortunes I have been subject to faintnesses, which seize me all at once,
and I have just felt a cold shiver. Pay no attention to it; you have nothing to
occupy yourself with but being happy."
"Then I have full occupation, for I am so."
"Not yet; wait a little! This evening, you
said."
"Well, this evening will come, thank God! And
perhaps you look for it with as much impatience as I do; perhaps this evening
Madame Bonacieux will visit the conjugal domicile."
"Madame Bonacieux is not at liberty this
evening," replied the husband, seriously; "she is detained at the Louvre this
evening by her duties."
"So much the worse for you, my dear host, so
much the worse! When I am happy, I wish all the world to be so; but it appears
that is not possible."
The young man departed, laughing at the joke,
which he thought he alone could comprehend.
"Amuse yourself well!" replied Bonacieux, in a
sepulchral tone.
But d'Artagnan was too far off to hear him; and
if he had heard him in the disposition of mind he then enjoyed, he certainly
would not have remarked it.
He took his way toward the hotel of M. de
Treville; his visit of the day before, it is to be remembered, had been very
short and very little explicative.
He found Treville in a joyful mood. He had
thought the king and queen charming at the ball. It is true the cardinal had
been particularly ill-tempered. He had retired at one o'clock under the pretense
of being indisposed. As to their Majesties, they did not return to the Louvre
till six o'clock in the morning.
"Now," said Treville, lowering his voice, and
looking into every corner of the apartment to see if they were alone, "now let
us talk about yourself, my young friend; for it is evident that your happy
return has something to do with the joy of the king, the triumph of the queen,
and the humiliation of his Eminence. You must look out for yourself."
"What have I to fear," replied d'Artagnan, "as
long as I shall have the luck to enjoy the favor of their Majesties?"
"Everything, believe me. The cardinal is not
the man to forget a mystification until he has settled account with the
mystifier; and the mystifier appears to me to have the air of being a certain
young Gascon of my acquaintance."
"Do you believe that the cardinal is as well
posted as yourself, and knows that I have been to London?"
"The devil! You have been to London! Was it
from London you brought that beautiful diamond that glitters on your finger?
Beware, my dear d'Artagnan! A present from an enemy is not a good thing. Are
there not some Latin verses upon that subject? Stop!"
"Yes, doubtless," replied d'Artagnan, who had
never been able to cram the first rudiments of that language into his head, and
who had by his ignorance driven his master to despair, "yes, doubtless there is
one."
"There certainly is one," said M. de Treville,
who had a tincture of literature, "and Monsieur de Benserade was quoting it to
me the other day. Stop a minute—ah, this is it: 'Timeo Danaos et dona ferentes,'
which means, 'Beware of the enemy who makes you presents."
"This diamond does not come from an enemy,
monsieur," replied d'Artagnan, "it comes from the queen."
"From the queen! Oh, oh!" said M. de Treville.
"Why, it is indeed a true royal jewel, which is worth a thousand pistoles if it
is worth a denier. By whom did the queen send you this jewel?"
"She gave it to me herself."
"Where?"
"In the room adjoining the chamber in which she
changed her toilet."
"How?"
"Giving me her hand to kiss."
"You have kissed the queen's hand?" said M. de
Treville, looking earnestly at d'Artagnan.
"Her Majesty did me the honor to grant me that
favor."
"And that in the presence of witnesses!
Imprudent, thrice imprudent!"
"No, monsieur, be satisfied; nobody saw her,"
replied d'Artagnan, and he related to M. de Treville how the affair came to
pass.
"Oh, the women, the women!" cried the old
soldier. "I know them by their romantic imagination. Everything that savors of
mystery charms them. So you have seen the arm, that was all. You would meet the
queen, and she would not know who you are?"
"No; but thanks to this diamond," replied the
young man.
"Listen," said M. de Treville; "shall I give
you counsel, good counsel, the counsel of a friend?"
"You will do me honor, monsieur," said
d'Artagnan.
"Well, then, off to the nearest goldsmith's,
and sell that diamond for the highest price you can get from him. However much
of a Jew he may be, he will give you at least eight hundred pistoles. Pistoles
have no name, young man, and that ring has a terrible one, which may betray him
who wears it."
"Sell this ring, a ring which comes from my
sovereign? Never!" said d'Artagnan.
"Then, at least turn the gem inside, you silly
fellow; for everybody must be aware that a cadet from Gascony does not find such
stones in his mother's jewel case."
"You think, then, I have something to dread?"
asked d'Artagnan.
"I mean to say, young man, that he who sleeps
over a mine the match of which is already lighted, may consider himself in
safety in comparison with you."
"The devil!" said d'Artagnan, whom the positive
tone of M. de Treville began to disquiet, "the devil! What must I do?"
"Above all things be always on your guard. The
cardinal has a tenacious memory and a long arm; you may depend upon it, he will
repay you by some ill turn."
"But of what sort?"
"Eh! How can I tell? Has he not all the tricks
of a demon at his command? The least that can be expected is that you will be
arrested."
"What! Will they dare to arrest a man in his
Majesty's service?"
"PARDIEU! They did not scruple much in the case
of Athos. At all events, young man, rely upon one who has been thirty years at
court. Do not lull yourself in security, or you will be lost; but, on the
contrary—and it is I who say it—see enemies in all directions. If anyone seeks a
quarrel with you, shun it, were it with a child of ten years old. If you are
attacked by day or by night, fight, but retreat, without shame; if you cross a
bridge, feel every plank of it with your foot, lest one should give way beneath
you; if you pass before a house which is being built, look up, for fear a stone
should fall upon your head; if you stay out late, be always followed by your
lackey, and let your lackey be armed—if, by the by, you can be sure of your
lackey. Mistrust everybody, your friend, your brother, your mistress—your
mistress above all."
D'Artagnan blushed.
"My mistress above all," repeated he,
mechanically; "and why her rather than another?"
"Because a mistress is one of the cardinal's
favorite means; he has not one that is more expeditious. A woman will sell you
for ten pistoles, witness Delilah. You are acquainted with the Scriptures?"
D'Artagnan thought of the appointment Mme.
Bonacieux had made with him for that very evening; but we are bound to say, to
the credit of our hero, that the bad opinion entertained by M. de Treville of
women in general, did not inspire him with the least suspicion of his pretty
hostess.
"But, A PROPOS," resumed M. de Treville, "what
has become of your three companions?"
"I was about to ask you if you had heard any
news of them?"
"None, monsieur."
"Well, I left them on my road—Porthos at
Chantilly, with a duel on his hands; Aramis at Crevecoeur, with a ball in his
shoulder; and Athos at Amiens, detained by an accusation of coining."
"See there, now!" said M. de Treville; "and how
the devil did you escape?"
"By a miracle, monsieur, I must acknowledge,
with a sword thrust in my breast, and by nailing the Comte de Wardes on the
byroad to Calais, like a butterfly on a tapestry."
"There again! De Wardes, one of the cardinal's
men, a cousin of Rochefort! Stop, my friend, I have an idea."
"Speak, monsieur."
"In your place, I would do one thing."
"What?"
"While his Eminence was seeking for me in
Paris, I would take, without sound of drum or trumpet, the road to Picardy, and
would go and make some inquiries concerning my three companions. What the devil!
They merit richly that piece of attention on your part."
"The advice is good, monsieur, and tomorrow I
will set out."
"Tomorrow! Any why not this evening?"
"This evening, monsieur, I am detained in Paris
by indispensable business."
"Ah, young man, young man, some flirtation or
other. Take care, I repeat to you, take care. It is woman who has ruined us,
still ruins us, and will ruin us, as long as the world stands. Take my advice
and set out this evening."
"Impossible, monsieur."
"You have given your word, then?"
"Yes, monsieur."
"Ah, that's quite another thing; but promise
me, if you should not be killed tonight, that you will go tomorrow."
"I promise it."
"Do you need money?"
"I have still fifty pistoles. That, I think, is
as much as I shall want."
"But your companions?"
"I don't think they can be in need of any. We
left Paris, each with seventy-five pistoles in his pocket."
"Shall I see you again before your departure?"
"I think not, monsieur, unless something new
should happen."
"Well, a pleasant journey."
"Thanks, monsieur."
D'Artagnan left M. de Treville, touched more
than ever by his paternal solicitude for his Musketeers.
He called successively at the abodes of Athos,
Porthos, and Aramis. Neither of them had returned. Their lackeys likewise were
absent, and nothing had been heard of either the one or the other. He would have
inquired after them of their mistresses, but he was neither acquainted with
Porthos's nor Aramis's, and as to Athos, he had none.
As he passed the Hotel des Gardes, he took a
glance in to the stables. Three of the four horses had already arrived.
Planchet, all astonishment, was busy grooming them, and had already finished
two.
"Ah, monsieur," said Planchet, on perceiving
d'Artagnan, "how glad I am to see you."
"Why so, Planchet?" asked the young man.
"Do you place confidence in our
landlord—Monsieur Bonacieux?"
"I? Not the least in the world."
"Oh, you do quite right, monsieur."
"But why this question?"
"Because, while you were talking with him, I
watched you without listening to you; and, monsieur, his countenance changed
color two or three times!"
"Bah!"
"Preoccupied as Monsieur was with the letter he
had received, he did not observe that; but I, whom the strange fashion in which
that letter came into the house had placed on my guard—I did not lose a movement
of his features."
"And you found it?"
"Traitorous, monsieur."
"Indeed!"
"Still more; as soon as Monsieur had left and
disappeared round the corner of the street, Monsieur Bonacieux took his hat,
shut his door, and set off at a quick pace in an opposite direction."
"It seems you are right, Planchet; all this
appears to be a little mysterious; and be assured that we will not pay him our
rent until the matter shall be categorically explained to us."
"Monsieur jests, but Monsieur will see."
"What would you have, Planchet? What must come
is written."
"Monsieur does not then renounce his excursion
for this evening?"
"Quite the contrary, Planchet; the more ill
will I have toward Monsieur Bonacieux, the more punctual I shall be in keeping
the appointment made by that letter which makes you so uneasy."
"Then that is Monsieur's determination?"
"Undeniably, my friend. At nine o'clock, then,
be ready here at the hotel, I will come and take you."
Planchet seeing there was no longer any hope of
making his master renounce his project, heaved a profound sigh and set to work
to groom the third horse.
As to d'Artagnan, being at bottom a prudent
youth, instead of returning home, went and dined with the Gascon priest, who, at
the time of the distress of the four friends, had given them a breakfast of
chocolate.
24 THE PAVILION
At nine o'clock d'Artagnan was at the Hotel des
Gardes; he found Planchet all ready. The fourth horse had arrived.
Planchet was armed with his musketoon and a
pistol. D'Artagnan had his sword and placed two pistols in his belt; then both
mounted and departed quietly. It was quite dark, and no one saw them go out.
Planchet took place behind his master, and kept at a distance of ten paces from
him.
D'Artagnan crossed the quays, went out by the
gate of La Conference and followed the road, much more beautiful then than it is
now, which leads to St. Cloud.
As long as he was in the city, Planchet kept at
the respectful distance he had imposed upon himself; but as soon as the road
began to be more lonely and dark, he drew softly nearer, so that when they
entered the Bois de Boulogne he found himself riding quite naturally side by
side with his master. In fact, we must not dissemble that the oscillation of the
tall trees and the reflection of the moon in the dark underwood gave him serious
uneasiness. D'Artagnan could not help perceiving that something more than usual
was passing in the mind of his lackey and said, "Well, Monsieur Planchet, what
is the matter with us now?"
"Don't you think, monsieur, that woods are like
churches?"
"How so, Planchet?"
"Because we dare not speak aloud in one or the
other."
"But why did you not dare to speak aloud,
Planchet—because you are afraid?"
"Afraid of being heard? Yes, monsieur."
"Afraid of being heard! Why, there is nothing
improper in our conversation, my dear Planchet, and no one could find fault with
it."
"Ah, monsieur!" replied Planchet, recurring to
his besetting idea, "that Monsieur Bonacieux has something vicious in his
eyebrows, and something very unpleasant in the play of his lips."
"What the devil makes you think of Bonacieux?"
"Monsieur, we think of what we can, and not of
what we will."
"Because you are a coward, Planchet."
"Monsieur, we must not confound prudence with
cowardice; prudence is a virtue."
"And you are very virtuous, are you not,
Planchet?"
"Monsieur, is not that the barrel of a musket
which glitters yonder? Had we not better lower our heads?"
"In truth," murmured d'Artagnan, to whom M. de
Treville's recommendation recurred, "this animal will end by making me afraid."
And he put his horse into a trot.
Planchet followed the movements of his master
as if he had been his shadow, and was soon trotting by his side.
"Are we going to continue this pace all night?"
asked Planchet.
"No; you are at your journey's end."
"How, monsieur! And you?"
"I am going a few steps farther."
"And Monsieur leaves me here alone?"
"You are afraid, Planchet?"
"No; I only beg leave to observe to Monsieur
that the night will be very cold, that chills bring on rheumatism, and that a
lackey who has the rheumatism makes but a poor servant, particularly to a master
as active as Monsieur."
"Well, if you are cold, Planchet, you can go
into one of those cabarets that you see yonder, and be in waiting for me at the
door by six o'clock in the morning."
"Monsieur, I have eaten and drunk respectfully
the crown you gave me this morning, so that I have not a sou left in case I
should be cold."
"Here's half a pistole. Tomorrow morning."
D'Artagnan sprang from his horse, threw the
bridle to Planchet, and departed at a quick pace, folding his cloak around him.
"Good Lord, how cold I am!" cried Planchet, as
soon as he had lost sight of his master; and in such haste was he to warm
himself that he went straight to a house set out with all the attributes of a
suburban tavern, and knocked at the door.
In the meantime d'Artagnan, who had plunged
into a bypath, continued his route and reached St. Cloud; but instead of
following the main street he turned behind the chateau, reached a sort of
retired lane, and found himself soon in front of the pavilion named. It was
situated in a very private spot. A high wall, at the angle of which was the
pavilion, ran along one side of this lane, and on the other was a little garden
connected with a poor cottage which was protected by a hedge from passers-by.
He gained the place appointed, and as no signal
had been given him by which to announce his presence, he waited.
Not the least noise was to be heard; it might
be imagined that he was a hundred miles from the capital. D'Artagnan leaned
against the hedge, after having cast a glance behind it. Beyond that hedge, that
garden, and that cottage, a dark mist enveloped with its folds that immensity
where Paris slept—a vast void from which glittered a few luminous points, the
funeral stars of that hell!
But for d'Artagnan all aspects were clothed
happily, all ideas wore a smile, all shades were diaphanous. The appointed hour
was about to strike. In fact, at the end of a few minutes the belfry of St.
Cloud let fall slowly ten strokes from its sonorous jaws. There was something
melancholy in this brazen voice pouring out its lamentations in the middle of
the night; but each of those strokes, which made up the expected hour, vibrated
harmoniously to the heart of the young man.
His eyes were fixed upon the little pavilion
situated at the angle of the wall, of which all the windows were closed with
shutters, except one on the first story. Through this window shone a mild light
which silvered the foliage of two or three linden trees which formed a group
outside the park. There could be no doubt that behind this little window, which
threw forth such friendly beams, the pretty Mme. Bonacieux expected him.
Wrapped in this sweet idea, d'Artagnan waited
half an hour without the least impatience, his eyes fixed upon that charming
little abode of which he could perceive a part of the ceiling with its gilded
moldings, attesting the elegance of the rest of the apartment.
The belfry of St. Cloud sounded half past ten.
This time, without knowing why, d'Artagnan felt
a cold shiver run through his veins. Perhaps the cold began to affect him, and
he took a perfectly physical sensation for a moral impression.
Then the idea seized him that he had read
incorrectly, and that the appointment was for eleven o'clock. He drew near to
the window, and placing himself so that a ray of light should fall upon the
letter as he held it, he drew it from his pocket and read it again; but he had
not been mistaken, the appointment was for ten o'clock. He went and resumed his
post, beginning to be rather uneasy at this silence and this solitude.
Eleven o'clock sounded.
D'Artagnan began now really to fear that
something had happened to Mme. Bonacieux. He clapped his hands three times—the
ordinary signal of lovers; but nobody replied to him, not even an echo.
He then thought, with a touch of vexation, that
perhaps the young woman had fallen asleep while waiting for him. He approached
the wall, and tried to climb it; but the wall had been recently pointed, and
d'Artagnan could get no hold.
At that moment he thought of the trees, upon
whose leaves the light still shone; and as one of them drooped over the road, he
thought that from its branches he might get a glimpse of the interior of the
pavilion.
The tree was easy to climb. Besides, d'Artagnan
was but twenty years old, and consequently had not yet forgotten his schoolboy
habits. In an instant he was among the branches, and his keen eyes plunged
through the transparent panes into the interior of the pavilion.
It was a strange thing, and one which made
d'Artagnan tremble from the sole of his foot to the roots of his hair, to find
that this soft light, this calm lamp, enlightened a scene of fearful disorder.
One of the windows was broken, the door of the chamber had been beaten in and
hung, split in two, on its hinges. A table, which had been covered with an
elegant supper, was overturned. The decanters broken in pieces, and the fruits
crushed, strewed the floor. Everything in the apartment gave evidence of a
violent and desperate struggle. D'Artagnan even fancied he could recognize amid
this strange disorder, fragments of garments, and some bloody spots staining the
cloth and the curtains. He hastened to descend into the street, with a frightful
beating at his heart; he wished to see if he could find other traces of
violence.
The little soft light shone on in the calmness
of the night. d'Artagnan then perceived a thing that he had not before
remarked—for nothing had led him to the examination—that the ground, trampled
here and hoofmarked there, presented confused traces of men and horses. Besides,
the wheels of a carriage, which appeared to have come from Paris, had made a
deep impression in the soft earth, which did not extend beyond the pavilion, but
turned again toward Paris.
At length d'Artagnan, in pursuing his
researches, found near the wall a woman's torn glove. This glove, wherever it
had not touched the muddy ground, was of irreproachable odor. It was one of
those perfumed gloves that lovers like to snatch from a pretty hand.
As d'Artagnan pursued his investigations, a
more abundant and more icy sweat rolled in large drops from his forehead; his
heart was oppressed by a horrible anguish; his respiration was broken and short.
And yet he said, to reassure himself, that this pavilion perhaps had nothing in
common with Mme. Bonacieux; that the young woman had made an appointment with
him before the pavilion, and not in the pavilion; that she might have been
detained in Paris by her duties, or perhaps by the jealousy of her husband.
But all these reasons were combated, destroyed,
overthrown, by that feeling of intimate pain which, on certain occasions, takes
possession of our being, and cries to us so as to be understood unmistakably
that some great misfortune is hanging over us.
Then d'Artagnan became almost wild. He ran
along the high road, took the path he had before taken, and reaching the ferry,
interrogated the boatman.
About seven o'clock in the evening, the boatman
had taken over a young woman, wrapped in a black mantle, who appeared to be very
anxious not to be recognized; but entirely on account of her precautions, the
boatman had paid more attention to her and discovered that she was young and
pretty.
There were then, as now, a crowd of young and
pretty women who came to St. Cloud, and who had reasons for not being seen, and
yet d'Artagnan did not for an instant doubt that it was Mme. Bonacieux whom the
boatman had noticed.
D'Artagnan took advantage of the lamp which
burned in the cabin of the ferryman to read the billet of Mme. Bonacieux once
again, and satisfy himself that he had not been mistaken, that the appointment
was at St. Cloud and not elsewhere, before the D'Estrees's pavilion and not in
another street. Everything conspired to prove to d'Artagnan that his
presentiments had not deceived him, and that a great misfortune had happened.
He again ran back to the chateau. It appeared
to him that something might have happened at the pavilion in his absence, and
that fresh information awaited him. The lane was still deserted, and the same
calm soft light shone through the window.
D'Artagnan then thought of that cottage, silent
and obscure, which had no doubt seen all, and could tell its tale. The gate of
the enclosure was shut; but he leaped over the hedge, and in spite of the
barking of a chained-up dog, went up to the cabin.
No one answered to his first knocking. A
silence of death reigned in the cabin as in the pavilion; but as the cabin was
his last resource, he knocked again.
It soon appeared to him that he heard a slight
noise within—a timid noise which seemed to tremble lest it should be heard.
Then d'Artagnan ceased knocking, and prayed
with an accent so full of anxiety and promises, terror and cajolery, that his
voice was of a nature to reassure the most fearful. At length an old, worm-eaten
shutter was opened, or rather pushed ajar, but closed again as soon as the light
from a miserable lamp which burned in the corner had shone upon the baldric,
sword belt, and pistol pommels of d'Artagnan. Nevertheless, rapid as the
movement had been, d'Artagnan had had time to get a glimpse of the head of an
old man.
"In the name of heaven!" cried he, "listen to
me; I have been waiting for someone who has not come. I am dying with anxiety.
Has anything particular happened in the neighborhood? Speak!"
The window was again opened slowly, and the
same face appeared, only it was now still more pale than before.
D'Artagnan related his story simply, with the
omission of names. He told how he had a rendezvous with a young woman before
that pavilion, and how, not seeing her come, he had climbed the linden tree, and
by the light of the lamp had seen the disorder of the chamber.
The old man listened attentively, making a sign
only that it was all so; and then, when d'Artagnan had ended, he shook his head
with an air that announced nothing good.
"What do you mean?" cried d'Artagnan. "In the
name of heaven, explain yourself!"
"Oh! Monsieur," said the old man, "ask me
nothing; for if I dared tell you what I have seen, certainly no good would
befall me."
"You have, then, seen something?" replied
d'Artagnan. "In that case, in the name of heaven," continued he, throwing him a
pistole, "tell me what you have seen, and I will pledge you the word of a
gentleman that not one of your words shall escape from my heart."
The old man read so much truth and so much
grief in the face of the young man that he made him a sign to listen, and
repeated in a low voice: "It was scarcely nine o'clock when I heard a noise in
the street, and was wondering what it could be, when on coming to my door, I
found that somebody was endeavoring to open it. As I am very poor and am not
afraid of being robbed, I went and opened the gate and saw three men at a few
paces from it. In the shadow was a carriage with two horses, and some
saddlehorses. These horses evidently belonged to the three men, who were dressed
as cavaliers. 'Ah, my worthy gentlemen,' cried I, 'what do you want?' 'You must
have a ladder?' said he who appeared to be the leader of the party. 'Yes,
monsieur, the one with which I gather my fruit.' 'Lend it to us, and go into
your house again; there is a crown for the annoyance we have caused you. Only
remember this—if you speak a word of what you may see or what you may hear (for
you will look and you will listen, I am quite sure, however we may threaten
you), you are lost.' At these words he threw me a crown, which I picked up, and
he took the ladder. After shutting the gate behind them, I pretended to return
to the house, but I immediately went out a back door, and stealing along in the
shade of the hedge, I gained yonder clump of elder, from which I could hear and
see everything. The three men brought the carriage up quietly, and took out of
it a little man, stout, short, elderly, and commonly dressed in clothes of a
dark color, who ascended the ladder very carefully, looked suspiciously in at
the window of the pavilion, came down as quietly as he had gone up, and
whispered, 'It is she!' Immediately, he who had spoken to me approached the door
of the pavilion, opened it with a key he had in his hand, closed the door and
disappeared, while at the same time the other two men ascended the ladder. The
little old man remained at the coach door; the coachman took care of his horses,
the lackey held the saddlehorses. All at once great cries resounded in the
pavilion, and a woman came to the window, and opened it, as if to throw herself
out of it; but as soon as she perceived the other two men, she fell back and
they went into the chamber. Then I saw no more; but I heard the noise of
breaking furniture. The woman screamed, and cried for help; but her cries were
soon stifled. Two of the men appeared, bearing the woman in their arms, and
carried her to the carriage, into which the little old man got after her. The
leader closed the window, came out an instant after by the door, and satisfied
himself that the woman was in the carriage. His two companions were already on
horseback. He sprang into his saddle; the lackey took his place by the coachman;
the carriage went off at a quick pace, escorted by the three horsemen, and all
was over. From that moment I have neither seen nor heard anything."
D'Artagnan, entirely overcome by this terrible
story, remained motionless and mute, while all the demons of anger and jealousy
were howling in his heart.
"But, my good gentleman," resumed the old man,
upon whom this mute despair certainly produced a greater effect than cries and
tears would have done, "do not take on so; they did not kill her, and that's a
comfort."
"Can you guess," said d'Artagnan, "who was the
man who headed this infernal expedition?"
"I don't know him."
"But as you spoke to him you must have seen
him."
"Oh, it's a description you want?"
"Exactly so."
"A tall, dark man, with black mustaches, dark
eyes, and the air of a gentleman."
"That's the man!" cried d'Artagnan, "again he,
forever he! He is my demon, apparently. And the other?"
"Which?"
"The short one."
"Oh, he was not a gentleman, I'll answer for
it; besides, he did not wear a sword, and the others treated him with small
consideration."
"Some lackey," murmured d'Artagnan. "Poor
woman, poor woman, what have they done with you?"
"You have promised to be secret, my good
monsieur?" said the old man.
"And I renew my promise. Be easy, I am a
gentleman. A gentleman has but his word, and I have given you mine."
With a heavy heart, d'Artagnan again bent his
way toward the ferry. Sometimes he hoped it could not be Mme. Bonacieux, and
that he should find her next day at the Louvre; sometimes he feared she had had
an intrigue with another, who, in a jealous fit, had surprised her and carried
her off. His mind was torn by doubt, grief, and despair.
"Oh, if I had my three friends here," cried he,
"I should have, at least, some hopes of finding her; but who knows what has
become of them?"
It was past midnight; the next thing was to
find Planchet. d'Artagnan went successively into all the cabarets in which there
was a light, but could not find Planchet in any of them.
At the sixth he began to reflect that the
search was rather dubious. D'Artagnan had appointed six o'clock in the morning
for his lackey, and wherever he might be, he was right.
Besides, it came into the young man's mind that
by remaining in the environs of the spot on which this sad event had passed, he
would, perhaps, have some light thrown upon the mysterious affair. At the sixth
cabaret, then, as we said, d'Artagnan stopped, asked for a bottle of wine of the
best quality, and placing himself in the darkest corner of the room, determined
thus to wait till daylight; but this time again his hopes were disappointed, and
although he listened with all his ears, he heard nothing, amid the oaths, coarse
jokes, and abuse which passed between the laborers, servants, and carters who
comprised the honorable society of which he formed a part, which could put him
upon the least track of her who had been stolen from him. He was compelled,
then, after having swallowed the contents of his bottle, to pass the time as
well as to evade suspicion, to fall into the easiest position in his corner and
to sleep, whether well or ill. D'Artagnan, be it remembered, was only twenty
years old, and at that age sleep has its imprescriptible rights which it
imperiously insists upon, even with the saddest hearts.
Toward six o'clock d'Artagnan awoke with that
uncomfortable feeling which generally accompanies the break of day after a bad
night. He was not long in making his toilet. He examined himself to see if
advantage had been taken of his sleep, and having found his diamond ring on his
finger, his purse in his pocket, and his pistols in his belt, he rose, paid for
his bottle, and went out to try if he could have any better luck in his search
after his lackey than he had had the night before. The first thing he perceived
through the damp gray mist was honest Planchet, who, with the two horses in
hand, awaited him at the door of a little blind cabaret, before which d'Artagnan
had passed without even a suspicion of its existence.
25 PORTHOS
Instead of returning directly home, d'Artagnan
alighted at the door of M. de Treville, and ran quickly up the stairs. This time
he had decided to relate all that had passed. M. de Treville would doubtless
give him good advice as to the whole affair. Besides, as M. de Treville saw the
queen almost daily, he might be able to draw from her Majesty some intelligence
of the poor young woman, whom they were doubtless making pay very dearly for her
devotedness to her mistress.
M. de Treville listened to the young man's
account with a seriousness which proved that he saw something else in this
adventure besides a love affair. When d'Artagnan had finished, he said, "Hum!
All this savors of his Eminence, a league off."
"But what is to be done?" said d'Artagnan.
"Nothing, absolutely nothing, at present, but
quitting Paris, as I told you, as soon as possible. I will see the queen; I will
relate to her the details of the disappearance of this poor woman, of which she
is no doubt ignorant. These details will guide her on her part, and on your
return, I shall perhaps have some good news to tell you. Rely on me."
D'Artagnan knew that, although a Gascon, M. de
Treville was not in the habit of making promises, and that when by chance he did
promise, he more than kept his word. He bowed to him, then, full of gratitude
for the past and for the future; and the worthy captain, who on his side felt a
lively interest in this young man, so brave and so resolute, pressed his hand
kindly, wishing him a pleasant journey.
Determined to put the advice of M. de Treville
in practice instantly, d'Artagnan directed his course toward the Rue des
Fossoyeurs, in order to superintend the packing of his valise. On approaching
the house, he perceived M. Bonacieux in morning costume, standing at his
threshold. All that the prudent Planchet had said to him the preceding evening
about the sinister character of the old man recurred to the mind of d'Artagnan,
who looked at him with more attention than he had done before. In fact, in
addition to that yellow, sickly paleness which indicates the insinuation of the
bile in the blood, and which might, besides, be accidental, d'Artagnan remarked
something perfidiously significant in the play of the wrinkled features of his
countenance. A rogue does not laugh in the same way that an honest man does; a
hypocrite does not shed the tears of a man of good faith. All falsehood is a
mask; and however well made the mask may be, with a little attention we may
always succeed in distinguishing it from the true face.
It appeared, then, to d'Artagnan that M.
Bonacieux wore a mask, and likewise that that mask was most disagreeable to look
upon. In consequence of this feeling of repugnance, he was about to pass without
speaking to him, but, as he had done the day before, M. Bonacieux accosted him.
"Well, young man," said he, "we appear to pass
rather gay nights! Seven o'clock in the morning! PESTE! You seem to reverse
ordinary customs, and come home at the hour when other people are going out."
"No one can reproach you for anything of the
kind, Monsieur Bonacieux," said the young man; "you are a model for regular
people. It is true that when a man possesses a young and pretty wife, he has no
need to seek happiness elsewhere. Happiness comes to meet him, does it not,
Monsieur Bonacieux?"
Bonacieux became as pale as death, and grinned
a ghastly smile.
"Ah, ah!" said Bonacieux, "you are a jocular
companion! But where the devil were you gladding last night, my young master? It
does not appear to be very clean in the crossroads."
D'Artagnan glanced down at his boots, all
covered with mud; but that same glance fell upon the shoes and stockings of the
mercer, and it might have been said they had been dipped in the same mud heap.
Both were stained with splashes of mud of the same appearance.
Then a sudden idea crossed the mind of
d'Artagnan. That little stout man, short and elderly, that sort of lackey,
dressed in dark clothes, treated without ceremony by the men wearing swords who
composed the escort, was Bonacieux himself. The husband had presided at the
abduction of his wife.
A terrible inclination seized d'Artagnan to
grasp the mercer by the throat and strangle him; but, as we have said, he was a
very prudent youth, and he restrained himself. However, the revolution which
appeared upon his countenance was so visible that Bonacieux was terrified at it,
and he endeavored to draw back a step or two; but as he was standing before the
half of the door which was shut, the obstacle compelled him to keep his place.
"Ah, but you are joking, my worthy man!" said
d'Artagnan. "It appears to me that if my boots need a sponge, your stockings and
shoes stand in equal need of a brush. May you not have been philandering a
little also, Monsieur Bonacieux? Oh, the devil! That's unpardonable in a man of
your age, and who besides, has such a pretty wife as yours."
"Oh, Lord! no," said Bonacieux, "but yesterday
I went to St. Mande to make some inquiries after a servant, as I cannot possibly
do without one; and the roads were so bad that I brought back all this mud,
which I have not yet had time to remove."
The place named by Bonacieux as that which had
been the object of his journey was a fresh proof in support of the suspicions
d'Artagnan had conceived. Bonacieux had named Mande because Mande was in an
exactly opposite direction from St. Cloud. This probability afforded him his
first consolation. If Bonacieux knew where his wife was, one might, by extreme
means, force the mercer to open his teeth and let his secret escape. The
question, then, was how to change this probability into a certainty.
"Pardon, my dear Monsieur Bonacieux, if I don't
stand upon ceremony," said d'Artagnan, "but nothing makes one so thirsty as want
of sleep. I am parched with thirst. Allow me to take a glass of water in your
apartment; you know that is never refused among neighbors."
Without waiting for the permission of his host,
d'Artagnan went quickly into the house, and cast a rapid glance at the bed. It
had not been used. Bonacieux had not been abed. He had only been back an hour or
two; he had accompanied his wife to the place of her confinement, or else at
least to the first relay.
"Thanks, Monsieur Bonacieux," said d'Artagnan,
emptying his glass, "that is all I wanted of you. I will now go up into my
apartment. I will make Planchet brush my boots; and when he has done, I will, if
you like, send him to you to brush your shoes."
He left the mercer quite astonished at his
singular farewell, and asking himself if he had not been a little inconsiderate.
At the top of the stairs he found Planchet in a
great fright.
"Ah, monsieur!" cried Planchet, as soon as he
perceived his master, "here is more trouble. I thought you would never come in."
"What's the matter now, Planchet?" demanded
d'Artagnan.
"Oh! I give you a hundred, I give you a
thousand times to guess, monsieur, the visit I received in your absence."
"When?"
"About half an hour ago, while you were at
Monsieur de Treville's."
"Who has been here? Come, speak."
"Monsieur de Cavois."
"Monsieur de Cavois?"
"In person."
"The captain of the cardinal's Guards?"
"Himself."
"Did he come to arrest me?"
"I have no doubt that he did, monsieur, for all
his wheedling manner."
"Was he so sweet, then?"
"Indeed, he was all honey, monsieur."
"Indeed!"
"He came, he said, on the part of his Eminence,
who wished you well, and to beg you to follow him to the Palais-Royal." [*]
*It was called the Palais-Cardinal before Richelieu gave it
to the King.
"What did you answer him?"
"That the thing was impossible, seeing that you
were not at home, as he could see."
"Well, what did he say then?"
"That you must not fail to call upon him in the
course of the day; and then he added in a low voice, 'Tell your master that his
Eminence is very well disposed toward him, and that his fortune perhaps depends
upon this interview.'"
"The snare is rather MALADROIT for the
cardinal," replied the young man, smiling.
"Oh, I saw the snare, and I answered you would
be quite in despair on your return.
"'Where has he gone?' asked Monsieur de Cavois.
"'To Troyes, in Champagne,' I answered.
"'And when did he set out?'
"'Yesterday evening.'"
"Planchet, my friend," interrupted d'Artagnan,
"you are really a precious fellow."
"You will understand, monsieur, I thought there
would be still time, if you wish, to see Monsieur de Cavois to contradict me by
saying you were not yet gone. The falsehood would then lie at my door, and as I
am not a gentleman, I may be allowed to lie."
"Be of good heart, Planchet, you shall preserve
your reputation as a veracious man. In a quarter of an hour we set off."
"That's the advice I was about to give
Monsieur; and where are we going, may I ask, without being too curious?"
"PARDIEU! In the opposite direction to that
which you said I was gone. Besides, are you not as anxious to learn news of
Grimaud, Mousqueton, and Bazin as I am to know what has become of Athos,
Porthos, and Aramis?"
"Yes, monsieur," said Planchet, "and I will go
as soon as you please. Indeed, I think provincial air will suit us much better
just now than the air of Paris. So then—"
"So then, pack up our luggage, Planchet, and
let us be off. On my part, I will go out with my hands in my pockets, that
nothing may be suspected. You may join me at the Hotel des Gardes. By the way,
Planchet, I think you are right with respect to our host, and that he is
decidedly a frightfully low wretch."
"Ah, monsieur, you may take my word when I tell
you anything. I am a physiognomist, I assure you."
D'Artagnan went out first, as had been agreed
upon. Then, in order that he might have nothing to reproach himself with, he
directed his steps, for the last time, toward the residences of his three
friends. No news had been received of them; only a letter, all perfumed and of
an elegant writing in small characters, had come for Aramis. D'Artagnan took
charge of it. Ten minutes afterward Planchet joined him at the stables of the
Hotel des Gardes. D'Artagnan, in order that there might be no time lost, had
saddled his horse himself.
"That's well," said he to Planchet, when the
latter added the portmanteau to the equipment. "Now saddle the other three
horses."
"Do you think, then, monsieur, that we shall
travel faster with two horses apiece?" said Planchet, with his shrewd air.
"No, Monsieur Jester," replied d'Artagnan; "but
with our four horses we may bring back our three friends, if we should have the
good fortune to find them living."
"Which is a great chance," replied Planchet,
"but we must not despair of the mercy of God."
"Amen!" said d'Artagnan, getting into his
saddle.
As they went from the Hotel des Gardes, they
separated, leaving the street at opposite ends, one having to quit Paris by the
Barriere de la Villette and the other by the Barriere Montmartre, to meet again
beyond St. Denis—a strategic maneuver which, having been executed with equal
punctuality, was crowned with the most fortunate results. D'Artagnan and
Planchet entered Pierrefitte together.
Planchet was more courageous, it must be
admitted, by day than by night. His natural prudence, however, never forsook him
for a single instant. He had forgotten not one of the incidents of the first
journey, and he looked upon everybody he met on the road as an enemy. It
followed that his hat was forever in his hand, which procured him some severe
reprimands from d'Artagnan, who feared that his excess of politeness would lead
people to think he was the lackey of a man of no consequence.
Nevertheless, whether the passengers were
really touched by the urbanity of Planchet or whether this time nobody was
posted on the young man's road, our two travelers arrived at Chantilly without
any accident, and alighted at the tavern of Great St. Martin, the same at which
they had stopped on their first journey.
The host, on seeing a young man followed by a
lackey with two extra horses, advanced respectfully to the door. Now, as they
had already traveled eleven leagues, d'Artagnan thought it time to stop, whether
Porthos were or were not in the inn. Perhaps it would not be prudent to ask at
once what had become of the Musketeer. The result of these reflections was that
d'Artagnan, without asking information of any kind, alighted, commended the
horses to the care of his lackey, entered a small room destined to receive those
who wished to be alone, and desired the host to bring him a bottle of his best
wine and as good a breakfast as possible—a desire which further corroborated the
high opinion the innkeeper had formed of the traveler at first sight.
D'Artagnan was therefore served with miraculous
celerity. The regiment of the Guards was recruited among the first gentlemen of
the kingdom; and d'Artagnan, followed by a lackey, and traveling with four
magnificent horses, despite the simplicity of his uniform, could not fail to
make a sensation. The host desired himself to serve him; which d'Artagnan
perceiving, ordered two glasses to be brought, and commenced the following
conversation.
"My faith, my good host," said d'Artagnan,
filling the two glasses, "I asked for a bottle of your best wine, and if you
have deceived me, you will be punished in what you have sinned; for seeing that
I hate drinking my myself, you shall drink with me. Take your glass, then, and
let us drink. But what shall we drink to, so as to avoid wounding any
susceptibility? Let us drink to the prosperity of your establishment."
"Your Lordship does me much honor," said the
host, "and I thank you sincerely for your kind wish."
"But don't mistake," said d'Artagnan, "there is
more selfishness in my toast than perhaps you may think—for it is only in
prosperous establishments that one is well received. In hotels that do not
flourish, everything is in confusion, and the traveler is a victim to the
embarrassments of his host. Now, I travel a great deal, particularly on this
road, and I wish to see all innkeepers making a fortune."
"It seems to me," said the host, "that this is
not the first time I have had the honor of seeing Monsieur."
"Bah, I have passed perhaps ten times through
Chantilly, and out of the ten times I have stopped three or four times at your
house at least. Why I was here only ten or twelve days ago. I was conducting
some friends, Musketeers, one of whom, by the by, had a dispute with a
stranger—a man who sought a quarrel with him, for I don't know what."
"Exactly so," said the host; "I remember it
perfectly. It is not Monsieur Porthos that your Lordship means?"
"Yes, that is my companion's name. My God, my
dear host, tell me if anything has happened to him?"
"Your Lordship must have observed that he could
not continue his journey."
"Why, to be sure, he promised to rejoin us, and
we have seen nothing of him."
"He has done us the honor to remain here."
"What, he had done you the honor to remain
here?"
"Yes, monsieur, in this house; and we are even
a little uneasy—"
"On what account?"
"Of certain expenses he has contracted."
"Well, but whatever expenses he may have
incurred, I am sure he is in a condition to pay them."
"Ah, monsieur, you infuse genuine balm into my
blood. We have made considerable advances; and this very morning the surgeon
declared that if Monsieur Porthos did not pay him, he should look to me, as it
was I who had sent for him."
"Porthos is wounded, then?"
"I cannot tell you, monsieur."
"What! You cannot tell me? Surely you ought to
be able to tell me better than any other person."
"Yes; but in our situation we must not say all
we know—particularly as we have been warned that our ears should answer for our
tongues."
"Well, can I see Porthos?"
"Certainly, monsieur. Take the stairs on your
right; go up the first flight and knock at Number One. Only warn him that it is
you."
"Why should I do that?"
"Because, monsieur, some mischief might happen
to you."
"Of what kind, in the name of wonder?"
"Monsieur Porthos may imagine you belong to the
house, and in a fit of passion might run his sword through you or blow out your
brains."
"What have you done to him, then?"
"We have asked him for money."
"The devil! Ah, I can understand that. It is a
demand that Porthos takes very ill when he is not in funds; but I know he must
be so at present."
"We thought so, too, monsieur. As our house is
carried on very regularly, and we make out our bills every week, at the end of
eight days we presented our account; but it appeared we had chosen an unlucky
moment, for at the first word on the subject, he sent us to all the devils. It
is true he had been playing the day before."
"Playing the day before! And with whom?"
"Lord, who can say, monsieur? With some
gentleman who was traveling this way, to whom he proposed a game of LANSQUENET."
"That's it, then, and the foolish fellow lost
all he had?"
"Even to his horse, monsieur; for when the
gentleman was about to set out, we perceived that his lackey was saddling
Monsieur Porthos's horse, as well as his master's. When we observed this to him,
he told us all to trouble ourselves about our own business, as this horse
belonged to him. We also informed Monsieur Porthos of what was going on; but he
told us we were scoundrels to doubt a gentleman's word, and that as he had said
the horse was his, it must be so."
"That's Porthos all over," murmured d'Artagnan.
"Then," continued the host, "I replied that as
from the moment we seemed not likely to come to a good understanding with
respect to payment, I hoped that he would have at least the kindness to grant
the favor of his custom to my brother host of the Golden Eagle; but Monsieur
Porthos replied that, my house being the best, he should remain where he was.
This reply was too flattering to allow me to insist on his departure. I confined
myself then to begging him to give up his chamber, which is the handsomest in
the hotel, and to be satisfied with a pretty little room on the third floor; but
to this Monsieur Porthos replied that as he every moment expected his mistress,
who was one of the greatest ladies in the court, I might easily comprehend that
the chamber he did me the honor to occupy in my house was itself very mean for
the visit of such a personage. Nevertheless, while acknowledging the truth of
what he said, I thought proper to insist; but without even giving himself the
trouble to enter into any discussion with me, he took one of his pistols, laid
it on his table, day and night, and said that at the first word that should be
spoken to him about removing, either within the house or out of it, he would
blow out the brains of the person who should be so imprudent as to meddle with a
matter which only concerned himself. Since that time, monsieur, nobody entered
his chamber but his servant."
"What! Mousqueton is here, then?"
"Oh, yes, monsieur. Five days after your
departure, he came back, and in a very bad condition, too. It appears that he
had met with disagreeableness, likewise, on his journey. Unfortunately, he is
more nimble than his master; so that for the sake of his master, he puts us all
under his feet, and as he thinks we might refuse what he asked for, he takes all
he wants without asking at all."
"The fact is," said d'Artagnan, "I have always
observed a great degree of intelligence and devotedness in Mousqueton."
"That is possible, monsieur; but suppose I
should happen to be brought in contact, even four times a year, with such
intelligence and devotedness—why, I should be a ruined man!"
"No, for Porthos will pay you."
"Hum!" said the host, in a doubtful tone.
"The favorite of a great lady will not be
allowed to be inconvenienced for such a paltry sum as he owes you."
"If I durst say what I believe on that head—"
"What you believe?"
"I ought rather to say, what I know."
"What you know?"
"And even what I am sure of."
"And of what are you so sure?"
"I would say that I know this great lady."
"You?"
"Yes; I."
"And how do you know her?"
"Oh, monsieur, if I could believe I might trust
in your discretion."
"Speak! By the word of a gentleman, you shall
have no cause to repent of your confidence."
"Well, monsieur, you understand that uneasiness
makes us do many things."
"What have you done?"
"Oh, nothing which was not right in the
character of a creditor."
"Well?"
"Monsieur Porthos gave us a note for his
duchess, ordering us to put it in the post. This was before his servant came. As
he could not leave his chamber, it was necessary to charge us with this
commission."
"And then?"
"Instead of putting the letter in the post,
which is never safe, I took advantage of the journey of one of my lads to Paris,
and ordered him to convey the letter to this duchess himself. This was
fulfilling the intentions of Monsieur Porthos, who had desired us to be so
careful of this letter, was it not?"
"Nearly so."
"Well, monsieur, do you know who this great
lady is?"
"No; I have heard Porthos speak of her, that's
all."
"Do you know who this pretended duchess is?
"I repeat to you, I don't know her."
"Why, she is the old wife of a procurator* of
the Chatelet, monsieur, named Madame Coquenard, who, although she is at least
fifty, still gives herself jealous airs. It struck me as very odd that a
princess should live in the Rue aux Ours."
*Attorney
"But how do you know all this?"
"Because she flew into a great passion on
receiving the letter, saying that Monsieur Porthos was a weathercock, and that
she was sure it was for some woman he had received this wound."
"Has he been wounded, then?"
"Oh, good Lord! What have I said?"
"You said that Porthos had received a sword
cut."
"Yes, but he has forbidden me so strictly to
say so."
"And why so."
"Zounds, monsieur! Because he had boasted that
he would perforate the stranger with whom you left him in dispute; whereas the
stranger, on the contrary, in spite of all his rodomontades quickly threw him on
his back. As Monsieur Porthos is a very boastful man, he insists that nobody
shall know he has received this wound except the duchess, whom he endeavored to
interest by an account of his adventure."
"It is a wound that confines him to his bed?"
"Ah, and a master stroke, too, I assure you.
Your friend's soul must stick tight to his body."
"Were you there, then?"
"Monsieur, I followed them from curiosity, so
that I saw the combat without the combatants seeing me."
"And what took place?"
"Oh! The affair was not long, I assure you.
They placed themselves on guard; the stranger made a feint and a lunge, and that
so rapidly that when Monsieur Porthos came to the PARADE, he had already three
inches of steel in his breast. He immediately fell backward. The stranger placed
the point of his sword at his throat; and Monsieur Porthos, finding himself at
the mercy of his adversary, acknowledged himself conquered. Upon which the
stranger asked his name, and learning that it was Porthos, and not d'Artagnan,
he assisted him to rise, brought him back to the hotel, mounted his horse, and
disappeared."
"So it was with Monsieur d'Artagnan this
stranger meant to quarrel?"
"It appears so."
"And do you know what has become of him?"
"No, I never saw him until that moment, and
have not seen him since."
"Very well; I know all that I wish to know.
Porthos's chamber is, you say, on the first story, Number One?"
"Yes, monsieur, the handsomest in the inn—a
chamber that I could have let ten times over."
"Bah! Be satisfied," said d'Artagnan, laughing,
"Porthos will pay you with the money of the Duchess Coquenard."
"Oh, monsieur, procurator's wife or duchess, if
she will but loosen her pursestrings, it will be all the same; but she
positively answered that she was tired of the exigencies and infidelities of
Monsieur Porthos, and that she would not send him a denier."
"And did you convey this answer to your guest?"
"We took good care not to do that; he would
have found in what fashion we had executed his commission."
"So that he still expects his money?"
"Oh, Lord, yes, monsieur! Yesterday he wrote
again; but it was his servant who this time put the letter in the post."
"Do you say the procurator's wife is old and
ugly?"
"Fifty at least, monsieur, and not at all
handsome, according to Pathaud's account."
"In that case, you may be quite at ease; she
will soon be softened. Besides, Porthos cannot owe you much."
"How, not much! Twenty good pistoles, already,
without reckoning the doctor. He denies himself nothing; it may easily be seen
he has been accustomed to live well."
"Never mind; if his mistress abandons him, he
will find friends, I will answer for it. So, my dear host, be not uneasy, and
continue to take all the care of him that his situation requires."
"Monsieur has promised me not to open his mouth
about the procurator's wife, and not to say a word of the wound?"
"That's agreed; you have my word."
"Oh, he would kill me!"
"Don't be afraid; he is not so much of a devil
as he appears."
Saying these words, d'Artagnan went upstairs,
leaving his host a little better satisfied with respect to two things in which
he appeared to be very much interested—his debt and his life.
At the top of the stairs, upon the most
conspicuous door of the corridor, was traced in black ink a gigantic number "1."
d'Artagnan knocked, and upon the bidding to come in which came from inside, he
entered the chamber.
Porthos was in bed, and was playing a game at
LANSQUENET with Mousqueton, to keep his hand in; while a spit loaded with
partridges was turning before the fire, and on each side of a large
chimneypiece, over two chafing dishes, were boiling two stewpans, from which
exhaled a double odor of rabbit and fish stews, rejoicing to the smell. In
addition to this he perceived that the top of a wardrobe and the marble of a
commode were covered with empty bottles.
At the sight of his friend, Porthos uttered a
loud cry of joy; and Mousqueton, rising respectfully, yielded his place to him,
and went to give an eye to the two stewpans, of which he appeared to have the
particular inspection.
"Ah, PARDIEU! Is that you?" said Porthos to
d'Artagnan. "You are right welcome. Excuse my not coming to meet you; but,"
added he, looking at d'Artagnan with a certain degree of uneasiness, "you know
what has happened to me?"
"No."
"Has the host told you nothing, then?"
"I asked after you, and came up as soon as I
could."
Porthos seemed to breathe more freely.
"And what has happened to you, my dear
Porthos?" continued d'Artagnan.
"Why, on making a thrust at my adversary, whom
I had already hit three times, and whom I meant to finish with the fourth, I put
my foot on a stone, slipped, and strained my knee."
"Truly?"
"Honor! Luckily for the rascal, for I should
have left him dead on the spot, I assure you."
"And what has became of him?"
"Oh, I don't know; he had enough, and set off
without waiting for the rest. But you, my dear d'Artagnan, what has happened to
you?"
"So that this strain of the knee," continued
d'Artagnan, "my dear Porthos, keeps you in bed?"
"My God, that's all. I shall be about again in
a few days."
"Why did you not have yourself conveyed to
Paris? You must be cruelly bored here."
"That was my intention; but, my dear friend, I
have one thing to confess to you."
"What's that?"
"It is that as I was cruelly bored, as you say,
and as I had the seventy-five pistoles in my pocket which you had distributed to
me, in order to amuse myself I invited a gentleman who was traveling this way to
walk up, and proposed a cast of dice. He accepted my challenge, and, my faith,
my seventy-five pistoles passed from my pocket to his, without reckoning my
horse, which he won into the bargain. But you, my dear d'Artagnan?"
"What can you expect, my dear Porthos; a man is
not privileged in all ways," said d'Artagnan. "You know the proverb 'Unlucky at
play, lucky in love.' You are too fortunate in your love for play not to take
its revenge. What consequence can the reverses of fortune be to you? Have you
not, happy rogue that you are—have you not your duchess, who cannot fail to come
to your aid?"
"Well, you see, my dear d'Artagnan, with what
ill luck I play," replied Porthos, with the most careless air in the world. "I
wrote to her to send me fifty louis or so, of which I stood absolutely in need
on account of my accident."
"Well?"
"Well, she must be at her country seat, for she
has not answered me."
"Truly?"
"No; so I yesterday addressed another epistle
to her, still more pressing than the first. But you are here, my dear fellow,
let us speak of you. I confess I began to be very uneasy on your account."
"But your host behaves very well toward you, as
it appears, my dear Porthos," said d'Artagnan, directing the sick man's
attention to the full stewpans and the empty bottles.
"So, so," replied Porthos. "Only three or four
days ago the impertinent jackanapes gave me his bill, and I was forced to turn
both him and his bill out of the door; so that I am here something in the
fashion of a conqueror, holding my position, as it were, my conquest. So you
see, being in constant fear of being forced from that position, I am armed to
the teeth."
"And yet," said d'Artagnan, laughing, "it
appears to me that from time to time you must make SORTIES." And he again
pointed to the bottles and the stewpans.
"Not I, unfortunately!" said Porthos. "This
miserable strain confines me to my bed; but Mousqueton forages, and brings in
provisions. Friend Mousqueton, you see that we have a reinforcement, and we must
have an increase of supplies."
"Mousqueton," said d'Artagnan, "you must render
me a service."
"What, monsieur?"
"You must give your recipe to Planchet. I may
be besieged in my turn, and I shall not be sorry for him to be able to let me
enjoy the same advantages with which you gratify your master."
"Lord, monsieur! There is nothing more easy,"
said Mousqueton, with a modest air. "One only needs to be sharp, that's all. I
was brought up in the country, and my father in his leisure time was something
of a poacher."
"And what did he do the rest of his time?"
"Monsieur, he carried on a trade which I have
always thought satisfactory."
"Which?"
"As it was a time of war between the Catholics
and the Huguenots, and as he saw the Catholics exterminate the Huguenots and the
Huguenots exterminate the Catholics—all in the name of religion—he adopted a
mixed belief which permitted him to be sometimes Catholic, sometimes a Huguenot.
Now, he was accustomed to walk with his fowling piece on his shoulder, behind
the hedges which border the roads, and when he saw a Catholic coming alone, the
Protestant religion immediately prevailed in his mind. He lowered his gun in the
direction of the traveler; then, when he was within ten paces of him, he
commenced a conversation which almost always ended by the traveler's abandoning
his purse to save his life. It goes without saying that when he saw a Huguenot
coming, he felt himself filled with such ardent Catholic zeal that he could not
understand how, a quarter of an hour before, he had been able to have any doubts
upon the superiority of our holy religion. For my part, monsieur, I am
Catholic—my father, faithful to his principles, having made my elder brother a
Huguenot."
"And what was the end of this worthy man?"
asked d'Artagnan.
"Oh, of the most unfortunate kind, monsieur.
One day he was surprised in a lonely road between a Huguenot and a Catholic,
with both of whom he had before had business, and who both knew him again; so
they united against him and hanged him on a tree. Then they came and boasted of
their fine exploit in the cabaret of the next village, where my brother and I
were drinking."
"And what did you do?" said d'Artagnan.
"We let them tell their story out," replied
Mousqueton. "Then, as in leaving the cabaret they took different directions, my
brother went and hid himself on the road of the Catholic, and I on that of the
Huguenot. Two hours after, all was over; we had done the business of both,
admiring the foresight of our poor father, who had taken the precaution to bring
each of us up in a different religion."
"Well, I must allow, as you say, your father
was a very intelligent fellow. And you say in his leisure moments the worthy man
was a poacher?"
"Yes, monsieur, and it was he who taught me to
lay a snare and ground a line. The consequence is that when I saw our laborers,
which did not at all suit two such delicate stomachs as ours, I had recourse to
a little of my old trade. While walking near the wood of Monsieur le Prince, I
laid a few snare in the runs; and while reclining on the banks of his Highness's
pieces of water, I slipped a few lines into his fish ponds. So that now, thanks
be to God, we do not want, as Monsieur can testify, for partridges, rabbits,
carp or eels—all light, wholesome food, suitable for the sick."
"But the wine," said d'Artagnan, "who furnishes
the wine? Your host?"
"That is to say, yes and no."
"How yes and no?"
"He furnishes it, it is true, but he does not
know that he has that honor."
"Explain yourself, Mousqueton; your
conversation is full of instructive things."
"That is it, monsieur. It has so chanced that I
met with a Spaniard in my peregrinations who had seen many countries, and among
them the New World."
"What connection can the New World have with
the bottles which are on the commode and the wardrobe?"
"Patience, monsieur, everything will come in
its turn."
"This Spaniard had in his service a lackey who
had accompanied him in his voyage to Mexico. This lackey was my compatriot; and
we became the more intimate from there being many resemblances of character
between us. We loved sporting of all kinds better than anything; so that he
related to me how in the plains of the Pampas the natives hunt the tiger and the
wild bull with simple running nooses which they throw to a distance of twenty or
thirty paces the end of a cord with such nicety; but in face of the proof I was
obliged to acknowledge the truth of the recital. My friend placed a bottle at
the distance of thirty paces, and at each cast he caught the neck of the bottle
in his running noose. I practiced this exercise, and as nature has endowed me
with some faculties, at this day I can throw the lasso with any man in the
world. Well, do you understand, monsieur? Our host has a well-furnished cellar
the key of which never leaves him; only this cellar has a ventilating hole. Now
through this ventilating hole I throw my lasso, and as I now know in which part
of the cellar is the best wine, that's my point for sport. You see, monsieur,
what the New World has to do with the bottles which are on the commode and the
wardrobe. Now, will you taste our wine, and without prejudice say what you think
of it?"
"Thank you, my friend, thank you;
unfortunately, I have just breakfasted."
"Well," said Porthos, "arrange the table,
Mousqueton, and while we breakfast, d'Artagnan will relate to us what has
happened to him during the ten days since he left us."
"Willingly," said d'Artagnan.
While Porthos and Mousqueton were breakfasting,
with the appetites of convalescents and with that brotherly cordiality which
unites men in misfortune, d'Artagnan related how Aramis, being wounded, was
obliged to stop at Crevecoeur, how he had left Athos fighting at Amiens with
four men who accused him of being a coiner, and how he, d'Artagnan, had been
forced to run the Comtes de Wardes through the body in order to reach England.
But there the confidence of d'Artagnan stopped.
He only added that on his return from Great Britain he had brought back four
magnificent horses—one for himself, and one for each of his companions; then he
informed Porthos that the one intended for him was already installed in the
stable of the tavern.
At this moment Planchet entered, to inform his
master that the horses were sufficiently refreshed and that it would be possible
to sleep at Clermont.
As d'Artagnan was tolerably reassured with
regard to Porthos, and as he was anxious to obtain news of his two other
friends, he held out his hand to the wounded man, and told him he was about to
resume his route in order to continue his researches. For the rest, as he
reckoned upon returning by the same route in seven or eight days, if Porthos
were still at the Great St. Martin, he would call for him on his way.
Porthos replied that in all probability his
sprain would not permit him to depart yet awhile. Besides, it was necessary he
should stay at Chantilly to wait for the answer from his duchess.
D'Artagnan wished that answer might be prompt
and favorable; and having again recommended Porthos to the care of Mousqueton,
and paid his bill to the host, he resumed his route with Planchet, already
relieved of one of his led horses.
26 ARAMIS AND HIS THESIS
D'Artagnan had said nothing to Porthos of his
wound or of his procurator's wife. Our Bearnais was a prudent lad, however young
he might be. Consequently he had appeared to believe all that the vainglorious
Musketeer had told him, convinced that no friendship will hold out against a
surprised secret. Besides, we feel always a sort of mental superiority over
those whose lives we know better than they suppose. In his projects of intrigue
for the future, and determined as he was to make his three friends the
instruments of his fortune, d'Artagnan was not sorry at getting into his grasp
beforehand the invisible strings by which he reckoned upon moving them.
And yet, as he journeyed along, a profound
sadness weighed upon his heart. He thought of that young and pretty Mme.
Bonacieux who was to have paid him the price of his devotedness; but let us
hasten to say that this sadness possessed the young man less from the regret of
the happiness he had missed, than from the fear he entertained that some serious
misfortune had befallen the poor woman. For himself, he had no doubt she was a
victim of the cardinal's vengeance; and, and as was well known, the vengeance of
his Eminence was terrible. How he had found grace in the eyes of the minister,
he did not know; but without doubt M. de Cavois would have revealed this to him
if the captain of the Guards had found him at home.
Nothing makes time pass more quickly or more
shortens a journey than a thought which absorbs in itself all the faculties of
the organization of him who thinks. External existence then resembles a sleep of
which this thought is the dream. By its influence, time has no longer measure,
space has no longer distance. We depart from one place, and arrive at another,
that is all. Of the interval passed, nothing remains in the memory but a vague
mist in which a thousand confused images of trees, mountains, and landscapes are
lost. It was as a prey to this hallucination that d'Artagnan traveled, at
whatever pace his horse pleased, the six or eight leagues that separated
Chantilly from Crevecoeur, without his being able to remember on his arrival in
the village any of the things he had passed or met with on the road.
There only his memory returned to him. He shook
his head, perceived the cabaret at which he had left Aramis, and putting his
horse to the trot, he shortly pulled up at the door.
This time it was not a host but a hostess who
received him. d'Artagnan was a physiognomist. His eye took in at a glance the
plump, cheerful countenance of the mistress of the place, and he at once
perceived there was no occasion for dissembling with her, or of fearing anything
from one blessed with such a joyous physiognomy.
"My good dame," asked d'Artagnan, "can you tell
me what has become of one of my friends, whom we were obliged to leave here
about a dozen days ago?"
"A handsome young man, three- or
four-and-twenty years old, mild, amiable, and well made?"
"That is he—wounded in the shoulder."
"Just so. Well, monsieur, he is still here."
"Ah, PARDIEU! My dear dame," said d'Artagnan,
springing from his horse, and throwing the bridle to Planchet, "you restore me
to life; where is this dear Aramis? Let me embrace him, I am in a hurry to see
him again."
"Pardon, monsieur, but I doubt whether he can
see you at this moment."
"Why so? Has he a lady with him?"
"Jesus! What do you mean by that? Poor lad! No,
monsieur, he has not a lady with him."
"With whom is he, then?"
"With the curate of Montdidier and the superior
of the Jesuits of Amiens."
"Good heavens!" cried d'Artagnan, "is the poor
fellow worse, then?"
"No, monsieur, quite the contrary; but after
his illness grace touched him, and he determined to take orders."
"That's it!" said d'Artagnan, "I had forgotten
that he was only a Musketeer for a time."
"Monsieur still insists upon seeing him?"
"More than ever."
"Well, monsieur has only to take the right-hand
staircase in the courtyard, and knock at Number Five on the second floor."
D'Artagnan walked quickly in the direction
indicated, and found one of those exterior staircases that are still to be seen
in the yards of our old-fashioned taverns. But there was no getting at the place
of sojourn of the future abbe; the defiles of the chamber of Aramis were as well
guarded as the gardens of Armida. Bazin was stationed in the corridor, and
barred his passage with the more intrepidity that, after many years of trial,
Bazin found himself near a result of which he had ever been ambitious.
In fact, the dream of poor Bazin had always
been to serve a churchman; and he awaited with impatience the moment, always in
the future, when Aramis would throw aside the uniform and assume the cassock.
The daily-renewed promise of the young man that the moment would not long be
delayed, had alone kept him in the service of a Musketeer—a service in which, he
said, his soul was in constant jeopardy.
Bazin was then at the height of joy. In all
probability, this time his master would not retract. The union of physical pain
with moral uneasiness had produced the effect so long desired. Aramis, suffering
at once in body and mind, had at length fixed his eyes and his thoughts upon
religion, and he had considered as a warning from heaven the double accident
which had happened to him; that is to say, the sudden disappearance of his
mistress and the wound in his shoulder.
It may be easily understood that in the present
disposition of his master nothing could be more disagreeable to Bazin than the
arrival of d'Artagnan, which might cast his master back again into that vortex
of mundane affairs which had so long carried him away. He resolved, then, to
defend the door bravely; and as, betrayed by the mistress of the inn, he could
not say that Aramis was absent, he endeavored to prove to the newcomer that it
would be the height of indiscretion to disturb his master in his pious
conference, which had commenced with the morning and would not, as Bazin said,
terminate before night.
But d'Artagnan took very little heed of the
eloquent discourse of M. Bazin; and as he had no desire to support a polemic
discussion with his friend's valet, he simply moved him out of the way with one
hand, and with the other turned the handle of the door of Number Five. The door
opened, and d'Artagnan went into the chamber.
Aramis, in a black gown, his head enveloped in
a sort of round flat cap, not much unlike a CALOTTE, was seated before an oblong
table, covered with rolls of paper and enormous volumes in folio. At his right
hand was placed the superior of the Jesuits, and on his left the curate of
Montdidier. The curtains were half drawn, and only admitted the mysterious light
calculated for beatific reveries. All the mundane objects that generally strike
the eye on entering the room of a young man, particularly when that young man is
a Musketeer, had disappeared as if by enchantment; and for fear, no doubt, that
the sight of them might bring his master back to ideas of this world, Bazin had
laid his hands upon sword, pistols, plumed hat, and embroideries and laces of
all kinds and sorts. In their stead d'Artagnan thought he perceived in an
obscure corner a discipline cord suspended from a nail in the wall.
At the noise made by d'Artagnan in entering,
Aramis lifted up his head, and beheld his friend; but to the great astonishment
of the young man, the sight of him did not produce much effect upon the
Musketeer, so completely was his mind detached from the things of this world.
"Good day, dear d'Artagnan," said Aramis;
"believe me, I am glad to see you."
"So am I delighted to see you," said
d'Artagnan, "although I am not yet sure that it is Aramis I am speaking to."
"To himself, my friend, to himself! But what
makes you doubt it?"
"I was afraid I had made a mistake in the
chamber, and that I had found my way into the apartment of some churchman. Then
another error seized me on seeing you in company with these gentlemen—I was
afraid you were dangerously ill."
The two men in black, who guessed d'Artagnan's
meaning, darted at him a glance which might have been thought threatening; but
d'Artagnan took no heed of it.
"I disturb you, perhaps, my dear Aramis,"
continued d'Artagnan, "for by what I see, I am led to believe that you are
confessing to these gentlemen."
Aramis colored imperceptibly. "You disturb me?
Oh, quite the contrary, dear friend, I swear; and as a proof of what I say,
permit me to declare I am rejoiced to see you safe and sound."
"Ah, he'll come round," thought d'Artagnan;
"that's not bad!"
"This gentleman, who is my friend, has just
escaped from a serious danger," continued Aramis, with unction, pointing to
d'Artagnan with his hand, and addressing the two ecclesiastics.
"Praise God, monsieur," replied they, bowing
together.
"I have not failed to do so, your Reverences,"
replied the young man, returning their salutation.
"You arrive in good time, dear d'Artagnan,"
said Aramis, "and by taking part in our discussion may assist us with your
intelligence. Monsieur the Principal of Amiens, Monsieur the Curate of
Montdidier, and I are arguing certain theological questions in which we have
been much interested; I shall be delighted to have your opinion."
"The opinion of a swordsman can have very
little weight," replied d'Artagnan, who began to be uneasy at the turn things
were taking, "and you had better be satisfied, believe me, with the knowledge of
these gentlemen."
The two men in black bowed in their turn.
"On the contrary," replied Aramis, "your
opinion will be very valuable. The question is this: Monsieur the Principal
thinks that my thesis ought to be dogmatic and didactic."
"Your thesis! Are you then making a thesis?"
"Without doubt," replied the Jesuit. "In the
examination which precedes ordination, a thesis is always a requisite."
"Ordination!" cried d'Artagnan, who could not
believe what the hostess and Bazin had successively told him; and he gazed, half
stupefied, upon the three persons before him.
"Now," continued Aramis, taking the same
graceful position in his easy chair that he would have assumed in bed, and
complacently examining his hand, which was as white and plump as that of a
woman, and which he held in the air to cause the blood to descend, "now, as you
have heard, d'Artagnan, Monsieur the Principal is desirous that my thesis should
be dogmatic, while I, for my part, would rather it should be ideal. This is the
reason why Monsieur the Principal has proposed to me the following subject,
which has not yet been treated upon, and in which I perceive there is matter for
magnificent elaboration-'UTRAQUE MANUS IN BENEDICENDO CLERICIS INFERIORIBUS
NECESSARIA EST.'"
D'Artagnan, whose erudition we are well
acquainted with, evinced no more interest on hearing this quotation than he had
at that of M. de Treville in allusion to the gifts he pretended that d'Artagnan
had received from the Duke of Buckingham.
"Which means," resumed Aramis, that he might
perfectly understand, "'The two hands are indispensable for priests of the
inferior orders, when they bestow the benediction.'"
"An admirable subject!" cried the Jesuit.
"Admirable and dogmatic!" repeated the curate,
who, about as strong as d'Artagnan with respect to Latin, carefully watched the
Jesuit in order to keep step with him, and repeated his words like an echo.
As to d'Artagnan, he remained perfectly
insensible to the enthusiasm of the two men in black.
"Yes, admirable! PRORSUS ADMIRABILE!" continued
Aramis; "but which requires a profound study of both the Scriptures and the
Fathers. Now, I have confessed to these learned ecclesiastics, and that in all
humility, that the duties of mounting guard and the service of the king have
caused me to neglect study a little. I should find myself, therefore, more at my
ease, FACILUS NATANS, in a subject of my own choice, which would be to these
hard theological questions what morals are to metaphysics in philosophy."
D'Artagnan began to be tired, and so did the
curate.
"See what an exordium!" cried the Jesuit.
"Exordium," repeated the curate, for the sake
of saying something. "QUEMADMODUM INTER COELORUM IMMENSITATEM."
Aramis cast a glance upon d'Artagnan to see
what effect all this produced, and found his friend gaping enough to split his
jaws.
"Let us speak French, my father," said he to
the Jesuit; "Monsieur d'Artagnan will enjoy our conversation better."
"Yes," replied d'Artagnan; "I am fatigued with
reading, and all this Latin confuses me."
"Certainly," replied the Jesuit, a little put
out, while the curate, greatly delighted, turned upon d'Artagnan a look full of
gratitude. "Well, let us see what is to be derived from this gloss. Moses, the
servant of God-he was but a servant, please to understand-Moses blessed with the
hands; he held out both his arms while the Hebrews beat their enemies, and then
he blessed them with his two hands. Besides, what does the Gospel say? IMPONITE
MANUS, and not MANUM-place the HANDS, not the HAND."
"Place the HANDS," repeated the curate, with a
gesture.
"St. Peter, on the contrary, of whom the Popes
are the successors," continued the Jesuit; "PORRIGE DIGITOS-present the fingers.
Are you there, now?"
"CERTES," replied Aramis, in a pleased tone,
"but the thing is subtle."
"The FINGERS," resumed the Jesuit, "St. Peter
blessed with the FINGERS. The Pope, therefore blesses with the fingers. And with
how many fingers does he bless? With THREE fingers, to be sure-one for the
Father, one for the Son, and one for the Holy Ghost."
All crossed themselves. D'Artagnan thought it
was proper to follow this example.
"The Pope is the successor of St. Peter, and
represents the three divine powers; the rest-ORDINES INFERIORES-of the
ecclesiastical hierarchy bless in the name of the holy archangels and angels.
The most humble clerks such as our deacons and sacristans, bless with holy water
sprinklers, which resemble an infinite number of blessing fingers. There is the
subject simplified. ARGUMENTUM OMNI DENUDATUM ORNAMENTO. I could make of that
subject two volumes the size of this," continued the Jesuit; and in his
enthusiasm he struck a St. Chrysostom in folio, which made the table bend
beneath its weight.
D'Artagnan trembled.
"CERTES," said Aramis, "I do justice to the
beauties of this thesis; but at the same time I perceive it would be
overwhelming for me. I had chosen this text-tell me, dear d'Artagnan, if it is
not to your taste-'NON INUTILE EST DESIDERIUM IN OBLATIONE'; that is, 'A little
regret is not unsuitable in an offering to the Lord.'"
"Stop there!" cried the Jesuit, "for that
thesis touches closely upon heresy. There is a proposition almost like it in the
AUGUSTINUS of the heresiarch Jansenius, whose book will sooner or later be
burned by the hands of the executioner. Take care, my young friend. You are
inclining toward false doctrines, my young friend; you will be lost."
"You will be lost," said the curate, shaking
his head sorrowfully.
"You approach that famous point of free will
which is a mortal rock. You face the insinuations of the Pelagians and the
semi-Pelagians."
"But, my Reverend-" replied Aramis, a little
amazed by the shower of arguments that poured upon his head.
"How will you prove," continued the Jesuit,
without allowing him time to speak, "that we ought to regret the world when we
offer ourselves to God? Listen to this dilemma: God is God, and the world is the
devil. To regret the world is to regret the devil; that is my conclusion."
"And that is mine also," said the curate.
"But, for heaven's sake-" resumed Aramis.
"DESIDERAS DIABOLUM, unhappy man!" cried the
Jesuit.
"He regrets the devil! Ah, my young friend,"
added the curate, groaning, "do not regret the devil, I implore you!"
D'Artagnan felt himself bewildered. It seemed
to him as though he were in a madhouse, and was becoming as mad as those he saw.
He was, however, forced to hold his tongue from not comprehending half the
language they employed.
"But listen to me, then," resumed Aramis with
politeness mingled with a little impatience. "I do not say I regret; no, I will
never pronounce that sentence, which would not be orthodox."
The Jesuit raised his hands toward heaven, and
the curate did the same.
"No; but pray grant me that it is acting with
an ill grace to offer to the Lord only that with which we are perfectly
disgusted! Don't you think so, d'Artagnan?"
"I think so, indeed," cried he.
The Jesuit and the curate quite started from
their chairs.
"This is the point of departure; it is a
syllogism. The world is not wanting in attractions. I quit the world; then I
make a sacrifice. Now, the Scripture says positively, 'Make a sacrifice unto the
Lord.'"
"That is true," said his antagonists.
"And then," said Aramis, pinching his ear to
make it red, as he rubbed his hands to make them white, "and then I made a
certain RONDEAU upon it last year, which I showed to Monsieur Voiture, and that
great man paid me a thousand compliments."
"A RONDEAU!" said the Jesuit, disdainfully.
"A RONDEAU!" said the curate, mechanically.
"Repeat it! Repeat it!" cried d'Artagnan; "it
will make a little change."
"Not so, for it is religious," replied Aramis;
"it is theology in verse."
"The devil!" said d'Artagnan.
"Here it is," said Aramis, with a little look
of diffidence, which, however, was not exempt from a shade of hypocrisy:
"Vous qui pleurez un passe plein de charmes, Et
qui trainez des jours infortunes, Tous vos malheurs se verront termines, Quand a
Dieu seul vous offrirez vos larmes, Vous qui pleurez!"
"You who weep for pleasures fled, While
dragging on a life of care, All your woes will melt in air, If to God your tears
are shed, You who weep!"
d'Artagnan and the curate appeared pleased. The
Jesuit persisted in his opinion. "Beware of a profane taste in your theological
style. What says Augustine on this subject: 'SEVERUS SIT CLERICORUM VERBO.'"
"Yes, let the sermon be clear," said the
curate.
"Now," hastily interrupted the Jesuit, on
seeing that his acolyte was going astray, "now your thesis would please the
ladies; it would have the success of one of Monsieur Patru's pleadings."
"Please God!" cried Aramis, transported.
"There it is," cried the Jesuit; "the world
still speaks within you in a loud voice, ALTISIMMA VOCE. You follow the world,
my young friend, and I tremble lest grace prove not efficacious."
"Be satisfied, my reverend father, I can answer
for myself."
"Mundane presumption!"
"I know myself, Father; my resolution is
irrevocable."
"Then you persist in continuing that thesis?"
"I feel myself called upon to treat that, and
no other. I will see about the continuation of it, and tomorrow I hope you will
be satisfied with the corrections I shall have made in consequence of your
advice."
"Work slowly," said the curate; "we leave you
in an excellent tone of mind."
"Yes, the ground is all sown," said the Jesuit,
"and we have not to fear that one portion of the seed may have fallen upon
stone, another upon the highway, or that the birds of heaven have eaten the
rest, AVES COELI COMEDERUNT ILLAM."
"Plague stifle you and your Latin!" said
d'Artagnan, who began to feel all his patience exhausted.
"Farewell, my son," said the curate, "till
tomorrow."
"Till tomorrow, rash youth," said the Jesuit.
"You promise to become one of the lights of the Church. Heaven grant that this
light prove not a devouring fire!"
D'Artagnan, who for an hour past had been
gnawing his nails with impatience, was beginning to attack the quick.
The two men in black rose, bowed to Aramis and
d'Artagnan, and advanced toward the door. Bazin, who had been standing listening
to all this controversy with a pious jubilation, sprang toward them, took the
breviary of the curate and the missal of the Jesuit, and walked respectfully
before them to clear their way.
Aramis conducted them to the foot of the
stairs, and then immediately came up again to d'Artagnan, whose senses were
still in a state of confusion.
When left alone, the two friends at first kept
an embarrassed silence. It however became necessary for one of them to break it
first, and as d'Artagnan appeared determined to leave that honor to his
companion, Aramis said, "you see that I am returned to my fundamental ideas."
"Yes, efficacious grace has touched you, as
that gentleman said just now."
"Oh, these plans of retreat have been formed
for a long time. You have often heard me speak of them, have you not, my
friend?"
"Yes; but I confess I always thought you
jested."
"With such things! Oh, d'Artagnan!"
"The devil! Why, people jest with death."
"And people are wrong, d'Artagnan; for death is
the door which leads to perdition or to salvation."
"Granted; but if you please, let us not
theologize, Aramis. You must have had enough for today. As for me, I have almost
forgotten the little Latin I have ever known. Then I confess to you that I have
eaten nothing since ten o'clock this morning, and I am devilish hungry."
"We will dine directly, my friend; only you
must please to remember that this is Friday. Now, on such a day I can neither
eat flesh nor see it eaten. If you can be satisfied with my dinner-it consists
of cooked tetragones and fruits."
"What do you mean by tetragones?" asked
d'Artagnan, uneasily.
"I mean spinach," replied Aramis; "but on your
account I will add some eggs, and that is a serious infraction of the rule-for
eggs are meat, since they engender chickens."
"This feast is not very succulent; but never
mind, I will put up with it for the sake of remaining with you."
"I am grateful to you for the sacrifice," said
Aramis; "but if your body be not greatly benefited by it, be assured your soul
will."
"And so, Aramis, you are decidedly going into
the Church? What will our two friends say? What will Monsieur de Treville say?
They will treat you as a deserter, I warn you."
"I do not enter the Church; I re-enter it. I
deserted the Church for the world, for you know that I forced myself when I
became a Musketeer."
"I? I know nothing about it."
"You don't know I quit the seminary?"
"Not at all."
"This is my story, then. Besides, the
Scriptures say, 'Confess yourselves to one another,' and I confess to you,
d'Artagnan."
"And I give you absolution beforehand. You see
I am a good sort of a man."
"Do not jest about holy things, my friend."
"Go on, then, I listen."
"I had been at the seminary from nine years
old; in three days I should have been twenty. I was about to become an abbe, and
all was arranged. One evening I went, according to custom, to a house which I
frequented with much pleasure: when one is young, what can be expected?—one is
weak. An officer who saw me, with a jealous eye, reading the LIVES OF THE SAINTS
to the mistress of the house, entered suddenly and without being announced. That
evening I had translated an episode of Judith, and had just communicated my
verses to the lady, who gave me all sorts of compliments, and leaning on my
shoulder, was reading them a second time with me. Her pose, which I must admit
was rather free, wounded this officer. He said nothing; but when I went out he
followed, and quickly came up with me. 'Monsieur the Abbe,' said he, 'do you
like blows with a cane?' 'I cannot say, monsieur,' answered I; 'no one has ever
dared to give me any.' 'Well, listen to me, then, Monsieur the Abbe! If you
venture again into the house in which I have met you this evening, I will dare
it myself.' I really think I must have been frightened. I became very pale; I
felt my legs fail me; I sought for a reply, but could find none-I was silent.
The officer waited for his reply, and seeing it so long coming, he burst into a
laugh, turned upon his heel, and re-entered the house. I returned to the
seminary.
"I am a gentleman born, and my blood is warm,
as you may have remarked, my dear d'Artagnan. The insult was terrible, and
although unknown to the rest of the world, I felt it live and fester at the
bottom of my heart. I informed my superiors that I did not feel myself
sufficiently prepared for ordination, and at my request the ceremony was
postponed for a year. I sought out the best fencing master in Paris, I made an
agreement with him to take a lesson every day, and every day for a year I took
that lesson. Then, on the anniversary of the day on which I had been insulted, I
hung my cassock on a peg, assumed the costume of a cavalier, and went to a ball
given by a lady friend of mine and to which I knew my man was invited. It was in
the Rue des France-Bourgeois, close to La Force. As I expected, my officer was
there. I went up to him as he was singing a love ditty and looking tenderly at a
lady, and interrupted him exactly in the middle of the second couplet.
'Monsieur,' said I, 'does it still displease you that I should frequent a
certain house of La Rue Payenne? And would you still cane me if I took it into
my head to disobey you? The officer looked at me with astonishment, and then
said, 'What is your business with me, monsieur? I do not know you.' 'I am,' said
I, 'the little abbe who reads LIVES OF THE SAINTS, and translates Judith into
verse.' 'Ah, ah! I recollect now,' said the officer, in a jeering tone; 'well,
what do you want with me?' 'I want you to spare time to take a walk with me.'
'Tomorrow morning, if you like, with the greatest pleasure.' 'No, not tomorrow
morning, if you please, but immediately.' 'If you absolutely insist.' 'I do
insist upon it.' 'Come, then. Ladies,' said the officer, 'do not disturb
yourselves; allow me time just to kill this gentleman, and I will return and
finish the last couplet.'
"We went out. I took him to the Rue Payenne, to
exactly the same spot where, a year before, at the very same hour, he had paid
me the compliment I have related to you. It was a superb moonlight night. We
immediately drew, and at the first pass I laid him stark dead."
"The devil!" cried d'Artagnan.
"Now," continued Aramis, "as the ladies did not
see the singer come back, and as he was found in the Rue Payenne with a great
sword wound through his body, it was supposed that I had accommodated him thus;
and the matter created some scandal which obliged me to renounce the cassock for
a time. Athos, whose acquaintance I made about that period, and Porthos, who had
in addition to my lessons taught me some effective tricks of fence, prevailed
upon me to solicit the uniform of a Musketeer. The king entertained great regard
for my father, who had fallen at the siege of Arras, and the uniform was
granted. You may understand that the moment has come for me to re-enter the
bosom of the Church."
"And why today, rather than yesterday or
tomorrow? What has happened to you today, to raise all these melancholy ideas?"
"This wound, my dear d'Artagnan, has been a
warning to me from heaven."
"This wound? Bah, it is now nearly healed, and
I am sure it is not that which gives you the most pain."
"What, then?" said Aramis, blushing.
"You have one at heart, Aramis, one deeper and
more painful—a wound made by a woman."
The eye of Aramis kindled in spite of himself.
"Ah," said he, dissembling his emotion under a
feigned carelessness, "do not talk of such things, and suffer love pains?
VANITAS VANITATUM! According to your idea, then, my brain is turned. And for
whom-for some GRISETTE, some chambermaid with whom I have trifled in some
garrison? Fie!"
"Pardon, my dear Aramis, but I thought you
carried your eyes higher."
"Higher? And who am I, to nourish such
ambition? A poor Musketeer, a beggar, an unknown-who hates slavery, and finds
himself ill-placed in the world."
"Aramis, Aramis!" cried d'Artagnan, looking at
his friend with an air of doubt.
"Dust I am, and to dust I return. Life is full
of humiliations and sorrows," continued he, becoming still more melancholy; "all
the ties which attach him to life break in the hand of man, particularly the
golden ties. Oh, my dear d'Artagnan," resumed Aramis, giving to his voice a
slight tone of bitterness, "trust me! Conceal your wounds when you have any;
silence is the last joy of the unhappy. Beware of giving anyone the clue to your
griefs; the curious suck our tears as flies suck the blood of a wounded hart."
"Alas, my dear Aramis," said d'Artagnan, in his
turn heaving a profound sigh, "that is my story you are relating!"
"How?"
"Yes; a woman whom I love, whom I adore, has
just been torn from me by force. I do not know where she is or whither they have
conducted her. She is perhaps a prisoner; she is perhaps dead!"
"Yes, but you have at least this consolation,
that you can say to yourself she has not quit you voluntarily, that if you learn
no news of her, it is because all communication with you is interdicted; while
I—"
"Well?"
"Nothing," replied Aramis, "nothing."
"So you renounce the world, then, forever; that
is a settled thing—a resolution registered!"
"Forever! You are my friend today; tomorrow you
will be no more to me than a shadow, or rather, even, you will no longer exist.
As for the world, it is a sepulcher and nothing else."
"The devil! All this is very sad which you tell
me."
"What will you? My vocation commands me; it
carries me away."
D'Artagnan smiled, but made no answer.
Aramis continued, "And yet, while I do belong
to the earth, I wish to speak of you—of our friends."
"And on my part," said d'Artagnan, "I wished to
speak of you, but I find you so completely detached from everything! To love you
cry, 'Fie! Friends are shadows! The world is a sepulcher!'"
"Alas, you will find it so yourself," said
Aramis, with a sigh.
"Well, then, let us say no more about it," said
d'Artagnan; "and let us burn this letter, which, no doubt, announces to you some
fresh infidelity of your GRISETTE or your chambermaid."
"What letter?" cried Aramis, eagerly.
"A letter which was sent to your abode in your
absence, and which was given to me for you."
"But from whom is that letter?"
"Oh, from some heartbroken waiting woman, some
desponding GRISETTE; from Madame de Chevreuse's chambermaid, perhaps, who was
obliged to return to Tours with her mistress, and who, in order to appear smart
and attractive, stole some perfumed paper, and sealed her letter with a
duchess's coronet."
"What do you say?"
"Hold! I must have lost it," said the young man
maliciously, pretending to search for it. "But fortunately the world is a
sepulcher; the men, and consequently the women, are but shadows, and love is a
sentiment to which you cry, 'Fie! Fie!'"
"d'Artagnan, d'Artagnan," cried Aramis, "you
are killing me!"
"Well, here it is at last!" said d'Artagnan, as
he drew the letter from his pocket.
Aramis made a bound, seized the letter, read
it, or rather devoured it, his countenance radiant.
"This same waiting maid seems to have an
agreeable style," said the messenger, carelessly.
"Thanks, d'Artagnan, thanks!" cried Aramis,
almost in a state of delirium. "She was forced to return to Tours; she is not
faithless; she still loves me! Come, my friend, come, let me embrace you.
Happiness almost stifles me!"
The two friends began to dance around the
venerable St. Chrysostom, kicking about famously the sheets of the thesis, which
had fallen on the floor.
At that moment Bazin entered with the spinach
and the omelet.
"Be off, you wretch!" cried Aramis, throwing
his skullcap in his face. "Return whence you came; take back those horrible
vegetables, and that poor kickshaw! Order a larded hare, a fat capon, mutton leg
dressed with garlic, and four bottles of old Burgundy."
Bazin, who looked at his master, without
comprehending the cause of this change, in a melancholy manner, allowed the
omelet to slip into the spinach, and the spinach onto the floor.
"Now this is the moment to consecrate your
existence to the King of kings," said d'Artagnan, "if you persist in offering
him a civility. NON INUTILE DESIDERIUM OBLATIONE."
"Go to the devil with your Latin. Let us drink,
my dear d'Artagnan, MORBLEU! Let us drink while the wine is fresh! Let us drink
heartily, and while we do so, tell me a little of what is going on in the world
yonder."
27 THE WIFE OF ATHOS
"We have now to search for Athos," said
d'Artagnan to the vivacious Aramis, when he had informed him of all that had
passed since their departure from the capital, and an excellent dinner had made
one of them forget his thesis and the other his fatigue.
"Do you think, then, that any harm can have
happened to him?" asked Aramis. "Athos is so cool, so brave, and handles his
sword so skillfully."
"No doubt. Nobody has a higher opinion of the
courage and skill of Athos than I have; but I like better to hear my sword clang
against lances than against staves. I fear lest Athos should have been beaten
down by serving men. Those fellows strike hard, and don't leave off in a hurry.
This is why I wish to set out again as soon as possible."
"I will try to accompany you," said Aramis,
"though I scarcely feel in a condition to mount on horseback. Yesterday I
undertook to employ that cord which you see hanging against the wall, but pain
prevented my continuing the pious exercise."
"That's the first time I ever heard of anybody
trying to cure gunshot wounds with cat-o'-nine-tails; but you were ill, and
illness renders the head weak, therefore you may be excused."
"When do you mean to set out?"
"Tomorrow at daybreak. Sleep as soundly as you
can tonight, and tomorrow, if you can, we will take our departure together."
"Till tomorrow, then," said Aramis; "for
iron-nerved as you are, you must need repose."
The next morning, when d'Artagnan entered
Aramis's chamber, he found him at the window.
"What are you looking at?" asked d'Artagnan.
"My faith! I am admiring three magnificent
horses which the stable boys are leading about. It would be a pleasure worthy of
a prince to travel upon such horses."
"Well, my dear Aramis, you may enjoy that
pleasure, for one of those three horses is yours."
"Ah, bah! Which?"
"Whichever of the three you like, I have no
preference."
"And the rich caparison, is that mine, too?"
"Without doubt."
"You laugh, d'Artagnan."
"No, I have left off laughing, now that you
speak French."
"What, those rich holsters, that velvet
housing, that saddle studded with silver-are they all for me?"
"For you and nobody else, as the horse which
paws the ground is mine, and the other horse, which is caracoling, belongs to
Athos."
"PESTE! They are three superb animals!"
"I am glad they please you."
"Why, it must have been the king who made you
such a present."
"Certainly it was not the cardinal; but don't
trouble yourself whence they come, think only that one of the three is your
property."
"I choose that which the red-headed boy is
leading."
"It is yours!"
"Good heaven! That is enough to drive away all
my pains; I could mount him with thirty balls in my body. On my soul, handsome
stirrups! HOLA, Bazin, come here this minute."
Bazin appeared on the threshold, dull and
spiritless.
"That last order is useless," interrupted
d'Artagnan; "there are loaded pistols in your holsters."
Bazin sighed.
"Come, Monsieur Bazin, make yourself easy,"
said d'Artagnan; "people of all conditions gain the kingdom of heaven."
"Monsieur was already such a good theologian,"
said Bazin, almost weeping; "he might have become a bishop, and perhaps a
cardinal."
"Well, but my poor Bazin, reflect a little. Of
what use is it to be a churchman, pray? You do not avoid going to war by that
means; you see, the cardinal is about to make the next campaign, helm on head
and partisan in hand. And Monsieur de Nogaret de la Valette, what do you say of
him? He is a cardinal likewise. Ask his lackey how often he has had to prepare
lint of him."
"Alas!" sighed Bazin. "I know it, monsieur;
everything is turned topsy-turvy in the world nowadays."
While this dialogue was going on, the two young
men and the poor lackey descended.
"Hold my stirrup, Bazin," cried Aramis; and
Aramis sprang into the saddle with his usual grace and agility, but after a few
vaults and curvets of the noble animal his rider felt his pains come on so
insupportably that he turned pale and became unsteady in his seat. D'Artagnan,
who, foreseeing such an event, had kept his eye on him, sprang toward him,
caught him in his arms, and assisted him to his chamber.
"That's all right, my dear Aramis, take care of
yourself," said he; "I will go alone in search of Athos."
"You are a man of brass," replied Aramis.
"No, I have good luck, that is all. But how do
you mean to pass your time till I come back? No more theses, no more glosses
upon the fingers or upon benedictions, hey?"
Aramis smiled. "I will make verses," said he.
"Yes, I dare say; verses perfumed with the odor
of the billet from the attendant of Madame de Chevreuse. Teach Bazin prosody;
that will console him. As to the horse, ride him a little every day, and that
will accustom you to his maneuvers."
"Oh, make yourself easy on that head," replied
Aramis. "You will find me ready to follow you."
They took leave of each other, and in ten
minutes, after having commended his friend to the cares of the hostess and
Bazin, d'Artagnan was trotting along in the direction of Amiens.
How was he going to find Athos? Should he find
him at all? The position in which he had left him was critical. He probably had
succumbed. This idea, while darkening his brow, drew several sighs from him, and
caused him to formulate to himself a few vows of vengeance. Of all his friends,
Athos was the eldest, and the least resembling him in appearance, in his tastes
and sympathies.
Yet he entertained a marked preference for this
gentleman. The noble and distinguished air of Athos, those flashes of greatness
which from time to time broke out from the shade in which he voluntarily kept
himself, that unalterable equality of temper which made him the most pleasant
companion in the world, that forced and cynical gaiety, that bravery which might
have been termed blind if it had not been the result of the rarest coolness—such
qualities attracted more than the esteem, more than the friendship of
d'Artagnan; they attracted his admiration.
Indeed, when placed beside M. de Treville, the
elegant and noble courtier, Athos in his most cheerful days might advantageously
sustain a comparison. He was of middle height; but his person was so admirably
shaped and so well proportioned that more than once in his struggles with
Porthos he had overcome the giant whose physical strength was proverbial among
the Musketeers. His head, with piercing eyes, a straight nose, a chin cut like
that of Brutus, had altogether an indefinable character of grandeur and grace.
His hands, of which he took little care, were the despair of Aramis, who
cultivated his with almond paste and perfumed oil. The sound of his voice was at
once penetrating and melodious; and then, that which was inconceivable in Athos,
who was always retiring, was that delicate knowledge of the world and of the
usages of the most brilliant society—those manners of a high degree which
appeared, as if unconsciously to himself, in his least actions.
If a repast were on foot, Athos presided over
it better than any other, placing every guest exactly in the rank which his
ancestors had earned for him or that he had made for himself. If a question in
heraldry were started, Athos knew all the noble families of the kingdom, their
genealogy, their alliances, their coats of arms, and the origin of them.
Etiquette had no minutiae unknown to him. He knew what were the rights of the
great land owners. He was profoundly versed in hunting and falconry, and had one
day when conversing on this great art astonished even Louis XIII himself, who
took a pride in being considered a past master therein.
Like all the great nobles of that period, Athos
rode and fenced to perfection. But still further, his education had been so
little neglected, even with respect to scholastic studies, so rare at this time
among gentlemen, that he smiled at the scraps of Latin which Aramis sported and
which Porthos pretended to understand. Two or three times, even, to the great
astonishment of his friends, he had, when Aramis allowed some rudimental error
to escape him, replaced a verb in its right tense and a noun in its case.
Besides, his probity was irreproachable, in an age in which soldiers compromised
so easily with their religion and their consciences, lovers with the rigorous
delicacy of our era, and the poor with God's Seventh Commandment. This Athos,
then, was a very extraordinary man.
And yet this nature so distinguished, this
creature so beautiful, this essence so fine, was seen to turn insensibly toward
material life, as old men turn toward physical and moral imbecility. Athos, in
his hours of gloom—and these hours were frequent—was extinguished as to the
whole of the luminous portion of him, and his brilliant side disappeared as into
profound darkness.
Then the demigod vanished; he remained scarcely
a man. His head hanging down, his eye dull, his speech slow and painful, Athos
would look for hours together at his bottle, his glass, or at Grimaud, who,
accustomed to obey him by signs, read in the faint glance of his master his
least desire, and satisfied it immediately. If the four friends were assembled
at one of these moments, a word, thrown forth occasionally with a violent
effort, was the share Athos furnished to the conversation. In exchange for his
silence Athos drank enough for four, and without appearing to be otherwise
affected by wine than by a more marked constriction of the brow and by a deeper
sadness.
D'Artagnan, whose inquiring disposition we are
acquainted with, had not—whatever interest he had in satisfying his curiosity on
this subject—been able to assign any cause for these fits of for the periods of
their recurrence. Athos never received any letters; Athos never had concerns
which all his friends did not know.
It could not be said that it was wine which
produced this sadness; for in truth he only drank to combat this sadness, which
wine however, as we have said, rendered still darker. This excess of bilious
humor could not be attributed to play; for unlike Porthos, who accompanied the
variations of chance with songs or oaths, Athos when he won remained as unmoved
as when he lost. He had been known, in the circle of the Musketeers, to win in
one night three thousand pistoles; to lose them even to the gold-embroidered
belt for gala days, win all this again with the addition of a hundred louis,
without his beautiful eyebrow being heightened or lowered half a line, without
his hands losing their pearly hue, without his conversation, which was cheerful
that evening, ceasing to be calm and agreeable.
Neither was it, as with our neighbors, the
English, an atmospheric influence which darkened his countenance; for the
sadness generally became more intense toward the fine season of the year. June
and July were the terrible months with Athos.
For the present he had no anxiety. He shrugged
his shoulders when people spoke of the future. His secret, then, was in the
past, as had often been vaguely said to d'Artagnan.
This mysterious shade, spread over his whole
person, rendered still more interesting the man whose eyes or mouth, even in the
most complete intoxication, had never revealed anything, however skillfully
questions had been put to him.
"Well," thought d'Artagnan, "poor Athos is
perhaps at this moment dead, and dead by my fault—for it was I who dragged him
into this affair, of which he did not know the origin, of which he is ignorant
of the result, and from which he can derive no advantage."
"Without reckoning, monsieur," added Planchet
to his master's audibly expressed reflections, "that we perhaps owe our lives to
him. Do you remember how he cried, 'On, d'Artagnan, on, I am taken'? And when he
had discharged his two pistols, what a terrible noise he made with his sword!
One might have said that twenty men, or rather twenty mad devils, were
fighting."
These words redoubled the eagerness of
d'Artagnan, who urged his horse, though he stood in need of no incitement, and
they proceeded at a rapid pace. About eleven o'clock in the morning they
perceived Ameins, and at half past eleven they were at the door of the cursed
inn.
D'Artagnan had often meditated against the
perfidious host one of those hearty vengeances which offer consolation while
they are hoped for. He entered the hostelry with his hat pulled over his eyes,
his left hand on the pommel of the sword, and cracking his whip with his right
hand.
"Do you remember me?" said he to the host, who
advanced to greet him.
"I have not that honor, monseigneur," replied
the latter, his eyes dazzled by the brilliant style in which d'Artagnan
traveled.
"What, you don't know me?"
"No, monseigneur."
"Well, two words will refresh your memory. What
have you done with that gentleman against whom you had the audacity, about
twelve days ago, to make an accusation of passing false money?"
The host became as pale as death; for
d'Artagnan had assumed a threatening attitude, and Planchet modeled himself
after his master.
"Ah, monseigneur, do not mention it!" cried the
host, in the most pitiable voice imaginable. "Ah, monseigneur, how dearly have I
paid for that fault, unhappy wretch as I am!"
"That gentleman, I say, what has become of
him?"
"Deign to listen to me, monseigneur, and be
merciful! Sit down, in mercy!"
D'Artagnan, mute with anger and anxiety, took a
seat in the threatening attitude of a judge. Planchet glared fiercely over the
back of his armchair.
"Here is the story, monseigneur," resumed the
trembling host; "for I now recollect you. It was you who rode off at the moment
I had that unfortunate difference with the gentleman you speak of."
"Yes, it was I; so you may plainly perceive
that you have no mercy to expect if you do not tell me the whole truth."
"Condescend to listen to me, and you shall know
all."
"I listen."
"I had been warned by the authorities that a
celebrated coiner of bad money would arrive at my inn, with several of his
companions, all disguised as Guards or Musketeers. Monseigneur, I was furnished
with a description of your horses, your lackeys, your countenances—nothing was
omitted."
"Go on, go on!" said d'Artagnan, who quickly
understood whence such an exact description had come.
"I took then, in conformity with the orders of
the authorities, who sent me a reinforcement of six men, such measures as I
thought necessary to get possession of the persons of the pretended coiners."
"Again!" said d'Artagnan, whose ears chafed
terribly under the repetition of this word COINERs.
"Pardon me, monseigneur, for saying such
things, but they form my excuse. The authorities had terrified me, and you know
that an innkeeper must keep on good terms with the authorities."
"But once again, that gentleman—where is he?
What has become of him? Is he dead? Is he living?"
"Patience, monseigneur, we are coming to it.
There happened then that which you know, and of which your precipitate
departure," added the host, with an acuteness that did not escape d'Artagnan,
"appeared to authorize the issue. That gentleman, your friend, defended himself
desperately. His lackey, who, by an unforeseen piece of ill luck, had quarreled
with the officers, disguised as stable lads—"
"Miserable scoundrel!" cried d'Artagnan, "you
were all in the plot, then! And I really don't know what prevents me from
exterminating you all."
"Alas, monseigneur, we were not in the plot, as
you will soon see. Monsieur your friend (pardon for not calling him by the
honorable name which no doubt he bears, but we do not know that name), Monsieur
your friend, having disabled two men with his pistols, retreated fighting with
his sword, with which he disabled one of my men, and stunned me with a blow of
the flat side of it."
"You villain, will you finish?" cried
d'Artagnan, "Athos—what has become of Athos?"
"While fighting and retreating, as I have told
Monseigneur, he found the door of the cellar stairs behind him, and as the door
was open, he took out the key, and barricaded himself inside. As we were sure of
finding him there, we left him alone."
"Yes," said d'Artagnan, "you did not really
wish to kill; you only wished to imprison him."
"Good God! To imprison him, monseigneur? Why,
he imprisoned himself, I swear to you he did. In the first place he had made
rough work of it; one man was killed on the spot, and two others were severely
wounded. The dead man and the two wounded were carried off by their comrades,
and I have heard nothing of either of them since. As for myself, as soon as I
recovered my senses I went to Monsieur the Governor, to whom I related all that
had passed, and asked, what I should do with my prisoner. Monsieur the Governor
was all astonishment. He told me he knew nothing about the matter, that the
orders I had received did not come from him, and that if I had the audacity to
mention his name as being concerned in this disturbance he would have me hanged.
It appears that I had made a mistake, monsieur, that I had arrested the wrong
person, and that he whom I ought to have arrested had escaped."
"But Athos!" cried d'Artagnan, whose impatience
was increased by the disregard of the authorities, "Athos, where is he?"
"As I was anxious to repair the wrongs I had
done the prisoner," resumed the innkeeper, "I took my way straight to the cellar
in order to set him at liberty. Ah, monsieur, he was no longer a man, he was a
devil! To my offer of liberty, he replied that it was nothing but a snare, and
that before he came out he intended to impose his own conditions. I told him
very humbly—for I could not conceal from myself the scrape I had got into by
laying hands on one of his Majesty's Musketeers—I told him I was quite ready to
submit to his conditions.
"'In the first place,' said he, 'I wish my
lackey placed with me, fully armed.' We hastened to obey this order; for you
will please to understand, monsieur, we were disposed to do everything your
friend could desire. Monsieur Grimaud (he told us his name, although he does not
talk much)—Monsieur Grimaud, then, went down to the cellar, wounded as he was;
then his master, having admitted him, barricaded the door afresh, and ordered us
to remain quietly in our own bar."
"But where is Athos now?" cried d'Artagnan.
"Where is Athos?"
"In the cellar, monsieur."
"What, you scoundrel! Have you kept him in the
cellar all this time?"
"Merciful heaven! No, monsieur! We keep him in
the cellar! You do not know what he is about in the cellar. Ah! If you could but
persuade him to come out, monsieur, I should owe you the gratitude of my whole
life; I should adore you as my patron saint!"
"Then he is there? I shall find him there?"
"Without doubt you will, monsieur; he persists
in remaining there. We every day pass through the air hole some bread at the end
of a fork, and some meat when he asks for it; but alas! It is not of bread and
meat of which he makes the greatest consumption. I once endeavored to go down
with two of my servants; but he flew into terrible rage. I heard the noise he
made in loading his pistols, and his servant in loading his musketoon. Then,
when we asked them what were their intentions, the master replied that he had
forty charges to fire, and that he and his lackey would fire to the last one
before he would allow a single soul of us to set foot in the cellar. Upon this I
went and complained to the governor, who replied that I only had what I
deserved, and that it would teach me to insult honorable gentlemen who took up
their abode in my house."
"So that since that time—" replied d'Artagnan,
totally unable to refrain from laughing at the pitiable face of the host.
"So from that time, monsieur," continued the
latter, "we have led the most miserable life imaginable; for you must know,
monsieur, that all our provisions are in the cellar. There is our wine in
bottles, and our wine in casks; the beer, the oil, and the spices, the bacon,
and sausages. And as we are prevented from going down there, we are forced to
refuse food and drink to the travelers who come to the house; so that our
hostelry is daily going to ruin. If your friend remains another week in my
cellar I shall be a ruined man."
"And not more than justice, either, you ass!
Could you not perceive by our appearance that we were people of quality, and not
coiners—say?"
"Yes, monsieur, you are right," said the host.
"But, hark, hark! There he is!"
"Somebody has disturbed him, without doubt,"
said d'Artagnan.
"But he must be disturbed," cried the host;
"Here are two English gentlemen just arrived."
"Well?"
"Well, the English like good wine, as you may
know, monsieur; these have asked for the best. My wife has perhaps requested
permission of Monsieur Athos to go into the cellar to satisfy these gentlemen;
and he, as usual, has refused. Ah, good heaven! There is the hullabaloo louder
than ever!"
D'Artagnan, in fact, heard a great noise on the
side next the cellar. He rose, and preceded by the host wringing his hands, and
followed by Planchet with his musketoon ready for use, he approached the scene
of action.
The two gentlemen were exasperated; they had
had a long ride, and were dying with hunger and thirst.
"But this is tyranny!" cried one of them, in
very good French, though with a foreign accent, "that this madman will not allow
these good people access to their own wine! Nonsense, let us break open the
door, and if he is too far gone in his madness, well, we will kill him!"
"Softly, gentlemen!" said d'Artagnan, drawing
his pistols from his belt, "you will kill nobody, if you please!"
"Good, good!" cried the calm voice of Athos,
from the other side of the door, "let them just come in, these devourers of
little children, and we shall see!"
Brave as they appeared to be, the two English
gentlemen looked at each other hesitatingly. One might have thought there was in
that cellar one of those famished ogres—the gigantic heroes of popular legends,
into whose cavern nobody could force their way with impunity.
There was a moment of silence; but at length
the two Englishmen felt ashamed to draw back, and the angrier one descended the
five or six steps which led to the cellar, and gave a kick against the door
enough to split a wall.
"Planchet," said d'Artagnan, cocking his
pistols, "I will take charge of the one at the top; you look to the one below.
Ah, gentlemen, you want battle; and you shall have it."
"Good God!" cried the hollow voice of Athos, "I
can hear d'Artagnan, I think."
"Yes," cried d'Artagnan, raising his voice in
turn, "I am here, my friend."
"Ah, good, then," replied Athos, "we will teach
them, these door breakers!"
The gentlemen had drawn their swords, but they
found themselves taken between two fires. They still hesitated an instant; but,
as before, pride prevailed, and a second kick split the door from bottom to top.
"Stand on one side, d'Artagnan, stand on one
side," cried Athos. "I am going to fire!"
"Gentlemen," exclaimed d'Artagnan, whom
reflection never abandoned, "gentlemen, think of what you are about. Patience,
Athos! You are running your heads into a very silly affair; you will be riddled.
My lackey and I will have three shots at you, and you will get as many from the
cellar. You will then have our swords, with which, I can assure you, my friend
and I can play tolerably well. Let me conduct your business and my own. You
shall soon have something to drink; I give you my word."
"If there is any left," grumbled the jeering
voice of Athos.
The host felt a cold sweat creep down his back.
"How! 'If there is any left!'" murmured he.
"What the devil! There must be plenty left,"
replied d'Artagnan. "Be satisfied of that; these two cannot have drunk all the
cellar. Gentlemen, return your swords to their scabbards."
"Well, provided you replace your pistols in
your belt."
"Willingly."
And d'Artagnan set the example. Then, turning
toward Planchet, he made him a sign to uncock his musketoon.
The Englishmen, convinced of these peaceful
proceedings, sheathed their swords grumblingly. The history of Athos's
imprisonment was then related to them; and as they were really gentlemen, they
pronounced the host in the wrong.
"Now, gentlemen," said d'Artagnan, "go up to
your room again; and in ten minutes, I will answer for it, you shall have all
you desire."
The Englishmen bowed and went upstairs.
"Now I am alone, my dear Athos," said
d'Artagnan; "open the door, I beg of you."
"Instantly," said Athos.
Then was heard a great noise of fagots being
removed and of the groaning of posts; these were the counterscarps and bastions
of Athos, which the besieged himself demolished.
An instant after, the broken door was removed,
and the pale face of Athos appeared, who with a rapid glance took a survey of
the surroundings.
D'Artagnan threw himself on his neck and
embraced him tenderly. He then tried to draw him from his moist abode, but to
his surprise he perceived that Athos staggered.
"You are wounded," said he.
"I! Not at all. I am dead drunk, that's all,
and never did a man more strongly set about getting so. By the Lord, my good
host! I must at least have drunk for my part a hundred and fifty bottles."
"Mercy!" cried the host, "if the lackey has
drunk only half as much as the master, I am a ruined man."
"Grimaud is a well-bred lackey. He would never
think of faring in the same manner as his master; he only drank from the cask.
Hark! I don't think he put the faucet in again. Do you hear it? It is running
now."
D'Artagnan burst into a laugh which changed the
shiver of the host into a burning fever.
In the meantime, Grimaud appeared in his turn
behind his master, with the musketoon on his shoulder, and his head shaking.
Like one of those drunken satyrs in the pictures of Rubens. He was moistened
before and behind with a greasy liquid which the host recognized as his best
olive oil.
The four crossed the public room and proceeded
to take possession of the best apartment in the house, which d'Artagnan occupied
with authority.
In the meantime the host and his wife hurried
down with lamps into the cellar, which had so long been interdicted to them and
where a frightful spectacle awaited them.
Beyond the fortifications through which Athos
had made a breach in order to get out, and which were composed of fagots,
planks, and empty casks, heaped up according to all the rules of the strategic
art, they found, swimming in puddles of oil and wine, the bones and fragments of
all the hams they had eaten; while a heap of broken bottles filled the whole
left-hand corner of the cellar, and a tun, the cock of which was left running,
was yielding, by this means, the last drop of its blood. "The image of
devastation and death," as the ancient poet says, "reigned as over a field of
battle."
Of fifty large sausages, suspended from the
joists, scarcely ten remained.
Then the lamentations of the host and hostess
pierced the vault of the cellar. D'Artagnan himself was moved by them. Athos did
not even turn his head.
To grief succeeded rage. The host armed himself
with a spit, and rushed into the chamber occupied by the two friends.
"Some wine!" said Athos, on perceiving the
host.
"Some wine!" cried the stupefied host, "some
wine? Why you have drunk more than a hundred pistoles' worth! I am a ruined man,
lost, destroyed!"
"Bah," said Athos, "we were always dry."
"If you had been contented with drinking, well
and good; but you have broken all the bottles."
"You pushed me upon a heap which rolled down.
That was your fault."
"All my oil is lost!"
"Oil is a sovereign balm for wounds; and my
poor Grimaud here was obliged to dress those you had inflicted on him."
"All my sausages are gnawed!"
"There is an enormous quantity of rats in that
cellar."
"You shall pay me for all this," cried the
exasperated host.
"Triple ass!" said Athos, rising; but he sank
down again immediately. He had tried his strength to the utmost. d'Artagnan came
to his relief with his whip in his hand.
The host drew back and burst into tears.
"This will teach you," said d'Artagnan, "to
treat the guests God sends you in a more courteous fashion."
"God? Say the devil!"
"My dear friend," said d'Artagnan, "if you
annoy us in this manner we will all four go and shut ourselves up in your
cellar, and we will see if the mischief is as great as you say."
"Oh, gentlemen," said the host, "I have been
wrong. I confess it, but pardon to every sin! You are gentlemen, and I am a poor
innkeeper. You will have pity on me."
"Ah, if you speak in that way," said Athos,
"you will break my heart, and the tears will flow from my eyes as the wine
flowed from the cask. We are not such devils as we appear to be. Come hither,
and let us talk."
The host approached with hesitation.
"Come hither, I say, and don't be afraid,"
continued Athos. "At the very moment when I was about to pay you, I had placed
my purse on the table."
"Yes, monsieur."
"That purse contained sixty pistoles; where is
it?"
"Deposited with the justice; they said it was
bad money."
"Very well; get me my purse back and keep the
sixty pistoles."
"But Monseigneur knows very well that justice
never lets go that which it once lays hold of. If it were bad money, there might
be some hopes; but unfortunately, those were all good pieces."
"Manage the matter as well as you can, my good
man; it does not concern me, the more so as I have not a livre left."
"Come," said d'Artagnan, "let us inquire
further. Athos's horse, where is that?"
"In the stable."
"How much is it worth?"
"Fifty pistoles at most."
"It's worth eighty. Take it, and there ends the
matter."
"What," cried Athos, "are you selling my
horse—my Bajazet? And pray upon what shall I make my campaign; upon Grimaud?"
"I have brought you another," said d'Artagnan.
"Another?"
"And a magnificent one!" cried the host.
"Well, since there is another finer and
younger, why, you may take the old one; and let us drink."
"What?" asked the host, quite cheerful again.
"Some of that at the bottom, near the laths.
There are twenty-five bottles of it left; all the rest were broken by my fall.
Bring six of them."
"Why, this man is a cask!" said the host,
aside. "If he only remains here a fortnight, and pays for what he drinks, I
shall soon re-establish my business."
"And don't forget," said d'Artagnan, "to bring
up four bottles of the same sort for the two English gentlemen."
"And now," said Athos, "while they bring the
wine, tell me, d'Artagnan, what has become of the others, come!"
D'Artagnan related how he had found Porthos in
bed with a strained knee, and Aramis at a table between two theologians. As he
finished, the host entered with the wine ordered and a ham which, fortunately
for him, had been left out of the cellar.
"That's well!" said Athos, filling his glass
and that of his friend; "here's to Porthos and Aramis! But you, d'Artagnan, what
is the matter with you, and what has happened to you personally? You have a sad
air."
"Alas," said d'Artagnan, "it is because I am
the most unfortunate."
"Tell me."
"Presently," said d'Artagnan.
"Presently! And why presently? Because you
think I am drunk? d'Artagnan, remember this! My ideas are never so clear as when
I have had plenty of wine. Speak, then, I am all ears."
D'Artagnan related his adventure with Mme.
Bonacieux. Athos listened to him without a frown; and when he had finished,
said, "Trifles, only trifles!" That was his favorite word.
"You always say TRIFLES, my dear Athos!" said
d'Artagnan, "and that come very ill from you, who have never loved."
The drink-deadened eye of Athos flashed out,
but only for a moment; it became as dull and vacant as before.
"That's true," said he, quietly, "for my part I
have never loved."
"Acknowledge, then, you stony heart," said
d'Artagnan, "that you are wrong to be so hard upon us tender hearts."
"Tender hearts! Pierced hearts!" said Athos.
"What do you say?"
"I say that love is a lottery in which he who
wins, wins death! You are very fortunate to have lost, believe me, my dear
d'Artagnan. And if I have any counsel to give, it is, always lose!"
"She seemed to love me so!"
"She SEEMED, did she?"
"Oh, she DID love me!"
"You child, why, there is not a man who has not
believed, as you do, that his mistress loved him, and there lives not a man who
has not been deceived by his mistress."
"Except you, Athos, who never had one."
"That's true," said Athos, after a moment's
silence, "that's true! I never had one! Let us drink!"
"But then, philosopher that you are," said
d'Artagnan, "instruct me, support me. I stand in need of being taught and
consoled."
"Consoled for what?"
"For my misfortune."
"Your misfortune is laughable," said Athos,
shrugging his shoulders; "I should like to know what you would say if I were to
relate to you a real tale of love!"
"Which has happened to you?"
"Or one of my friends, what matters?"
"Tell it, Athos, tell it."
"Better if I drink."
"Drink and relate, then."
"Not a bad idea!" said Athos, emptying and
refilling his glass. "The two things agree marvelously well."
"I am all attention," said d'Artagnan.
Athos collected himself, and in proportion as
he did so, d'Artagnan saw that he became pale. He was at that period of
intoxication in which vulgar drinkers fall on the floor and go to sleep. He kept
himself upright and dreamed, without sleeping. This somnambulism of drunkenness
had something frightful in it.
"You particularly wish it?" asked he.
"I pray for it," said d'Artagnan.
"Be it then as you desire. One of my
friends—one of my friends, please to observe, not myself," said Athos,
interrupting himself with a melancholy smile, "one of the counts of my
province—that is to say, of Berry—noble as a Dandolo or a Montmorency, at
twenty-five years of age fell in love with a girl of sixteen, beautiful as fancy
can paint. Through the ingenuousness of her age beamed an ardent mind, not of
the woman, but of the poet. She did not please; she intoxicated. She lived in a
small town with her brother, who was a curate. Both had recently come into the
country. They came nobody knew whence; but when seeing her so lovely and her
brother so pious, nobody thought of asking whence they came. They were said,
however, to be of good extraction. My friend, who was seigneur of the country,
might have seduced her, or taken her by force, at his will—for he was master.
Who would have come to the assistance of two strangers, two unknown persons?
Unfortunately he was an honorable man; he married her. The fool! The ass! The
idiot!"
"How so, if he love her?" asked d'Artagnan.
"Wait," said Athos. "He took her to his
chateau, and made her the first lady in the province; and in justice it must be
allowed that she supported her rank becomingly."
"Well?" asked d'Artagnan.
"Well, one day when she was hunting with her
husband," continued Athos, in a low voice, and speaking very quickly, "she fell
from her horse and fainted. The count flew to her to help, and as she appeared
to be oppressed by her clothes, he ripped them open with his ponaird, and in so
doing laid bare her shoulder. d'Artagnan," said Athos, with a maniacal burst of
laughter, "guess what she had on her shoulder."
"How can I tell?" said d'Artagnan.
"A FLEUR-DE-LIS," said Athos. "She was
branded."
Athos emptied at a single draught the glass he
held in his hand.
"Horror!" cried d'Artagnan. "What do you tell
me?"
"Truth, my friend. The angel was a demon; the
poor young girl had stolen the sacred vessels from a church."
"And what did the count do?"
"The count was of the highest nobility. He had
on his estates the rights of high and low tribunals. He tore the dress of the
countess to pieces; he tied her hands behind her, and hanged her on a tree."
"Heavens, Athos, a murder?" cried d'Artagnan.
"No less," said Athos, as pale as a corpse.
"But methinks I need wine!" and he seized by the neck the last bottle that was
left, put it to his mouth, and emptied it at a single draught, as he would have
emptied an ordinary glass.
Then he let his head sink upon his two hands,
while d'Artagnan stood before him, stupefied.
"That has cured me of beautiful, poetical, and
loving women," said Athos, after a considerable pause, raising his head, and
forgetting to continue the fiction of the count. "God grant you as much! Let us
drink."
"Then she is dead?" stammered d'Artagnan.
"PARBLEU!" said Athos. "But hold out your
glass. Some ham, my boy, or we can't drink."
"And her brother?" added d'Artagnan, timidly.
"Her brother?" replied Athos.
"Yes, the priest."
"Oh, I inquired after him for the purpose of
hanging him likewise; but he was beforehand with me, he had quit the curacy the
night before."
"Was it ever known who this miserable fellow
was?"
"He was doubtless the first lover and
accomplice of the fair lady. A worthy man, who had pretended to be a curate for
the purpose of getting his mistress married, and securing her a position. He has
been hanged and quartered, I hope."
"My God, my God!" cried d'Artagnan, quite
stunned by the relation of this horrible adventure.
"Taste some of this ham, d'Artagnan; it is
exquisite," said Athos, cutting a slice, which he placed on the young man's
plate.
"What a pity it is there were only four like
this in the cellar. I could have drunk fifty bottles more."
D'Artagnan could no longer endure this
conversation, which had made him bewildered. Allowing his head to sink upon his
two hands, he pretended to sleep.
"These young fellows can none of them drink,"
said Athos, looking at him with pity, "and yet this is one of the best!"
28 THE RETURN
D'Artagnan was astounded by the terrible
confidence of Athos; yet many things appeared very obscure to him in this half
revelation. In the first place it had been made by a man quite drunk to one who
was half drunk; and yet, in spite of the incertainty which the vapor of three or
four bottles of Burgundy carries with it to the brain, d'Artagnan, when awaking
on the following morning, had all the words of Athos as present to his memory as
if they then fell from his mouth—they had been so impressed upon his mind. All
this doubt only gave rise to a more lively desire of arriving at a certainty,
and he went into his friend's chamber with a fixed determination of renewing the
conversation of the preceding evening; but he found Athos quite himself
again—that is to say, the most shrewd and impenetrable of men. Besides which,
the Musketeer, after having exchanged a hearty shake of the hand with him,
broached the matter first.
"I was pretty drunk yesterday, d'Artagnan,"
said he, "I can tell that by my tongue, which was swollen and hot this morning,
and by my pulse, which was very tremulous. I wager that I uttered a thousand
extravagances."
While saying this he looked at his friend with
an earnestness that embarrassed him.
"No," replied d'Artagnan, "if I recollect well
what you said, it was nothing out of the common way."
"Ah, you surprise me. I thought I had told you
a most lamentable story." And he looked at the young man as if he would read the
bottom of his heart.
"My faith," said d'Artagnan, "it appears that I
was more drunk than you, since I remember nothing of the kind."
Athos did not trust this reply, and he resumed;
"you cannot have failed to remark, my dear friend, that everyone has his
particular kind of drunkenness, sad or gay. My drunkenness is always sad, and
when I am thoroughly drunk my mania is to relate all the lugubrious stories
which my foolish nurse inculcated into my brain. That is my failing—a capital
failing, I admit; but with that exception, I am a good drinker."
Athos spoke this in so natural a manner that
d'Artagnan was shaken in his conviction.
"It is that, then," replied the young man,
anxious to find out the truth, "it is that, then, I remember as we remember a
dream. We were speaking of hanging."
"Ah, you see how it is," said Athos, becoming
still paler, but yet attempting to laugh; "I was sure it was so—the hanging of
people is my nightmare."
"Yes, yes," replied d'Artagnan. "I remember
now; yes, it was about—stop a minute—yes, it was about a woman."
"That's it," replied Athos, becoming almost
livid; "that is my grand story of the fair lady, and when I relate that, I must
be very drunk."
"Yes, that was it," said d'Artagnan, "the story
of a tall, fair lady, with blue eyes."
"Yes, who was hanged."
"By her husband, who was a nobleman of your
acquaintance," continued d'Artagnan, looking intently at Athos.
"Well, you see how a man may compromise himself
when he does not know what he says," replied Athos, shrugging his shoulders as
if he thought himself an object of pity. "I certainly never will get drunk
again, d'Artagnan; it is too bad a habit."
D'Artagnan remained silent; and then changing
the conversation all at once, Athos said:
"By the by, I thank you for the horse you have
brought me."
"Is it to your mind?" asked d'Artagnan.
"Yes; but it is not a horse for hard work."
"You are mistaken; I rode him nearly ten
leagues in less than an hour and a half, and he appeared no more distressed than
if he had only made the tour of the Place St. Sulpice."
"Ah, you begin to awaken my regret."
"Regret?"
"Yes; I have parted with him."
"How?"
"Why, here is the simple fact. This morning I
awoke at six o'clock. You were still fast asleep, and I did not know what to do
with myself; I was still stupid from our yesterday's debauch. As I came into the
public room, I saw one of our Englishman bargaining with a dealer for a horse,
his own having died yesterday from bleeding. I drew near, and found he was
bidding a hundred pistoles for a chestnut nag. 'PARDIEU,' said I, 'my good
gentleman, I have a horse to sell, too.' 'Ay, and a very fine one! I saw him
yesterday; your friend's lackey was leading him.' 'Do you think he is worth a
hundred pistoles?' 'Yes! Will you sell him to me for that sum?' 'No; but I will
play for him.' 'What?' 'At dice.' No sooner said than done, and I lost the
horse. Ah, ah! But please to observe I won back the equipage," cried Athos.
D'Artagnan looked much disconcerted.
"This vexes you?" said Athos.
"Well, I must confess it does," replied
d'Artagnan. "That horse was to have identified us in the day of battle. It was a
pledge, a remembrance. Athos, you have done wrong."
"But, my dear friend, put yourself in my
place," replied the Musketeer. "I was hipped to death; and still further, upon
my honor, I don't like English horses. If it is only to be recognized, why the
saddle will suffice for that; it is quite remarkable enough. As to the horse, we
can easily find some excuse for its disappearance. Why the devil! A horse is
mortal; suppose mine had had the glanders or the farcy?"
D'Artagnan did not smile.
"It vexes me greatly," continued Athos, "that
you attach so much importance to these animals, for I am not yet at the end of
my story."
"What else have you done."
"After having lost my own horse, nine against
ten—see how near—I formed an idea of staking yours."
"Yes; but you stopped at the idea, I hope?"
"No; for I put it in execution that very
minute."
"And the consequence?" said d'Artagnan, in
great anxiety.
"I threw, and I lost."
"What, my horse?"
"Your horse, seven against eight; a point
short—you know the proverb."
"Athos, you are not in your right senses, I
swear."
"My dear lad, that was yesterday, when I was
telling you silly stories, it was proper to tell me that, and not this morning.
I lost him then, with all his appointments and furniture."
"Really, this is frightful."
"Stop a minute; you don't know all yet. I
should make an excellent gambler if I were not too hot-headed; but I was
hot-headed, just as if I had been drinking. Well, I was not hot-headed then—"
"Well, but what else could you play for? You
had nothing left?"
"Oh, yes, my friend; there was still that
diamond left which sparkles on your finger, and which I had observed yesterday."
"This diamond!" said d'Artagnan, placing his
hand eagerly on his ring.
"And as I am a connoisseur in such things,
having had a few of my own once, I estimated it at a thousand pistoles."
"I hope," said d'Artagnan, half dead with
fright, "you made no mention of my diamond?"
"On the contrary, my dear friend, this diamond
became our only resource; with it I might regain our horses and their harnesses,
and even money to pay our expenses on the road."
"Athos, you make me tremble!" cried d'Artagnan.
"I mentioned your diamond then to my adversary,
who had likewise remarked it. What the devil, my dear, do you think you can wear
a star from heaven on your finger, and nobody observe it? Impossible!"
"Go on, go on, my dear fellow!" said
d'Artagnan; "for upon my honor, you will kill me with your indifference."
"We divided, then, this diamond into ten parts
of a hundred pistoles each."
"You are laughing at me, and want to try me!"
said d'Artagnan, whom anger began to take by the hair, as Minerva takes
Achilles, in the ILLIAD.
"No, I do not jest, MORDIEU! I should like to
have seen you in my place! I had been fifteen days without seeing a human face,
and had been left to brutalize myself in the company of bottles."
"That was no reason for staking my diamond!"
replied d'Artagnan, closing his hand with a nervous spasm.
"Hear the end. Ten parts of a hundred pistoles
each, in ten throws, without revenge; in thirteen throws I had lost all—in
thirteen throws. The number thirteen was always fatal to me; it was on the
thirteenth of July that—"
"VENTREBLEU!" cried d'Artagnan, rising from the
table, the story of the present day making him forget that of the preceding one.
"Patience!" said Athos; "I had a plan. The
Englishman was an original; I had seen him conversing that morning with Grimaud,
and Grimaud had told me that he had made him proposals to enter into his
service. I staked Grimaud, the silent Grimaud, divided into ten portions."
"Well, what next?" said d'Artagnan, laughing in
spite of himself.
"Grimaud himself, understand; and with the ten
parts of Grimaud, which are not worth a ducatoon, I regained the diamond. Tell
me, now, if persistence is not a virtue?"
"My faith! But this is droll," cried
d'Artagnan, consoled, and holding his sides with laughter.
"You may guess, finding the luck turned, that I
again staked the diamond."
"The devil!" said d'Artagnan, becoming angry
again.
"I won back your harness, then your horse, then
my harness, then my horse, and then I lost again. In brief, I regained your
harness and then mine. That's where we are. That was a superb throw, so I left
off there."
D'Artagnan breathed as if the whole hostelry
had been removed from his breast.
"Then the diamond is safe?" said he, timidly.
"Intact, my dear friend; besides the harness of
your Bucephalus and mine."
"But what is the use of harnesses without
horses?"
"I have an idea about them."
"Athos, you make me shudder."
"Listen to me. You have not played for a long
time, d'Artagnan."
"And I have no inclination to play."
"Swear to nothing. You have not played for a
long time, I said; you ought, then, to have a good hand."
"Well, what then?"
"Well; the Englishman and his companion are
still here. I remarked that he regretted the horse furniture very much. You
appear to think much of your horse. In your place I would stake the furniture
against the horse."
"But he will not wish for only one harness."
"Stake both, PARDIEU! I am not selfish, as you
are."
"You would do so?" said d'Artagnan, undecided,
so strongly did the confidence of Athos begin to prevail, in spite of himself.
"On my honor, in one single throw."
"But having lost the horses, I am particularly
anxious to preserve the harnesses."
"Stake your diamond, then."
"This? That's another matter. Never, never!"
"The devil!" said Athos. "I would propose to
you to stake Planchet, but as that has already been done, the Englishman would
not, perhaps, be willing."
"Decidedly, my dear Athos," said d'Artagnan, "I
should like better not to risk anything."
"That's a pity," said Athos, coolly. "The
Englishman is overflowing with pistoles. Good Lord, try one throw! One throw is
soon made!"
"And if I lose?"
"You will win."
"But if I lose?"
"Well, you will surrender the harnesses."
"Have with you for one throw!" said d'Artagnan.
Athos went in quest of the Englishman, whom he
found in the stable, examining the harnesses with a greedy eye. The opportunity
was good. He proposed the conditions—the two harnesses, either against one horse
or a hundred pistoles. The Englishman calculated fast; the two harnesses were
worth three hundred pistoles. He consented.
D'Artagnan threw the dice with a trembling
hand, and turned up the number three; his paleness terrified Athos, who,
however, consented himself with saying, "That's a sad throw, comrade; you will
have the horses fully equipped, monsieur."
The Englishman, quite triumphant, did not even
give himself the trouble to shake the dice. He threw them on the table without
looking at them, so sure was he of victory; d'Artagnan turned aside to conceal
his ill humor.
"Hold, hold, hold!" said Athos, wit his quiet
tone; "that throw of the dice is extraordinary. I have not seen such a one four
times in my life. Two aces!"
The Englishman looked, and was seized with
astonishment. d'Artagnan looked, and was seized with pleasure.
"Yes," continued Athos, "four times only; once
at the house of Monsieur Crequy; another time at my own house in the country, in
my chateau at—when I had a chateau; a third time at Monsieur de Treville's where
it surprised us all; and the fourth time at a cabaret, where it fell to my lot,
and where I lost a hundred louis and a supper on it."
"Then Monsieur takes his horse back again,"
said the Englishman.
"Certainly," said d'Artagnan.
"Then there is no revenge?"
"Our conditions said, 'No revenge,' you will
please to recollect."
"That is true; the horse shall be restored to
your lackey, monsieur."
"A moment," said Athos; "with your permission,
monsieur, I wish to speak a word with my friend."
"Say on."
Athos drew d'Artagnan aside.
"Well, Tempter, what more do you want with me?"
said d'Artagnan. "You want me to throw again, do you not?"
"No, I would wish you to reflect."
"On what?"
"You mean to take your horse?"
"Without doubt."
"You are wrong, then. I would take the hundred
pistoles. You know you have staked the harnesses against the horse or a hundred
pistoles, at your choice."
"Yes."
"Well, then, I repeat, you are wrong. What is
the use of one horse for us two? I could not ride behind. We should look like
the two sons of Anmon, who had lost their brother. You cannot think of
humiliating me by prancing along by my side on that magnificent charger. For my
part, I should not hesitate a moment; I should take the hundred pistoles. We
want money for our return to Paris."
"I am much attached to that horse, Athos."
"And there again you are wrong. A horse slips
and injures a joint; a horse stumbles and breaks his knees to the bone; a horse
eats out of a manger in which a glandered horse has eaten. There is a horse,
while on the contrary, the hundred pistoles feed their master."
"But how shall we get back?"
"Upon our lackey's horses, PARDIEU. Anybody may
see by our bearing that we are people of condition."
"Pretty figures we shall cut on ponies while
Aramis and Porthos caracole on their steeds."
"Aramis! Porthos!" cried Athos, and laughed
aloud.
"What is it?" asked d'Artagnan, who did not at
all comprehend the hilarity of his friend.
"Nothing, nothing! Go on!"
"Your advice, then?"
"To take the hundred pistoles, d'Artagnan. With
the hundred pistoles we can live well to the end of the month. We have undergone
a great deal of fatigue, remember, and a little rest will do no harm."
"I rest? Oh, no, Athos. Once in Paris, I shall
prosecute my search for that unfortunate woman!"
"Well, you may be assured that your horse will
not be half so serviceable to you for that purpose as good golden louis. Take
the hundred pistoles, my friend; take the hundred pistoles!"
D'Artagnan only required one reason to be
satisfied. This last reason appeared convincing. Besides, he feared that by
resisting longer he should appear selfish in the eyes of Athos. He acquiesced,
therefore, and chose the hundred pistoles, which the Englishman paid down on the
spot.
They then determined to depart. Peace with the
landlord, in addition to Athos's old horse, cost six pistoles. D'Artagnan and
Athos took the nags of Planchet and Grimaud, and the two lackeys started on
foot, carrying the saddles on their heads.
However ill our two friends were mounted, they
were soon far in advance of their servants, and arrived at Creveccoeur. From a
distance they perceived Aramis, seated in a melancholy manner at his window,
looking out, like Sister Anne, at the dust in the horizon.
"HOLA, Aramis! What the devil are you doing
there?" cried the two friends.
"Ah, is that you, d'Artagnan, and you, Athos?"
said the young man. "I was reflecting upon the rapidity with which the blessings
of this world leave us. My English horse, which has just disappeared amid a
cloud of dust, has furnished me with a living image of the fragility of the
things of the earth. Life itself may be resolved into three words: ERAT, EST,
FUIT."
"Which means—" said d'Artagnan, who began to
suspect the truth.
"Which means that I have just been duped-sixty
louis for a horse which by the manner of his gait can do at least five leagues
an hour."
D'Artagnan and Athos laughed aloud.
"My dear d'Artagnan," said Aramis, "don't be
too angry with me, I beg. Necessity has no law; besides, I am the person
punished, as that rascally horsedealer has robbed me of fifty louis, at least.
Ah, you fellows are good managers! You ride on our lackey's horses, and have
your own gallant steeds led along carefully by hand, at short stages."
At the same instant a market cart, which some
minutes before had appeared upon the Amiens road, pulled up at the inn, and
Planchet and Grimaud came out of it with the saddles on their heads. The cart
was returning empty to Paris, and the two lackeys had agreed, for their
transport, to slake the wagoner's thirst along the route.
"What is this?" said Aramis, on seeing them
arrive. "Nothing but saddles?"
"Now do you understand?" said Athos.
"My friends, that's exactly like me! I retained
my harness by instinct. HOLA, Bazin! Bring my new saddle and carry it along with
those of these gentlemen."
"And what have you done with your
ecclesiastics?" asked d'Artagnan.
"My dear fellow, I invited them to a dinner the
next day," replied Aramis. "They have some capital wine here—please to observe
that in passing. I did my best to make them drunk. Then the curate forbade me to
quit my uniform, and the Jesuit entreated me to get him made a Musketeer."
"Without a thesis?" cried d'Artagnan, "without
a thesis? I demand the suppression of the thesis."
"Since then," continued Aramis, "I have lived
very agreeably. I have begun a poem in verses of one syllable. That is rather
difficult, but the merit in all things consists in the difficulty. The matter is
gallant. I will read you the first canto. It has four hundred lines, and lasts a
minute."
"My faith, my dear Aramis," said d'Artagnan,
who detested verses almost as much as he did Latin, "add to the merit of the
difficulty that of the brevity, and you are sure that your poem will at least
have two merits."
"You will see," continued Aramis, "that it
breathes irreproachable passion. And so, my friends, we return to Paris? Bravo!
I am ready. We are going to rejoin that good fellow, Porthos. So much the
better. You can't think how I have missed him, the great simpleton. To see him
so self-satisfied reconciles me with myself. He would not sell his horse; not
for a kingdom! I think I can see him now, mounted upon his superb animal and
seated in his handsome saddle. I am sure he will look like the Great Mogul!"
They made a halt for an hour to refresh their
horses. Aramis discharged his bill, placed Bazin in the cart with his comrades,
and they set forward to join Porthos.
They found him up, less pale than when
d'Artagnan left him after his first visit, and seated at a table on which,
though he was alone, was spread enough for four persons. This dinner consisted
of meats nicely dressed, choice wines, and superb fruit.
"Ah, PARDIEU!" said he, rising, "you come in
the nick of time, gentlemen. I was just beginning the soup, and you will dine
with me."
"Oh, oh!" said d'Artagnan, "Mousqueton has not
caught these bottles with his lasso. Besides, here is a piquant FRICANDEAU and a
fillet of beef."
"I am recruiting myself," said Porthos, "I am
recruiting myself. Nothing weakens a man more than these devilish strains. Did
you ever suffer from a strain, Athos?"
"Never! Though I remember, in our affair of the
Rue Ferou, I received a sword wound which at the end of fifteen or eighteen days
produced the same effect."
"But this dinner was not intended for you
alone, Porthos?" said Aramis.
"No," said Porthos, "I expected some gentlemen
of the neighborhood, who have just sent me word they could not come. You will
take their places and I shall not lose by the exchange. HOLA, Mousqueton, seats,
and order double the bottles!"
"Do you know what we are eating here?" said
Athos, at the end of ten minutes.
"PARDIEU!" replied d'Artagnan, "for my part, I
am eating veal garnished with shrimps and vegetables."
"And I some lamb chops," said Porthos.
"And I a plain chicken," said Aramis.
"You are all mistaken, gentlemen," answered
Athos, gravely; "you are eating horse."
"Eating what?" said d'Artagnan.
"Horse!" said Aramis, with a grimace of
disgust.
Porthos alone made no reply.
"Yes, horse. Are we not eating a horse,
Porthos? And perhaps his saddle, therewith."
"No, gentlemen, I have kept the harness," said
Porthos.
"My faith," said Aramis, "we are all alike. One
would think we had tipped the wink."
"What could I do?" said Porthos. "This horse
made my visitors ashamed of theirs, and I don't like to humiliate people."
"Then your duchess is still at the waters?"
asked d'Artagnan.
"Still," replied Porthos. "And, my faith, the
governor of the province—one of the gentlemen I expected today—seemed to have
such a wish for him, that I gave him to him."
"Gave him?" cried d'Artagnan.
"My God, yes, GAVE, that is the word," said
Porthos; "for the animal was worth at least a hundred and fifty louis, and the
stingy fellow would only give me eighty."
"Without the saddle?" said Aramis.
"Yes, without the saddle."
"You will observe, gentlemen," said Athos,
"that Porthos has made the best bargain of any of us."
And then commenced a roar of laughter in which
they all joined, to the astonishment of poor Porthos; but when he was informed
of the cause of their hilarity, he shared it vociferously according to his
custom.
"There is one comfort, we are all in cash,"
said d'Artagnan.
"Well, for my part," said Athos, "I found
Aramis's Spanish wine so good that I sent on a hamper of sixty bottles of it in
the wagon with the lackeys. That has weakened my purse."
"And I," said Aramis, "imagined that I had
given almost my last sou to the church of Montdidier and the Jesuits of Amiens,
with whom I had made engagements which I ought to have kept. I have ordered
Masses for myself, and for you, gentlemen, which will be said, gentlemen, for
which I have not the least doubt you will be marvelously benefited."
"And I," said Porthos, "do you think my strain
cost me nothing?—without reckoning Mousqueton's wound, for which I had to have
the surgeon twice a day, and who charged me double on account of that foolish
Mousqueton having allowed himself a ball in a part which people generally only
show to an apothecary; so I advised him to try never to get wounded there any
more."
"Ay, ay!" said Athos, exchanging a smile with
d'Artagnan and Aramis, "it is very clear you acted nobly with regard to the poor
lad; that is like a good master."
"In short," said Porthos, "when all my expenses
are paid, I shall have, at most, thirty crowns left."
"And I about ten pistoles," said Aramis.
"Well, then it appears that we are the
Croesuses of the society. How much have you left of your hundred pistoles,
d'Artagnan?"
"Of my hundred pistoles? Why, in the first
place I gave you fifty."
"You think so?"
"PARDIEU!"
"Ah, that is true. I recollect."
"Then I paid the host six."
"What a brute of a host! Why did you give him
six pistoles?"
"You told me to give them to him."
"It is true; I am too good-natured. In brief,
how much remains?"
"Twenty-five pistoles," said d'Artagnan.
"And I," said Athos, taking some small change
from his pocket, "I—"
"You? Nothing!"
"My faith! So little that it is not worth
reckoning with the general stock."
"Now, then, let us calculate how much we posses
in all."
"Porthos?"
"Thirty crowns."
"Aramis?"
"Ten pistoles."
"And you, d'Artagnan?"
"Twenty-five."
"That makes in all?" said Athos.
"Four hundred and seventy-five livres," said
d'Artagnan, who reckoned like Archimedes.
"On our arrival in Paris, we shall still have
four hundred, besides the harnesses," said Porthos.
"But our troop horses?" said Aramis.
"Well, of the four horses of our lackeys we
will make two for the masters, for which we will draw lots. With the four
hundred livres we will make the half of one for one of the unmounted, and then
we will give the turnings out of our pockets to d'Artagnan, who has a steady
hand, and will go and play in the first gaming house we come to. There!"
"Let us dine, then," said Porthos; "it is
getting cold."
The friends, at ease with regard to the future,
did honor to the repast, the remains of which were abandoned to Mousqueton,
Bazin, Planchet, and Grimaud.
On arriving in Paris, d'Artagnan found a letter
from M. de Treville, which informed him that, at his request, the king had
promised that he should enter the company of the Musketeers.
As this was the height of d'Artagnan's worldly
ambition—apart, be it well understood, from his desire of finding Mme.
Bonacieux—he ran, full of joy, to seek his comrades, whom he had left only half
an hour before, but whom he found very sad and deeply preoccupied. They were
assembled in council at the residence of Athos, which always indicated an event
of some gravity. M. de Treville had intimated to them his Majesty's fixed
intention to open the campaign on the first of May, and they must immediately
prepare their outfits.
The four philosophers looked at one another in
a state of bewilderment. M. de Treville never jested in matters relating to
discipline.
"And what do you reckon your outfit will cost?"
said d'Artagnan.
"Oh, we can scarcely say. We have made our
calculations with Spartan economy, and we each require fifteen hundred livres."
"Four times fifteen makes sixty—six thousand
livres," said Athos.
"It seems to me," said d'Artagnan, "with a
thousand livres each—I do not speak as a Spartan, but as a procurator—"
This word PROCURATOR roused Porthos. "Stop,"
said he, "I have an idea."
"Well, that's something, for I have not the
shadow of one," said Athos coolly; "but as to d'Artagnan, gentlemen, the idea of
belonging to OURS has driven him out of his senses. A thousand livres! For my
part, I declare I want two thousand."
"Four times two makes eight," then said Aramis;
"it is eight thousand that we want to complete our outfits, toward which, it is
true, we have already the saddles."
"Besides," said Athos, waiting till d'Artagnan,
who went to thank Monsieur de Treville, had shut the door, "besides, there is
that beautiful ring which beams from the finger of our friend. What the devil!
D'Artagnan is too good a comrade to leave his brothers in embarrassment while he
wears the ransom of a king on his finger."
29 HUNTING FOR THE EQUIPMENTS
The most preoccupied of the four friends was
certainly d'Artagnan, although he, in his quality of Guardsman, would be much
more easily equipped than Messieurs the Musketeers, who were all of high rank;
but our Gascon cadet was, as may have been observed, of a provident and almost
avaricious character, and with that (explain the contradiction) so vain as
almost to rival Porthos. To this preoccupation of his vanity, d'Artagnan at this
moment joined an uneasiness much less selfish. Notwithstanding all his inquiries
respecting Mme. Bonacieux, he could obtain no intelligence of her. M. de
Treville had spoken of her to the queen. The queen was ignorant where the
mercer's young wife was, but had promised to have her sought for; but this
promise was very vague and did not at all reassure d'Artagnan.
Athos did not leave his chamber; he made up his
mind not to take a single step to equip himself.
"We have still fifteen days before us," said he
to his friends, "well, if at the end of a fortnight I have found nothing, or
rather if nothing has come to find me, as I, too good a Catholic to kill myself
with a pistol bullet, I will seek a good quarrel with four of his Eminence's
Guards or with eight Englishmen, and I will fight until one of them has killed
me, which, considering the number, cannot fail to happen. It will then be said
of me that I died for the king; so that I shall have performed my duty without
the expense of an outfit."
Porthos continued to walk about with his hands
behind him, tossing his head and repeating, "I shall follow up on my idea."
Aramis, anxious and negligently dressed, said
nothing.
It may be seen by these disastrous details that
desolation reigned in the community.
The lackeys on their part, like the coursers of
Hippolytus, shared the sadness of their masters. Mousqueton collected a store of
crusts; Bazin, who had always been inclined to devotion, never quit the
churches; Planchet watched the flight of flies; and Grimaud, whom the general
distress could not induce to break the silence imposed by his master, heaved
sighs enough to soften the stones.
The three friends—for, as we have said, Athos
had sworn not to stir a foot to equip himself—went out early in the morning, and
returned late at night. They wandered about the streets, looking at the pavement
as if to see whether the passengers had not left a purse behind them. They might
have been supposed to be following tracks, so observant were they wherever they
went. When they met they looked desolately at one another, as much as to say,
"Have you found anything?"
However, as Porthos had first found an idea,
and had thought of it earnestly afterward, he was the first to act. He was a man
of execution, this worthy Porthos. D'Artagnan perceived him one day walking
toward the church of St. Leu, and followed him instinctively. He entered, after
having twisted his mustache and elongated his imperial, which always announced
on his part the most triumphant resolutions. As d'Artagnan took some precautions
to conceal himself, Porthos believed he had not been seen. d'Artagnan entered
behind him. Porthos went and leaned against the side of a pillar. D'Artagnan,
still unperceived, supported himself against the other side.
There happened to be a sermon, which made the
church very full of people. Porthos took advantage of this circumstance to ogle
the women. Thanks to the cares of Mousqueton, the exterior was far from
announcing the distress of the interior. His hat was a little napless, his
feather was a little faded, his gold lace was a little tarnished, his laces were
a trifle frayed; but in the obscurity of the church these things were not seen,
and Porthos was still the handsome Porthos.
D'Artagnan observed, on the bench nearest to
the pillar against which Porthos leaned, a sort of ripe beauty, rather yellow
and rather dry, but erect and haughty under her black hood. The eyes of Porthos
were furtively cast upon this lady, and then roved about at large over the nave.
On her side the lady, who from time to time
blushed, darted with the rapidity of lightning a glance toward the inconstant
Porthos; and then immediately the eyes of Porthos wandered anxiously. It was
plain that this mode of proceeding piqued the lady in the black hood, for she
bit her lips till they bled, scratched the end of her nose, and could not sit
still in her seat.
Porthos, seeing this, retwisted his mustache,
elongated his imperial a second time, and began to make signals to a beautiful
lady who was near the choir, and who not only was a beautiful lady, but still
further, no doubt, a great lady—for she had behind her a Negro boy who had
brought the cushion on which she knelt, and a female servant who held the
emblazoned bag in which was placed the book from which she read the Mass.
The lady with the black hood followed through
all their wanderings the looks of Porthos, and perceived that they rested upon
the lady with the velvet cushion, the little Negro, and the maid-servant.
During this time Porthos played close. It was
almost imperceptible motions of his eyes, fingers placed upon the lips, little
assassinating smiles, which really did assassinate the disdained beauty.
Then she cried, "Ahem!" under cover of the MEA
CULPA, striking her breast so vigorously that everybody, even the lady with the
red cushion, turned round toward her. Porthos paid no attention. Nevertheless,
he understood it all, but was deaf.
The lady with the red cushion produced a great
effect—for she was very handsome—upon the lady with the black hood, who saw in
her a rival really to be dreaded; a great effect upon Porthos, who thought her
much prettier than the lady with the black hood; a great effect upon d'Artagnan,
who recognized in her the lady of Meung, of Calais, and of Dover, whom his
persecutor, the man with the scar, had saluted by the name of Milady.
D'Artagnan, without losing sight of the lady of
the red cushion, continued to watch the proceedings of Porthos, which amused him
greatly. He guessed that the lady of the black hood was the procurator's wife of
the Rue aux Ours, which was the more probable from the church of St. Leu being
not far from that locality.
He guessed, likewise, by induction, that
Porthos was taking his revenge for the defeat of Chantilly, when the
procurator's wife had proved so refractory with respect to her purse.
Amid all this, d'Artagnan remarked also that
not one countenance responded to the gallantries of Porthos. There were only
chimeras and illusions; but for real love, for true jealousy, is there any
reality except illusions and chimeras?
The sermon over, the procurator's wife advanced
toward the holy font. Porthos went before her, and instead of a finger, dipped
his whole hand in. The procurator's wife smiled, thinking that it was for her
Porthos had put himself to this trouble; but she was cruelly and promptly
undeceived. When she was only about three steps from him, he turned his head
round, fixing his eyes steadfastly upon the lady with the red cushion, who had
risen and was approaching, followed by her black boy and her woman.
When the lady of the red cushion came close to
Porthos, Porthos drew his dripping hand from the font. The fair worshipper
touched the great hand of Porthos with her delicate fingers, smiled, made the
sign of the cross, and left the church.
This was too much for the procurator's wife;
she doubted not there was an intrigue between this lady and Porthos. If she had
been a great lady she would have fainted; but as she was only a procurator's
wife, she contented herself saying to the Musketeer with concentrated fury, "Eh,
Monsieur Porthos, you don't offer me any holy water?"
Porthos, at the sound of that voice, started
like a man awakened from a sleep of a hundred years.
"Ma-madame!" cried he; "is that you? How is
your husband, our dear Monsieur Coquenard? Is he still as stingy as ever? Where
can my eyes have been not to have seen you during the two hours of the sermon?"
"I was within two paces of you, monsieur,"
replied the procurator's wife; "but you did not perceive me because you had no
eyes but for the pretty lady to whom you just now gave the holy water."
Porthos pretended to be confused. "Ah," said
he, "you have remarked—"
"I must have been blind not to have seen."
"Yes," said Porthos, "that is a duchess of my
acquaintance whom I have great trouble to meet on account of the jealousy of her
husband, and who sent me word that she should come today to this poor church,
buried in this vile quarter, solely for the sake of seeing me."
"Monsieur Porthos," said the procurator's wife,
"will you have the kindness to offer me your arm for five minutes? I have
something to say to you."
"Certainly, madame," said Porthos, winking to
himself, as a gambler does who laughs at the dupe he is about to pluck.
At that moment d'Artagnan passed in pursuit of
Milady; he cast a passing glance at Porthos, and beheld this triumphant look.
"Eh, eh!" said he, reasoning to himself
according to the strangely easy morality of that gallant period, "there is one
who will be equipped in good time!"
Porthos, yielding to the pressure of the arm of
the procurator's wife, as a bark yields to the rudder, arrived at the cloister
St. Magloire—a little-frequented passage, enclosed with a turnstile at each end.
In the daytime nobody was seen there but mendicants devouring their crusts, and
children at play.
"Ah, Monsieur Porthos," cried the procurator's
wife, when she was assured that no one who was a stranger to the population of
the locality could either see or hear her, "ah, Monsieur Porthos, you are a
great conqueror, as it appears!"
"I, madame?" said Porthos, drawing himself up
proudly; "how so?"
"The signs just now, and the holy water! But
that must be a princess, at least—that lady with her Negro boy and her maid!"
"My God! Madame, you are deceived," said
Porthos; "she is simply a duchess."
"And that running footman who waited at the
door, and that carriage with a coachman in grand livery who sat waiting on his
seat?"
Porthos had seen neither the footman nor the
carriage, but with the eye of a jealous woman, Mme. Coquenard had seen
everything.
Porthos regretted that he had not at once made
the lady of the red cushion a princess.
"Ah, you are quite the pet of the ladies,
Monsieur Porthos!" resumed the procurator's wife, with a sigh.
"Well," responded Porthos, "you may imagine,
with the physique with which nature has endowed me, I am not in want of good
luck."
"Good Lord, how quickly men forget!" cried the
procurator's wife, raising her eyes toward heaven.
"Less quickly than the women, it seems to me,"
replied Porthos; "for I, madame, I may say I was your victim, when wounded,
dying, I was abandoned by the surgeons. I, the offspring of a noble family, who
placed reliance upon your friendship—I was near dying of my wounds at first, and
of hunger afterward, in a beggarly inn at Chantilly, without you ever deigning
once to reply to the burning letters I addressed to you."
"But, Monsieur Porthos," murmured the
procurator's wife, who began to feel that, to judge by the conduct of the great
ladies of the time, she was wrong.
"I, who had sacrificed for you the Baronne de—"
"I know it well."
"The Comtesse de—"
"Monsieur Porthos, be generous!"
"You are right, madame, and I will not finish."
"But it was my husband who would not hear of
lending."
"Madame Coquenard," said Porthos, "remember the
first letter you wrote me, and which I preserve engraved in my memory."
The procurator's wife uttered a groan.
"Besides," said she, "the sum you required me
to borrow was rather large."
"Madame Coquenard, I gave you the preference. I
had but to write to the Duchesse—but I won't repeat her name, for I am incapable
of compromising a woman; but this I know, that I had but to write to her and she
would have sent me fifteen hundred."
The procurator's wife shed a tear.
"Monsieur Porthos," said she, "I can assure you
that you have severely punished me; and if in the time to come you should find
yourself in a similar situation, you have but to apply to me."
"Fie, madame, fie!" said Porthos, as if
disgusted. "Let us not talk about money, if you please; it is humiliating."
"Then you no longer love me!" said the
procurator's wife, slowly and sadly.
Porthos maintained a majestic silence.
"And that is the only reply you make? Alas, I
understand."
"Think of the offense you have committed toward
me, madame! It remains HERE!" said Porthos, placing his hand on his heart, and
pressing it strongly.
"I will repair it, indeed I will, my dear
Porthos."
"Besides, what did I ask of you?" resumed
Porthos, with a movement of the shoulders full of good fellowship. "A loan,
nothing more! After all, I am not an unreasonable man. I know you are not rich,
Madame Coquenard, and that your husband is obliged to bleed his poor clients to
squeeze a few paltry crowns from them. Oh! If you were a duchess, a marchioness,
or a countess, it would be quite a different thing; it would be unpardonable."
The procurator's wife was piqued.
"Please to know, Monsieur Porthos," said she,
"that my strongbox, the strongbox of a procurator's wife though it may be, is
better filled than those of your affected minxes."
"The doubles the offense," said Porthos,
disengaging his arm from that of the procurator's wife; "for if you are rich,
Madame Coquenard, then there is no excuse for your refusal."
"When I said rich," replied the procurator's
wife, who saw that she had gone too far, "you must not take the word literally.
I am not precisely rich, though I am pretty well off."
"Hold, madame," said Porthos, "let us say no
more upon the subject, I beg of you. You have misunderstood me, all sympathy is
extinct between us."
"Ingrate that you are!"
"Ah! I advise you to complain!" said Porthos.
"Begone, then, to your beautiful duchess; I
will detain you no longer."
"And she is not to be despised, in my opinion."
"Now, Monsieur Porthos, once more, and this is
the last! Do you love me still?"
"Ah, madame," said Porthos, in the most
melancholy tone he could assume, "when we are about to enter upon a campaign—a
campaign, in which my presentiments tell me I shall be killed—"
"Oh, don't talk of such things!" cried the
procurator's wife, bursting into tears.
"Something whispers me so," continued Porthos,
becoming more and more melancholy.
"Rather say that you have a new love."
"Not so; I speak frankly to you. No object
affects me; and I even feel here, at the bottom of my heart, something which
speaks for you. But in fifteen days, as you know, or as you do not know, this
fatal campaign is to open. I shall be fearfully preoccupied with my outfit. Then
I must make a journey to see my family, in the lower part of Brittany, to obtain
the sum necessary for my departure."
Porthos observed a last struggle between love
and avarice.
"And as," continued he, "the duchess whom you
saw at the church has estates near to those of my family, we mean to make the
journey together. Journeys, you know, appear much shorter when we travel two in
company."
"Have you no friends in Paris, then, Monsieur
Porthos?" said the procurator's wife.
"I thought I had," said Porthos, resuming his
melancholy air; "but I have been taught my mistake."
"You have some!" cried the procurator's wife,
in a transport that surprised even herself. "Come to our house tomorrow. You are
the son of my aunt, consequently my cousin; you come from Noyon, in Picardy; you
have several lawsuits and no attorney. Can you recollect all that?"
"Perfectly, madame."
"Come at dinnertime."
"Very well."
"And be upon your guard before my husband, who
is rather shrewd, notwithstanding his seventy-six years."
"Seventy-six years! PESTE! That's a fine age!"
replied Porthos.
"A great age, you mean, Monsieur Porthos. Yes,
the poor man may be expected to leave me a widow, any hour," continued she,
throwing a significant glance at Porthos. "Fortunately, by our marriage
contract, the survivor takes everything."
"All?"
"Yes, all."
"You are a woman of precaution, I see, my dear
Madame Coquenard," said Porthos, squeezing the hand of the procurator's wife
tenderly.
"We are then reconciled, dear Monsieur
Porthos?" said she, simpering.
"For life," replied Porthos, in the same
manner.
"Till we meet again, then, dear traitor!"
"Till we meet again, my forgetful charmer!"
"Tomorrow, my angel!"
"Tomorrow, flame of my life!"
30 D'ARTAGNAN AND THE ENGLISHMAN
D'Artagnan followed Milady without being
perceived by her. He saw her get into her carriage, and heard her order the
coachman to drive to St. Germain.
It was useless to try to keep pace on foot with
a carriage drawn by two powerful horses. D'Artagnan therefore returned to the
Rue Ferou.
In the Rue de Seine he met Planchet, who had
stopped before the house of a pastry cook, and was contemplating with ecstasy a
cake of the most appetizing appearance.
He ordered him to go and saddle two horses in
M. de Treville's stables—one for himself, d'Artagnan, and one for Planchet—and
bring them to Athens's place. Once for all, Treville had placed his stable at
d'Artagnan's service.
Planchet proceeded toward the Rue du Colombier,
and d'Artagnan toward the Rue Ferou. Athos was at home, emptying sadly a bottle
of the famous Spanish wine he had brought back with him from his journey into
Picardy. He made a sign for Grimaud to bring a glass for d'Artagnan, and Grimaud
obeyed as usual.
D'Artagnan related to Athos all that had passed
at the church between Porthos and the procurator's wife, and how their comrade
was probably by that time in a fair way to be equipped.
"As for me," replied Athos to this recital, "I
am quite at my ease; it will not be women that will defray the expense of my
outfit."
"Handsome, well-bred, noble lord as you are, my
dear Athos, neither princesses nor queens would be secure from your amorous
solicitations."
"How young this d'Artagnan is!" said Athos,
shrugging his shoulders; and he made a sign to Grimaud to bring another bottle.
At that moment Planchet put his head modestly
in at the half-open door, and told his master that the horses were ready.
"What horses?" asked Athos.
"Two horses that Monsieur de Treville lends me
at my pleasure, and with which I am now going to take a ride to St. Germain."
"Well, and what are you going to do at St.
Germain?" then demanded Athos.
Then d'Artagnan described the meeting which he
had at the church, and how he had found that lady who, with the seigneur in the
black cloak and with the scar near his temple, filled his mind constantly.
"That is to say, you are in love with this lady
as you were with Madame Bonacieux," said Athos, shrugging his shoulders
contemptuously, as if he pitied human weakness.
"I? not at all!" said d'Artagnan. "I am only
curious to unravel the mystery to which she is attached. I do not know why, but
I imagine that this woman, wholly unknown to me as she is, and wholly unknown to
her as I am, has an influence over my life."
"Well, perhaps you are right," said Athos. "I
do not know a woman that is worth the trouble of being sought for when she is
once lost. Madame Bonacieux is lost; so much the worse for her if she is found."
"No, Athos, no, you are mistaken," said
d'Artagnan; "I love my poor Constance more than ever, and if I knew the place in
which she is, were it at the end of the world, I would go to free her from the
hands of her enemies; but I am ignorant. All my researches have been useless.
What is to be said? I must divert my attention!"
"Amuse yourself with Milady, my dear
d'Artagnan; I wish you may with all my heart, if that will amuse you."
"Hear me, Athos," said d'Artagnan. "Instead of
shutting yourself up here as if you were under arrest, get on horseback and come
and take a ride with me to St. Germain."
"My dear fellow," said Athos, "I ride horses
when I have any; when I have none, I go afoot."
"Well," said d'Artagnan, smiling at the
misanthropy of Athos, which from any other person would have offended him, "I
ride what I can get; I am not so proud as you. So AU REVOIR, dear Athos."
"AU REVOIR," said the Musketeer, making a sign
to Grimaud to uncork the bottle he had just brought.
D'Artagnan and Planchet mounted, and took the
road to St. Germain.
All along the road, what Athos had said
respecting Mme. Bonacieux recurred to the mind of the young man. Although
d'Artagnan was not of a very sentimental character, the mercer's pretty wife had
made a real impression upon his heart. As he said, he was ready to go to the end
of the world to seek her; but the world, being round, has many ends, so that he
did not know which way to turn. Meantime, he was going to try to find out
Milady. Milady had spoken to the man in the black cloak; therefore she knew him.
Now, in the opinion of d'Artagnan, it was certainly the man in the black cloak
who had carried off Mme. Bonacieux the second time, as he had carried her off
the first. d'Artagnan then only half-lied, which is lying but little, when he
said that by going in search of Milady he at the same time went in search of
Constance.
Thinking of all this, and from time to time
giving a touch of the spur to his horse, d'Artagnan completed his short journey,
and arrived at St. Germain. He had just passed by the pavilion in which ten
years later Louis XIV was born. He rode up a very quiet street, looking to the
right and the left to see if he could catch any vestige of his beautiful
Englishwoman, when from the ground floor of a pretty house, which, according to
the fashion of the time, had no window toward the street, he saw a face peep out
with which he thought he was acquainted. This person walked along the terrace,
which was ornamented with flowers. Planchet recognized him first.
"Eh, monsieur!" said he, addressing d'Artagnan,
"don't you remember that face which is blinking yonder?"
"No," said d'Artagnan, "and yet I am certain it
is not the first time I have seen that visage."
"PARBLEU, I believe it is not," said Planchet.
"Why, it is poor Lubin, the lackey of the Comte de Wardes—he whom you took such
good care of a month ago at Calais, on the road to the governor's country
house!"
"So it is!" said d'Artagnan; "I know him now.
Do you think he would recollect you?"
"My faith, monsieur, he was in such trouble
that I doubt if he can have retained a very clear recollection of me."
"Well, go and talk with the boy," said
d'Artagnan, "and make out if you can from his conversation whether his master is
dead."
Planchet dismounted and went straight up to
Lubin, who did not at all remember him, and the two lackeys began to chat with
the best understanding possible; while d'Artagnan turned the two horses into a
lane, went round the house, and came back to watch the conference from behind a
hedge of filberts.
At the end of an instant's observation he heard
the noise of a vehicle, and saw Milady's carriage stop opposite to him. He could
not be mistaken; Milady was in it. D'Artagnan leaned upon the neck of his horse,
in order that he might see without being seen.
Milady put her charming blond head out at the
window, and gave her orders to her maid.
The latter—a pretty girl of about twenty or
twenty-two years, active and lively, the true SOUBRETTE of a great lady—jumped
from the step upon which, according to the custom of the time, she was seated,
and took her way toward the terrace upon which d'Artagnan had perceived Lubin.
D'Artagnan followed the soubrette with his
eyes, and saw her go toward the terrace; but it happened that someone in the
house called Lubin, so that Planchet remained alone, looking in all directions
for the road where d'Artagnan had disappeared.
The maid approached Planchet, whom she took for
Lubin, and holding out a little billet to him said, "For your master."
"For my master?" replied Planchet, astonished.
"Yes, and important. Take it quickly."
Thereupon she ran toward the carriage, which
had turned round toward the way it came, jumped upon the step, and the carriage
drove off.
Planchet turned and returned the billet. Then,
accustomed to passive obedience, he jumped down from the terrace, ran toward the
lane, and at the end of twenty paces met d'Artagnan, who, having seen all, was
coming to him.
"For you, monsieur," said Planchet, presenting
the billet to the young man.
"For me?" said d'Artagnan; "are you sure of
that?"
"PARDIEU, monsieur, I can't be more sure. The
SOUBRETTE said, 'For your master.' I have no other master but you; so—a pretty
little lass, my faith, is that SOUBRETTE!"
D'Artagnan opened the letter, and read these
words:
"A person who takes more interest in you than
she is willing to confess wishes to know on what day it will suit you to walk in
the forest? Tomorrow, at the Hotel Field of the Cloth of Gold, a lackey in black
and red will wait for your reply."
"Oh!" said d'Artagnan, "this is rather warm; it
appears that Milady and I are anxious about the health of the same person. Well,
Planchet, how is the good Monsieur de Wardes? He is not dead, then?"
"No, monsieur, he is as well as a man can be
with four sword wounds in his body; for you, without question, inflicted four
upon the dear gentleman, and he is still very weak, having lost almost all his
blood. As I said, monsieur, Lubin did not know me, and told me our adventure
from one end to the other."
"Well done, Planchet! you are the king of
lackeys. Now jump onto your horse, and let us overtake the carriage."
This did not take long. At the end of five
minutes they perceived the carriage drawn up by the roadside; a cavalier, richly
dressed, was close to the door.
The conversation between Milady and the
cavalier was so animated that d'Artagnan stopped on the other side of the
carriage without anyone but the pretty SOUBRETTE perceiving his presence.
The conversation took place in English—a
language which d'Artagnan could not understand; but by the accent the young man
plainly saw that the beautiful Englishwoman was in a great rage. She terminated
it by an action which left no doubt as to the nature of this conversation; this
was a blow with her fan, applied with such force that the little feminine weapon
flew into a thousand pieces.
The cavalier laughed aloud, which appeared to
exasperate Milady still more.
D'Artagnan thought this was the moment to
interfere. He approached the other door, and taking off his hat respectfully,
said, "Madame, will you permit me to offer you my services? It appears to me
that this cavalier has made you very angry. Speak one word, madame, and I take
upon myself to punish him for his want of courtesy."
At the first word Milady turned, looking at the
young man with astonishment; and when he had finished, she said in very good
French, "Monsieur, I should with great confidence place myself under your
protection if the person with whom I quarrel were not my brother."
"Ah, excuse me, then," said d'Artagnan. "You
must be aware that I was ignorant of that, madame."
"What is that stupid fellow troubling himself
about?" cried the cavalier whom Milady had designated as her brother, stooping
down to the height of the coach window. "Why does not he go about his business?"
"Stupid fellow yourself!" said d'Artagnan,
stooping in his turn on the neck of his horse, and answering on his side through
the carriage window. "I do not go on because it pleases me to stop here."
The cavalier addressed some words in English to
his sister.
"I speak to you in French," said d'Artagnan;
"be kind enough, then, to reply to me in the same language. You are Madame's
brother, I learn—be it so; but fortunately you are not mine."
It might be thought that Milady, timid as women
are in general, would have interposed in this commencement of mutual
provocations in order to prevent the quarrel from going too far; but on the
contrary, she threw herself back in her carriage, and called out coolly to the
coachman, "Go on—home!"
The pretty SOUBRETTE cast an anxious glance at
d'Artagnan, whose good looks seemed to have made an impression on her.
The carriage went on, and left the two men
facing each other; no material obstacle separated them.
The cavalier made a movement as if to follow
the carriage; but d'Artagnan, whose anger, already excited, was much increased
by recognizing in him the Englishman of Amiens who had won his horse and had
been very near winning his diamond of Athos, caught at his bridle and stopped
him.
"Well, monsieur," said he, "you appear to be
more stupid than I am, for you forget there is a little quarrel to arrange
between us two."
"Ah," said the Englishman, "is it you, my
master? It seems you must always be playing some game or other."
"Yes; and that reminds me that I have a revenge
to take. We will see, my dear monsieur, if you can handle a sword as skillfully
as you can a dice box."
"You see plainly that I have no sword," said
the Englishman. "Do you wish to play the braggart with an unarmed man?"
"I hope you have a sword at home; but at all
events, I have two, and if you like, I will throw with you for one of them."
"Needless," said the Englishman; "I am well
furnished with such playthings."
"Very well, my worthy gentleman," replied
d'Artagnan, "pick out the longest, and come and show it to me this evening."
"Where, if you please?"
"Behind the Luxembourg; that's a charming spot
for such amusements as the one I propose to you."
"That will do; I will be there."
"Your hour?"
"Six o'clock."
"A PROPOS, you have probably one or two
friends?"
"I have three, who would be honored by joining
in the sport with me."
"Three? Marvelous! That falls out oddly! Three
is just my number!"
"Now, then, who are you?" asked the Englishman.
"I am Monsieur d'Artagnan, a Gascon gentleman,
serving in the king's Musketeers. And you?"
"I am Lord de Winter, Baron Sheffield."
"Well, then, I am your servant, Monsieur
Baron," said d'Artagnan, "though you have names rather difficult to recollect."
And touching his horse with the spur, he cantered back to Paris. As he was
accustomed to do in all cases of any consequence, d'Artagnan went straight to
the residence of Athos.
He found Athos reclining upon a large sofa,
where he was waiting, as he said, for his outfit to come and find him. He
related to Athos all that had passed, except the letter to M. de Wardes.
Athos was delighted to find he was going to
fight an Englishman. We might say that was his dream.
They immediately sent their lackeys for Porthos
and Aramis, and on their arrival made them acquainted with the situation.
Porthos drew his sword from the scabbard, and
made passes at the wall, springing back from time to time, and making
contortions like a dancer.
Aramis, who was constantly at work at his poem,
shut himself up in Athos's closet, and begged not to be disturbed before the
moment of drawing swords.
Athos, by signs, desired Grimaud to bring
another bottle of wine.
D'Artagnan employed himself in arranging a
little plan, of which we shall hereafter see the execution, and which promised
him some agreeable adventure, as might be seen by the smiles which from time to
time passed over his countenance, whose thoughtfulness they animated.
31 ENGLISH AND FRENCH
The hour having come, they went with their four
lackeys to a spot behind the Luxembourg given up to the feeding of goats. Athos
threw a piece of money to the goatkeeper to withdraw. The lackeys were ordered
to act as sentinels.
A silent party soon drew near to the same
enclosure, entered, and joined the Musketeers. Then, according to foreign
custom, the presentations took place.
The Englishmen were all men of rank;
consequently the odd names of their adversaries were for them not only a matter
of surprise, but of annoyance.
"But after all," said Lord de Winter, when the
three friends had been named, "we do not know who you are. We cannot fight with
such names; they are names of shepherds."
"Therefore your lordship may suppose they are
only assumed names," said Athos.
"Which only gives us a greater desire to know
the real ones," replied the Englishman.
"You played very willingly with us without
knowing our names," said Athos, "by the same token that you won our horses."
"That is true, but we then only risked our
pistoles; this time we risk our blood. One plays with anybody; but one fights
only with equals."
"And that is but just," said Athos, and he took
aside the one of the four Englishmen with whom he was to fight, and communicated
his name in a low voice.
Porthos and Aramis did the same.
"Does that satisfy you?" said Athos to his
adversary. "Do you find me of sufficient rank to do me the honor of crossing
swords with me?"
"Yes, monsieur," said the Englishman, bowing.
"Well! now shall I tell you something?" added
Athos, coolly.
"What?" replied the Englishman.
"Why, that is that you would have acted much
more wisely if you had not required me to make myself known."
"Why so?"
"Because I am believed to be dead, and have
reasons for wishing nobody to know I am living; so that I shall be obliged to
kill you to prevent my secret from roaming over the fields."
The Englishman looked at Athos, believing that
he jested, but Athos did not jest the least in the world.
"Gentlemen," said Athos, addressing at the same
time his companions and their adversaries, "are we ready?"
"Yes!" answered the Englishmen and the
Frenchmen, as with one voice.
"On guard, then!" cried Athos.
Immediately eight swords glittered in the rays
of the setting sun, and the combat began with an animosity very natural between
men twice enemies.
Athos fenced with as much calmness and method
as if he had been practicing in a fencing school.
Porthos, abated, no doubt, of his too-great
confidence by his adventure of Chantilly, played with skill and prudence.
Aramis, who had the third canto of his poem to finish, behaved like a man in
haste.
Athos killed his adversary first. He hit him
but once, but as he had foretold, that hit was a mortal one; the sword pierced
his heart.
Second, Porthos stretched his upon the grass
with a wound through his thigh, As the Englishman, without making any further
resistance, then surrendered his sword, Porthos took him up in his arms and bore
him to his carriage.
Aramis pushed his so vigorously that after
going back fifty paces, the man ended by fairly taking to his heels, and
disappeared amid the hooting of the lackeys.
As to d'Artagnan, he fought purely and simply
on the defensive; and when he saw his adversary pretty well fatigued, with a
vigorous side thrust sent his sword flying. The baron, finding himself disarmed,
took two or three steps back, but in this movement his foot slipped and he fell
backward.
D'Artagnan was over him at a bound, and said to
the Englishman, pointing his sword to his throat, "I could kill you, my Lord,
you are completely in my hands; but I spare your life for the sake of your
sister."
D'Artagnan was at the height of joy; he had
realized the plan he had imagined beforehand, whose picturing had produced the
smiles we noted upon his face.
The Englishman, delighted at having to do with
a gentleman of such a kind disposition, pressed d'Artagnan in his arms, and paid
a thousand compliments to the three Musketeers, and as Porthos's adversary was
already installed in the carriage, and as Aramis's had taken to his heels, they
had nothing to think about but the dead.
As Porthos and Aramis were undressing him, in
the hope of finding his wound not mortal, a large purse dropped from his
clothes. D'Artagnan picked it up and offered it to Lord de Winter.
"What the devil would you have me do with
that?" said the Englishman.
"You can restore it to his family," said
d'Artagnan.
"His family will care much about such a trifle
as that! His family will inherit fifteen thousand louis a year from him. Keep
the purse for your lackeys."
D'Artagnan put the purse into his pocket.
"And now, my young friend, for you will permit
me, I hope, to give you that name," said Lord de Winter, "on this very evening,
if agreeable to you, I will present you to my sister, Milady Clarik, for I am
desirous that she should take you into her good graces; and as she is not in bad
odor at court, she may perhaps on some future day speak a word that will not
prove useless to you."
D'Artagnan blushed with pleasure, and bowed a
sign of assent.
At this time Athos came up to d'Artagnan.
"What do you mean to do with that purse?"
whispered he.
"Why, I meant to pass it over to you, my dear
Athos."
"Me! why to me?"
"Why, you killed him! They are the spoils of
victory."
"I, the heir of an enemy!" said Athos; "for
whom, then, do you take me?"
"It is the custom in war," said d'Artagnan,
"why should it not be the custom in a duel?"
"Even on the field of battle, I have never done
that."
Porthos shrugged his shoulders; Aramis by a
movement of his lips endorsed Athos.
"Then," said d'Artagnan, "let us give the money
to the lackeys, as Lord de Winter desired us to do."
"Yes," said Athos; "let us give the money to
the lackeys—not to our lackeys, but to the lackeys of the Englishmen."
Athos took the purse, and threw it into the
hand of the coachman. "For you and your comrades."
This greatness of spirit in a man who was quite
destitute struck even Porthos; and this French generosity, repeated by Lord de
Winter and his friend, was highly applauded, except by MM. Grimaud, Bazin,
Mousqueton and Planchet.
Lord de Winter, on quitting d'Artagnan, gave
him his sister's address. She lived in the Place Royale—then the fashionable
quarter—at Number 6, and he undertook to call and take d'Artagnan with him in
order to introduce him. d'Artagnan appointed eight o'clock at Athos's residence.
This introduction to Milady Clarik occupied the
head of our Gascon greatly. He remembered in what a strange manner this woman
had hitherto been mixed up in his destiny. According to his conviction, she was
some creature of the cardinal, and yet he felt himself invincibly drawn toward
her by one of those sentiments for which we cannot account. His only fear was
that Milady would recognize in him the man of Meung and of Dover. Then she knew
that he was one of the friends of M. de Treville, and consequently, that he
belonged body and soul to the king; which would make him lose a part of his
advantage, since when known to Milady as he knew her, he played only an equal
game with her. As to the commencement of an intrigue between her and M. de
Wardes, our presumptuous hero gave but little heed to that, although the marquis
was young, handsome, rich, and high in the cardinal's favor. It is not for
nothing we are but twenty years old, above all if we were born at Tarbes.
D'Artagnan began by making his most splendid
toilet, then returned to Athos's, and according to custom, related everything to
him. Athos listened to his projects, then shook his head, and recommended
prudence to him with a shade of bitterness.
"What!" said he, "you have just lost one woman,
whom you call good, charming, perfect; and here you are, running headlong after
another."
D'Artagnan felt the truth of this reproach.
"I loved Madame Bonacieux with my heart, while
I only love Milady with my head," said he. "In getting introduced to her, my
principal object is to ascertain what part she plays at court."
"The part she plays, PARDIEU! It is not
difficult to divine that, after all you have told me. She is some emissary of
the cardinal; a woman who will draw you into a snare in which you will leave
your head."
"The devil! my dear Athos, you view things on
the dark side, methinks."
"My dear fellow, I mistrust women. Can it be
otherwise? I bought my experience dearly—particularly fair women. Milady is
fair, you say?"
"She has the most beautiful light hair
imaginable!"
"Ah, my poor d'Artagnan!" said Athos.
"Listen to me! I want to be enlightened on a
subject; then, when I shall have learned what I desire to know, I will
withdraw."
"Be enlightened!" said Athos, phlegmatically.
Lord de Winter arrived at the appointed time;
but Athos, being warned of his coming, went into the other chamber. He therefore
found d'Artagnan alone, and as it was nearly eight o'clock he took the young man
with him.
An elegant carriage waited below, and as it was
drawn by two excellent horses, they were soon at the Place Royale.
Milady Clarik received d'Artagnan
ceremoniously. Her hotel was remarkably sumptuous, and while the most part of
the English had quit, or were about to quit, France on account of the war,
Milady had just been laying out much money upon her residence; which proved that
the general measure which drove the English from France did not affect her.
"You see," said Lord de Winter, presenting
d'Artagnan to his sister, "a young gentleman who has held my life in his hands,
and who has not abused his advantage, although we have been twice enemies,
although it was I who insulted him, and although I am an Englishman. Thank him,
then, madame, if you have any affection for me."
Milady frowned slightly; a scarcely visible
cloud passed over her brow, and so peculiar a smile appeared upon her lips that
the young man, who saw and observed this triple shade, almost shuddered at it.
The brother did not perceive this; he had
turned round to play with Milady's favorite monkey, which had pulled him by the
doublet.
"You are welcome, monsieur," said Milady, in a
voice whose singular sweetness contrasted with the symptoms of ill-humor which
d'Artagnan had just remarked; "you have today acquired eternal rights to my
gratitude."
The Englishman then turned round and described
the combat without omitting a single detail. Milady listened with the greatest
attention, and yet it was easily to be perceived, whatever effort she made to
conceal her impressions, that this recital was not agreeable to her. The blood
rose to her head, and her little foot worked with impatience beneath her robe.
Lord de Winter perceived nothing of this. When
he had finished, he went to a table upon which was a salver with Spanish wine
and glasses. He filled two glasses, and by a sign invited d'Artagnan to drink.
D'Artagnan knew it was considered disobliging
by an Englishman to refuse to pledge him. He therefore drew near to the table
and took the second glass. He did not, however, lose sight of Milady, and in a
mirror he perceived the change that came over her face. Now that she believed
herself to be no longer observed, a sentiment resembling ferocity animated her
countenance. She bit her handkerchief with her beautiful teeth.
That pretty little SOUBRETTE whom d'Artagnan
had already observed then came in. She spoke some words to Lord de Winter in
English, who thereupon requested d'Artagnan's permission to retire, excusing
himself on account of the urgency of the business that had called him away, and
charging his sister to obtain his pardon.
D'Artagnan exchanged a shake of the hand with
Lord de Winter, and then returned to Milady. Her countenance, with surprising
mobility, had recovered its gracious expression; but some little red spots on
her handkerchief indicated that she had bitten her lips till the blood came.
Those lips were magnificent; they might be said to be of coral.
The conversation took a cheerful turn. Milady
appeared to have entirely recovered. She told d'Artagnan that Lord de Winter was
her brother-in-law, and not her brother. She had married a younger brother of
the family, who had left her a widow with one child. This child was the only
heir to Lord de Winter, if Lord de Winter did not marry. All this showed
d'Artagnan that there was a veil which concealed something; but he could not yet
see under this veil.
In addition to this, after a half hour's
conversation d'Artagnan was convinced that Milady was his compatriot; she spoke
French with an elegance and a purity that left no doubt on that head.
D'Artagnan was profuse in gallant speeches and
protestations of devotion. To all the simple things which escaped our Gascon,
Milady replied with a smile of kindness. The hour came for him to retire.
D'Artagnan took leave of Milady, and left the saloon the happiest of men.
On the staircase he met the pretty SOUBRETTE,
who brushed gently against him as she passed, and then, blushing to the eyes,
asked his pardon for having touched him in a voice so sweet that the pardon was
granted instantly.
D'Artagnan came again on the morrow, and was
still better received than on the evening before. Lord de Winter was not at
home; and it was Milady who this time did all the honors of the evening. She
appeared to take a great interest in him, asked him whence he came, who were his
friends, and whether he had not sometimes thought of attaching himself to the
cardinal.
D'Artagnan, who, as we have said, was
exceedingly prudent for a young man of twenty, then remembered his suspicions
regarding Milady. He launched into a eulogy of his Eminence, and said that he
should not have failed to enter into the Guards of the cardinal instead of the
king's Guards if he had happened to know M. de Cavois instead of M. de Treville.
Milady changed the conversation without any
appearance of affectation, and asked d'Artagnan in the most careless manner
possible if he had ever been in England.
D'Artagnan replied that he had been sent
thither by M. de Treville to treat for a supply of horses, and that he had
brought back four as specimens.
Milady in the course of the conversation twice
or thrice bit her lips; she had to deal with a Gascon who played close.
At the same hour as on the preceding evening,
d'Artagnan retired. In the corridor he again met the pretty Kitty; that was the
name of the SOUBRETTE. She looked at him with an expression of kindness which it
was impossible to mistake; but d'Artagnan was so preoccupied by the mistress
that he noticed absolutely nothing but her.
D'Artagnan came again on the morrow and the day
after that, and each day Milady gave him a more gracious reception.
Every evening, either in the antechamber, the
corridor, or on the stairs, he met the pretty SOUBRETTE. But, as we have said,
d'Artagnan paid no attention to this persistence of poor Kitty.
32 A PROCURATOR'S DINNER
However brilliant had been the part played by
Porthos in the duel, it had not made him forget the dinner of the procurator's
wife.
On the morrow he received the last touches of
Mousqueton's brush for an hour, and took his way toward the Rue aux Ours with
the steps of a man who was doubly in favor with fortune.
His heart beat, but not like d'Artagnan's with
a young and impatient love. No; a more material interest stirred his blood. He
was about at last to pass that mysterious threshold, to climb those unknown
stairs by which, one by one, the old crowns of M. Coquenard had ascended. He was
about to see in reality a certain coffer of which he had twenty times beheld the
image in his dreams—a coffer long and deep, locked, bolted, fastened in the
wall; a coffer of which he had so often heard, and which the hands—a little
wrinkled, it is true, but still not without elegance—of the procurator's wife
were about to open to his admiring looks.
And then he—a wanderer on the earth, a man
without fortune, a man without family, a soldier accustomed to inns, cabarets,
taverns, and restaurants, a lover of wine forced to depend upon chance
treats—was about to partake of family meals, to enjoy the pleasures of a
comfortable establishment, and to give himself up to those little attentions
which "the harder one is, the more they please," as old soldiers say.
To come in the capacity of a cousin, and seat
himself every day at a good table; to smooth the yellow, wrinkled brow of the
old procurator; to pluck the clerks a little by teaching them BASSETTE,
PASSE-DIX, and LANSQUENET, in their utmost nicety, and winning from them, by way
of fee for the lesson he would give them in an hour, their savings of a
month—all this was enormously delightful to Porthos.
The Musketeer could not forget the evil reports
which then prevailed, and which indeed have survived them, of the procurators of
the period—meanness, stinginess, fasts; but as, after all, excepting some few
acts of economy which Porthos had always found very unseasonable, the
procurator's wife had been tolerably liberal—that is, be it understood, for a
procurator's wife—he hoped to see a household of a highly comfortable kind.
And yet, at the very door the Musketeer began
to entertain some doubts. The approach was not such as to prepossess people—an
ill-smelling, dark passage, a staircase half-lighted by bars through which stole
a glimmer from a neighboring yard; on the first floor a low door studded with
enormous nails, like the principal gate of the Grand Chatelet.
Porthos knocked with his hand. A tall, pale
clerk, his face shaded by a forest of virgin hair, opened the door, and bowed
with the air of a man forced at once to respect in another lofty stature, which
indicated strength, the military dress, which indicated rank, and a ruddy
countenance, which indicated familiarity with good living.
A shorter clerk came behind the first, a taller
clerk behind the second, a stripling of a dozen years rising behind the third.
In all, three clerks and a half, which, for the time, argued a very extensive
clientage.
Although the Musketeer was not expected before
one o'clock, the procurator's wife had been on the watch ever since midday,
reckoning that the heart, or perhaps the stomach, of her lover would bring him
before his time.
Mme. Coquenard therefore entered the office
from the house at the same moment her guest entered from the stairs, and the
appearance of the worthy lady relieved him from an awkward embarrassment. The
clerks surveyed him with great curiosity, and he, not knowing well what to say
to this ascending and descending scale, remained tongue-tied.
"It is my cousin!" cried the procurator's wife.
"Come in, come in, Monsieur Porthos!"
The name of Porthos produced its effect upon
the clerks, who began to laugh; but Porthos turned sharply round, and every
countenance quickly recovered its gravity.
They reached the office of the procurator after
having passed through the antechamber in which the clerks were, and the study in
which they ought to have been. This last apartment was a sort of dark room,
littered with papers. On quitting the study they left the kitchen on the right,
and entered the reception room.
All these rooms, which communicated with one
another, did not inspire Porthos favorably. Words might be heard at a distance
through all these open doors. Then, while passing, he had cast a rapid,
investigating glance into the kitchen; and he was obliged to confess to himself,
to the shame of the procurator's wife and his own regret, that he did not see
that fire, that animation, that bustle, which when a good repast is on foot
prevails generally in that sanctuary of good living.
The procurator had without doubt been warned of
his visit, as he expressed no surprise at the sight of Porthos, who advanced
toward him with a sufficiently easy air, and saluted him courteously.
"We are cousins, it appears, Monsieur Porthos?"
said the procurator, rising, yet supporting his weight upon the arms of his cane
chair.
The old man, wrapped in a large black doublet,
in which the whole of his slender body was concealed, was brisk and dry. His
little gray eyes shone like carbuncles, and appeared, with his grinning mouth,
to be the only part of his face in which life survived. Unfortunately the legs
began to refuse their service to this bony machine. During the last five or six
months that this weakness had been felt, the worthy procurator had nearly become
the slave of his wife.
The cousin was received with resignation, that
was all. M. Coquenard, firm upon his legs, would have declined all relationship
with M. Porthos.
"Yes, monsieur, we are cousins," said Porthos,
without being disconcerted, as he had never reckoned upon being received
enthusiastically by the husband.
"By the female side, I believe?" said the
procurator, maliciously.
Porthos did not feel the ridicule of this, and
took it for a piece of simplicity, at which he laughed in his large mustache.
Mme. Coquenard, who knew that a simple-minded procurator was a very rare variety
in the species, smiled a little, and colored a great deal.
M. Coquenard had, since the arrival of Porthos,
frequently cast his eyes with great uneasiness upon a large chest placed in
front of his oak desk. Porthos comprehended that this chest, although it did not
correspond in shape with that which he had seen in his dreams, must be the
blessed coffer, and he congratulated himself that the reality was several feet
higher than the dream.
M. Coquenard did not carry his genealogical
investigations any further; but withdrawing his anxious look from the chest and
fixing it upon Porthos, he contented himself with saying, "Monsieur our cousin
will do us the favor of dining with us once before his departure for the
campaign, will he not, Madame Coquenard?"
This time Porthos received the blow right in
his stomach, and felt it. It appeared likewise that Mme. Coquenard was not less
affected by it on her part, for she added, "My cousin will not return if he
finds that we do not treat him kindly; but otherwise he has so little time to
pass in Paris, and consequently to spare to us, that we must entreat him to give
us every instant he can call his own previous to his departure."
"Oh, my legs, my poor legs! where are you?"
murmured Coquenard, and he tried to smile.
This succor, which came to Porthos at the
moment in which he was attacked in his gastronomic hopes, inspired much
gratitude in the Musketeer toward the procurator's wife.
The hour of dinner soon arrived. They passed
into the eating room—a large dark room situated opposite the kitchen.
The clerks, who, as it appeared, had smelled
unusual perfumes in the house, were of military punctuality, and held their
stools in hand quite ready to sit down. Their jaws moved preliminarily with
fearful threatenings.
"Indeed!" thought Porthos, casting a glance at
the three hungry clerks—for the errand boy, as might be expected, was not
admitted to the honors of the magisterial table, "in my cousin's place, I would
not keep such gourmands! They look like shipwrecked sailors who have not eaten
for six weeks."
M. Coquenard entered, pushed along upon his
armchair with casters by Mme. Coquenard, whom Porthos assisted in rolling her
husband up to the table. He had scarcely entered when he began to agitate his
nose and his jaws after the example of his clerks.
"Oh, oh!" said he; "here is a soup which is
rather inviting."
"What the devil can they smell so extraordinary
in this soup?" said Porthos, at the sight of a pale liquid, abundant but
entirely free from meat, on the surface of which a few crusts swam about as rare
as the islands of an archipelago.
Mme. Coquenard smiled, and upon a sign from her
everyone eagerly took his seat.
M. Coquenard was served first, then Porthos.
Afterward Mme. Coquenard filled her own plate, and distributed the crusts
without soup to the impatient clerks. At this moment the door of the dining room
unclosed with a creak, and Porthos perceived through the half-open flap the
little clerk who, not being allowed to take part in the feast, ate his dry bread
in the passage with the double odor of the dining room and kitchen.
After the soup the maid brought a boiled fowl—a
piece of magnificence which caused the eyes of the diners to dilate in such a
manner that they seemed ready to burst.
"One may see that you love your family, Madame
Coquenard," said the procurator, with a smile that was almost tragic. "You are
certainly treating your cousin very handsomely!"
The poor fowl was thin, and covered with one of
those thick, bristly skins through which the teeth cannot penetrate with all
their efforts. The fowl must have been sought for a long time on the perch, to
which it had retired to die of old age.
"The devil!" thought Porthos, "this is poor
work. I respect old age, but I don't much like it boiled or roasted."
And he looked round to see if anybody partook
of his opinion; but on the contrary, he saw nothing but eager eyes which were
devouring, in anticipation, that sublime fowl which was the object of his
contempt.
Mme. Coquenard drew the dish toward her,
skillfully detached the two great black feet, which she placed upon her
husband's plate, cut off the neck, which with the head she put on one side for
herself, raised the wing for Porthos, and then returned the bird otherwise
intact to the servant who had brought it in, who disappeared with it before the
Musketeer had time to examine the variations which disappointment produces upon
faces, according to the characters and temperaments of those who experience it.
In the place of the fowl a dish of haricot
beans made its appearance—an enormous dish in which some bones of mutton that at
first sight one might have believed to have some meat on them pretended to show
themselves.
But the clerks were not the dupes of this
deceit, and their lugubrious looks settled down into resigned countenances.
Mme. Coquenard distributed this dish to the
young men with the moderation of a good housewife.
The time for wine came. M. Coquenard poured
from a very small stone bottle the third of a glass for each of the young men,
served himself in about the same proportion, and passed the bottle to Porthos
and Mme. Coquenard.
The young men filled up their third of a glass
with water; then, when they had drunk half the glass, they filled it up again,
and continued to do so. This brought them, by the end of the repast, to
swallowing a drink which from the color of the ruby had passed to that of a pale
topaz.
Porthos ate his wing of the fowl timidly, and
shuddered when he felt the knee of the procurator's wife under the table, as it
came in search of his. He also drank half a glass of this sparingly served wine,
and found it to be nothing but that horrible Montreuil—the terror of all expert
palates.
M. Coquenard saw him swallowing this wine
undiluted, and sighed deeply.
"Will you eat any of these beans, Cousin
Porthos?" said Mme. Coquenard, in that tone which says, "Take my advice, don't
touch them."
"Devil take me if I taste one of them!"
murmured Porthos to himself, and then said aloud, "Thank you, my cousin, I am no
longer hungry."
There was silence. Porthos could hardly keep
his countenance.
The procurator repeated several times, "Ah,
Madame Coquenard! Accept my compliments; your dinner has been a real feast.
Lord, how I have eaten!"
M. Coquenard had eaten his soup, the black feet
of the fowl, and the only mutton bone on which there was the least appearance of
meat.
Porthos fancied they were mystifying him, and
began to curl his mustache and knit his eyebrows; but the knee of Mme. Coquenard
gently advised him to be patient.
This silence and this interruption in serving,
which were unintelligible to Porthos, had, on the contrary, a terrible meaning
for the clerks. Upon a look from the procurator, accompanied by a smile from
Mme. Coquenard, they arose slowly from the table, folded their napkins more
slowly still, bowed, and retired.
"Go, young men! go and promote digestion by
working," said the procurator, gravely.
The clerks gone, Mme. Coquenard rose and took
from a buffet a piece of cheese, some preserved quinces, and a cake which she
had herself made of almonds and honey.
M. Coquenard knit his eyebrows because there
were too many good things. Porthos bit his lips because he saw not the
wherewithal to dine. He looked to see if the dish of beans was still there; the
dish of beans had disappeared.
"A positive feast!" cried M. Coquenard, turning
about in his chair, "a real feast, EPULCE EPULORUM. Lucullus dines with
Lucullus."
Porthos looked at the bottle, which was near
him, and hoped that with wine, bread, and cheese, he might make a dinner; but
wine was wanting, the bottle was empty. M. and Mme. Coquenard did not seem to
observe it.
"This is fine!" said Porthos to himself; "I am
prettily caught!"
He passed his tongue over a spoonful of
preserves, and stuck his teeth into the sticky pastry of Mme. Coquenard.
"Now," said he, "the sacrifice is consummated!
Ah! if I had not the hope of peeping with Madame Coquenard into her husband's
chest!"
M. Coquenard, after the luxuries of such a
repast, which he called an excess, felt the want of a siesta. Porthos began to
hope that the thing would take place at the present sitting, and in that same
locality; but the procurator would listen to nothing, he would be taken to his
room, and was not satisfied till he was close to his chest, upon the edge of
which, for still greater precaution, he placed his feet.
The procurator's wife took Porthos into an
adjoining room, and they began to lay the basis of a reconciliation.
"You can come and dine three times a week,"
said Mme. Coquenard.
"Thanks, madame!" said Porthos, "but I don't
like to abuse your kindness; besides, I must think of my outfit!"
"That's true," said the procurator's wife,
groaning, "that unfortunate outfit!"
"Alas, yes," said Porthos, "it is so."
"But of what, then, does the equipment of your
company consist, Monsieur Porthos?"
"Oh, of many things!" said Porthos. "The
Musketeers are, as you know, picked soldiers, and they require many things
useless to the Guardsmen or the Swiss."
"But yet, detail them to me."
"Why, they may amount to—", said Porthos, who
preferred discussing the total to taking them one by one.
The procurator's wife waited tremblingly.
"To how much?" said she. "I hope it does not
exceed—" She stopped; speech failed her.
"Oh, no," said Porthos, "it does not exceed two
thousand five hundred livres! I even think that with economy I could manage it
with two thousand livres."
"Good God!" cried she, "two thousand livres!
Why, that is a fortune!"
Porthos made a most significant grimace; Mme.
Coquenard understood it.
"I wished to know the detail," said she,
"because, having many relatives in business, I was almost sure of obtaining
things at a hundred per cent less than you would pay yourself."
"Ah, ah!" said Porthos, "that is what you meant
to say!"
"Yes, dear Monsieur Porthos. Thus, for
instance, don't you in the first place want a horse?"
"Yes, a horse."
"Well, then! I can just suit you."
"Ah!" said Porthos, brightening, "that's well
as regards my horse; but I must have the appointments complete, as they include
objects which a Musketeer alone can purchase, and which will not amount,
besides, to more than three hundred livres."
"Three hundred livres? Then put down three
hundred livres," said the procurator's wife, with a sigh.
Porthos smiled. It may be remembered that he
had the saddle which came from Buckingham. These three hundred livres he
reckoned upon putting snugly into his pocket.
"Then," continued he, "there is a horse for my
lackey, and my valise. As to my arms, it is useless to trouble you about them; I
have them."
"A horse for your lackey?" resumed the
procurator's wife, hesitatingly; "but that is doing things in lordly style, my
friend."
"Ah, madame!" said Porthos, haughtily; "do you
take me for a beggar?"
"No; I only thought that a pretty mule makes
sometimes as good an appearance as a horse, and it seemed to me that by getting
a pretty mule for Mousqueton—"
"Well, agreed for a pretty mule," said Porthos;
"you are right, I have seen very great Spanish nobles whose whole suite were
mounted on mules. But then you understand, Madame Coquenard, a mule with
feathers and bells."
"Be satisfied," said the procurator's wife.
"There remains the valise," added Porthos.
"Oh, don't let that disturb you," cried Mme.
Coquenard. "My husband has five or six valises; you shall choose the best. There
is one in particular which he prefers in his journeys, large enough to hold all
the world."
"Your valise is then empty?" asked Porthos,
with simplicity.
"Certainly it is empty," replied the
procurator's wife, in real innocence.
"Ah, but the valise I want," cried Porthos, "is
a well-filled one, my dear."
Madame uttered fresh sighs. Moliere had not
written his scene in "L'Avare" then. Mme. Coquenard was in the dilemma of
Harpagan.
Finally, the rest of the equipment was
successively debated in the same manner; and the result of the sitting was that
the procurator's wife should give eight hundred livres in money, and should
furnish the horse and the mule which should have the honor of carrying Porthos
and Mousqueton to glory.
These conditions being agreed to, Porthos took
leave of Mme. Coquenard. The latter wished to detain him by darting certain
tender glances; but Porthos urged the commands of duty, and the procurator's
wife was obliged to give place to the king.
The Musketeer returned home hungry and in bad
humor.
33 SOUBRETTE AND MISTRESS
Meantime, as we have said, despite the cries of
his conscience and the wise counsels of Athos, d'Artagnan became hourly more in
love with Milady. Thus he never failed to pay his diurnal court to her; and the
self-satisfied Gascon was convinced that sooner or later she could not fail to
respond.
One day, when he arrived with his head in the
air, and as light at heart as a man who awaits a shower of gold, he found the
SOUBRETTE under the gateway of the hotel; but this time the pretty Kitty was not
contented with touching him as he passed, she took him gently by the hand.
"Good!" thought d'Artagnan, "She is charged
with some message for me from her mistress; she is about to appoint some
rendezvous of which she had not courage to speak." And he looked down at the
pretty girl with the most triumphant air imaginable.
"I wish to say three words to you, Monsieur
Chevalier," stammered the SOUBRETTE.
"Speak, my child, speak," said d'Artagnan; "I
listen."
"Here? Impossible! That which I have to say is
too long, and above all, too secret."
"Well, what is to be done?"
"If Monsieur Chevalier would follow me?" said
Kitty, timidly.
"Where you please, my dear child."
"Come, then."
And Kitty, who had not let go the hand of
d'Artagnan, led him up a little dark, winding staircase, and after ascending
about fifteen steps, opened a door.
"Come in here, Monsieur Chevalier," said she;
"here we shall be alone, and can talk."
"And whose room is this, my dear child?"
"It is mine, Monsieur Chevalier; it
communicates with my mistress's by that door. But you need not fear. She will
not hear what we say; she never goes to bed before midnight."
D'Artagnan cast a glance around him. The little
apartment was charming for its taste and neatness; but in spite of himself, his
eyes were directed to that door which Kitty said led to Milady's chamber.
Kitty guessed what was passing in the mind of
the young man, and heaved a deep sigh.
"You love my mistress, then, very dearly,
Monsieur Chevalier?" said she.
"Oh, more than I can say, Kitty! I am mad for
her!"
Kitty breathed a second sigh.
"Alas, monsieur," said she, "that is too bad."
"What the devil do you see so bad in it?" said
d'Artagnan.
"Because, monsieur," replied Kitty, "my
mistress loves you not at all."
"HEIN!" said d'Artagnan, "can she have charged
you to tell me so?"
"Oh, no, monsieur; but out of the regard I have
for you, I have taken the resolution to tell you so."
"Much obliged, my dear Kitty; but for the
intention only—for the information, you must agree, is not likely to be at all
agreeable."
"That is to say, you don't believe what I have
told you; is it not so?"
"We have always some difficulty in believing
such things, my pretty dear, were it only from self-love."
"Then you don't believe me?"
"I confess that unless you deign to give me
some proof of what you advance—"
"What do you think of this?"
Kitty drew a little note from her bosom.
"For me?" said d'Artagnan, seizing the letter.
"No; for another."
"For another?"
"Yes."
"His name; his name!" cried d'Artagnan.
"Read the address."
"Monsieur El Comte de Wardes."
The remembrance of the scene at St. Germain
presented itself to the mind of the presumptuous Gascon. As quick as thought, he
tore open the letter, in spite of the cry which Kitty uttered on seeing what he
was going to do, or rather, what he was doing.
"Oh, good Lord, Monsieur Chevalier," said she,
"what are you doing?"
"I?" said d'Artagnan; "nothing," and he read,
"You have not answered my first note. Are you
indisposed, or have you forgotten the glances you favored me with at the ball of
Mme. de Guise? You have an opportunity now, Count; do not allow it to escape."
d'Artagnan became very pale; he was wounded in
his SELF-love: he thought that it was in his LOVE.
"Poor dear Monsieur d'Artagnan," said Kitty, in
a voice full of compassion, and pressing anew the young man's hand.
"You pity me, little one?" said d'Artagnan.
"Oh, yes, and with all my heart; for I know
what it is to be in love."
"You know what it is to be in love?" said
d'Artagnan, looking at her for the first time with much attention.
"Alas, yes."
"Well, then, instead of pitying me, you would
do much better to assist me in avenging myself on your mistress."
"And what sort of revenge would you take?"
"I would triumph over her, and supplant my
rival."
"I will never help you in that, Monsieur
Chevalier," said Kitty, warmly.
"And why not?" demanded d'Artagnan.
"For two reasons."
"What ones?"
"The first is that my mistress will never love
you."
"How do you know that?"
"You have cut her to the heart."
"I? In what can I have offended her—I who ever
since I have known her have lived at her feet like a slave? Speak, I beg you!"
"I will never confess that but to the man—who
should read to the bottom of my soul!"
D'Artagnan looked at Kitty for the second time.
The young girl had freshness and beauty which many duchesses would have
purchased with their coronets.
"Kitty," said he, "I will read to the bottom of
your soul when-ever you like; don't let that disturb you." And he gave her a
kiss at which the poor girl became as red as a cherry.
"Oh, no," said Kitty, "it is not me you love!
It is my mistress you love; you told me so just now."
"And does that hinder you from letting me know
the second reason?"
"The second reason, Monsieur the Chevalier,"
replied Kitty, emboldened by the kiss in the first place, and still further by
the expression of the eyes of the young man, "is that in love, everyone for
herself!"
Then only d'Artagnan remembered the languishing
glances of Kitty, her constantly meeting him in the antechamber, the corridor,
or on the stairs, those touches of the hand every time she met him, and her deep
sighs; but absorbed by his desire to please the great lady, he had disdained the
soubrette. He whose game is the eagle takes no heed of the sparrow.
But this time our Gascon saw at a glance all
the advantage to be derived from the love which Kitty had just confessed so
innocently, or so boldly: the interception of letters addressed to the Comte de
Wardes, news on the spot, entrance at all hours into Kitty's chamber, which was
contiguous to her mistress's. The perfidious deceiver was, as may plainly be
perceived, already sacrificing, in intention, the poor girl in order to obtain
Milady, willy-nilly.
"Well," said he to the young girl, "are you
willing, my dear Kitty, that I should give you a proof of that love which you
doubt?"
"What love?" asked the young girl.
"Of that which I am ready to feel toward you."
"And what is that proof?"
"Are you willing that I should this evening
pass with you the time I generally spend with your mistress?"
"Oh, yes," said Kitty, clapping her hands,
"very willing."
"Well, then, come here, my dear," said
d'Artagnan, establishing himself in an easy chair; "come, and let me tell you
that you are the prettiest SOUBRETTE I ever saw!"
And he did tell her so much, and so well, that
the poor girl, who asked nothing better than to believe him, did believe him.
Nevertheless, to d'Artagnan's great astonishment, the pretty Kitty defended
herself resolutely.
Time passes quickly when it is passed in
attacks and defenses. Midnight sounded, and almost at the same time the bell was
rung in Milady's chamber.
"Good God," cried Kitty, "there is my mistress
calling me! Go; go directly!"
D'Artagnan rose, took his hat, as if it had
been his intention to obey, then, opening quickly the door of a large closet
instead of that leading to the staircase, he buried himself amid the robes and
dressing gowns of Milady.
"What are you doing?" cried Kitty.
D'Artagnan, who had secured the key, shut
himself up in the closet without reply.
"Well," cried Milady, in a sharp voice. "Are
you asleep, that you don't answer when I ring?"
And d'Artagnan heard the door of communication
opened violently.
"Here am I, Milady, here am I!" cried Kitty,
springing forward to meet her mistress.
Both went into the bedroom, and as the door of
communication remained open, d'Artagnan could hear Milady for some time scolding
her maid. She was at length appeased, and the conversation turned upon him while
Kitty was assisting her mistress.
"Well," said Milady, "I have not seen our
Gascon this evening."
"What, Milady! has he not come?" said Kitty.
"Can he be inconstant before being happy?"
"Oh, no; he must have been prevented by
Monsieur de Treville or Monsieur Dessessart. I understand my game, Kitty; I have
this one safe."
"What will you do with him, madame?"
"What will I do with him? Be easy, Kitty, there
is something between that man and me that he is quite ignorant of: he nearly
made me lose my credit with his Eminence. Oh, I will be revenged!"
"I believed that Madame loved him."
"I love him? I detest him! An idiot, who held
the life of Lord de Winter in his hands and did not kill him, by which I missed
three hundred thousand livres' income."
"That's true," said Kitty; "your son was the
only heir of his uncle, and until his majority you would have had the enjoyment
of his fortune."
D'Artagnan shuddered to the marrow at hearing
this suave creature reproach him, with that sharp voice which she took such
pains to conceal in conversation, for not having killed a man whom he had seen
load her with kindnesses.
"For all this," continued Milady, "I should
long ago have revenged myself on him if, and I don't know why, the cardinal had
not requested me to conciliate him."
"Oh, yes; but Madame has not conciliated that
little woman he was so fond of."
"What, the mercer's wife of the Rue des
Fossoyeurs? Has he not already forgotten she ever existed? Fine vengeance that,
on my faith!"
A cold sweat broke from d'Artagnan's brow. Why,
this woman was a monster! He resumed his listening, but unfortunately the toilet
was finished.
"That will do," said Milady; "go into your own
room, and tomorrow endeavor again to get me an answer to the letter I gave you."
"For Monsieur de Wardes?" said Kitty.
"To be sure; for Monsieur de Wardes."
"Now, there is one," said Kitty, "who appears
to me quite a different sort of a man from that poor Monsieur d'Artagnan."
"Go to bed, mademoiselle," said Milady; "I
don't like comments."
D'Artagnan heard the door close; then the noise
of two bolts by which Milady fastened herself in. On her side, but as softly as
possible, Kitty turned the key of the lock, and then d'Artagnan opened the
closet door.
"Oh, good Lord!" said Kitty, in a low voice,
"what is the matter with you? How pale you are!"
"The abominable creature," murmured d'Artagnan.
"Silence, silence, begone!" said Kitty. "There
is nothing but a wainscot between my chamber and Milady's; every word that is
uttered in one can be heard in the other."
"That's exactly the reason I won't go," said
d'Artagnan.
"What!" said Kitty, blushing.
"Or, at least, I will go—later."
He drew Kitty to him. She had the less motive
to resist, resistance would make so much noise. Therefore Kitty surrendered.
It was a movement of vengeance upon Milady.
D'Artagnan believed it right to say that vengeance is the pleasure of the gods.
With a little more heart, he might have been contented with this new conquest;
but the principal features of his character were ambition and pride. It must,
however, be confessed in his justification that the first use he made of his
influence over Kitty was to try and find out what had become of Mme. Bonacieux;
but the poor girl swore upon the crucifix to d'Artagnan that she was entirely
ignorant on that head, her mistress never admitting her into half her
secrets—only she believed she could say she was not dead.
As to the cause which was near making Milady
lose her credit with the cardinal, Kitty knew nothing about it; but this time
d'Artagnan was better informed than she was. As he had seen Milady on board a
vessel at the moment he was leaving England, he suspected that it was, almost
without a doubt, on account of the diamond studs.
But what was clearest in all this was that the
true hatred, the profound hatred, the inveterate hatred of Milady, was increased
by his not having killed her brother-in-law.
D'Artagnan came the next day to Milady's, and
finding her in a very ill-humor, had no doubt that it was lack of an answer from
M. de Wardes that provoked her thus. Kitty came in, but Milady was very cross
with her. The poor girl ventured a glance at d'Artagnan which said, "See how I
suffer on your account!"
Toward the end of the evening, however, the
beautiful lioness became milder; she smilingly listened to the soft speeches of
d'Artagnan, and even gave him her hand to kiss.
D'Artagnan departed, scarcely knowing what to
think, but as he was a youth who did not easily lose his head, while continuing
to pay his court to Milady, he had framed a little plan in his mind.
He found Kitty at the gate, and, as on the
preceding evening, went up to her chamber. Kitty had been accused of negligence
and severely scolded. Milady could not at all comprehend the silence of the
Comte de Wardes, and she ordered Kitty to come at nine o'clock in the morning to
take a third letter.
D'Artagnan made Kitty promise to bring him that
letter on the following morning. The poor girl promised all her lover desired;
she was mad.
Things passed as on the night before.
D'Artagnan concealed himself in his closet; Milady called, undressed, sent away
Kitty, and shut the door. As the night before, d'Artagnan did not return home
till five o'clock in the morning.
At eleven o'clock Kitty came to him. She held
in her hand a fresh billet from Milady. This time the poor girl did not even
argue with d'Artagnan; she gave it to him at once. She belonged body and soul to
her handsome soldier.
D'Artagnan opened the letter and read as
follows:
This is the third time I have written to you to
tell you that I love you. Beware that I do not write to you a fourth time to
tell you that I detest you.
If you repent of the manner in which you have
acted toward me, the young girl who brings you this will tell you how a man of
spirit may obtain his pardon.
d'Artagnan colored and grew pale several times
in reading this billet.
"Oh, you love her still," said Kitty, who had
not taken her eyes off the young man's countenance for an instant.
"No, Kitty, you are mistaken. I do not love
her, but I will avenge myself for her contempt."
"Oh, yes, I know what sort of vengeance! You
told me that!"
"What matters it to you, Kitty? You know it is
you alone whom I love."
"How can I know that?"
"By the scorn I will throw upon her."
D'Artagnan took a pen and wrote:
Madame, Until the present moment I could not
believe that it was to me your first two letters were addressed, so unworthy did
I feel myself of such an honor; besides, I was so seriously indisposed that I
could not in any case have replied to them.
But now I am forced to believe in the excess of
your kindness, since not only your letter but your servant assures me that I
have the good fortune to be beloved by you.
She has no occasion to teach me the way in
which a man of spirit may obtain his pardon. I will come and ask mine at eleven
o'clock this evening.
To delay it a single day would be in my eyes
now to commit a fresh offense.
From him whom you have rendered the happiest of
men, Comte de Wardes
This note was in the first place a forgery; it
was likewise an indelicacy. It was even, according to our present manners,
something like an infamous action; but at that period people did not manage
affairs as they do today. Besides, d'Artagnan from her own admission knew Milady
culpable of treachery in matters more important, and could entertain no respect
for her. And yet, notwithstanding this want of respect, he felt an
uncontrollable passion for this woman boiling in his veins—passion drunk with
contempt; but passion or thirst, as the reader pleases.
D'Artagnan's plan was very simple. By Kitty's
chamber he could gain that of her mistress. He would take advantage of the first
moment of surprise, shame, and terror, to triumph over her. He might fail, but
something must be left to chance. In eight days the campaign would open, and he
would be compelled to leave Paris; d'Artagnan had no time for a prolonged love
siege.
"There," said the young man, handing Kitty the
letter sealed; "give that to Milady. It is the count's reply."
Poor Kitty became as pale as death; she
suspected what the letter contained.
"Listen, my dear girl," said d'Artagnan; "you
cannot but perceive that all this must end, some way or other. Milady may
discover that you gave the first billet to my lackey instead of to the count's;
that it is I who have opened the others which ought to have been opened by de
Wardes. Milady will then turn you out of doors, and you know she is not the
woman to limit her vengeance."
"Alas!" said Kitty, "for whom have I exposed
myself to all that?"
"For me, I well know, my sweet girl," said
d'Artagnan. "But I am grateful, I swear to you."
"But what does this note contain?"
"Milady will tell you."
"Ah, you do not love me!" cried Kitty, "and I
am very wretched."
To this reproach there is always one response
which deludes women. D'Artagnan replied in such a manner that Kitty remained in
her great delusion. Although she cried freely before deciding to transmit the
letter to her mistress, she did at last so decide, which was all d'Artagnan
wished. Finally he promised that he would leave her mistress's presence at an
early hour that evening, and that when he left the mistress he would ascend with
the maid. This promise completed poor Kitty's consolation.
34 IN WHICH THE EQUIPMENT OF ARAMIS AND
PORTHOS IS TREATED OF
Since the four friends had been each in search
of his equipments, there had been no fixed meeting between them. They dined
apart from one another, wherever they might happen to be, or rather where they
could. Duty likewise on its part took a portion of that precious time which was
gliding away so rapidly—only they had agreed to meet once a week, about one
o'clock, at the residence of Athos, seeing that he, in agreement with the vow he
had formed, did not pass over the threshold of his door.
This day of reunion was the same day as that on
which Kitty came to find d'Artagnan. Soon as Kitty left him, d'Artagnan directed
his steps toward the Rue Ferou.
He found Athos and Aramis philosophizing.
Aramis had some slight inclination to resume the cassock. Athos, according to
his system, neither encouraged nor dissuaded him. Athos believed that everyone
should be left to his own free will. He never gave advice but when it was asked,
and even then he required to be asked twice.
"People, in general," he said, "only ask advice
not to follow it; or if they do follow it, it is for the sake of having someone
to blame for having given it."
Porthos arrived a minute after d'Artagnan. The
four friends were reunited.
The four countenances expressed four different
feelings: that of Porthos, tranquillity; that of d'Artagnan, hope; that of
Aramis, uneasiness; that of Athos, carelessness.
At the end of a moment's conversation, in which
Porthos hinted that a lady of elevated rank had condescended to relieve him from
his embarrassment, Mousqueton entered. He came to request his master to return
to his lodgings, where his presence was urgent, as he piteously said.
"Is it my equipment?"
"Yes and no," replied Mousqueton.
"Well, but can't you speak?"
"Come, monsieur."
Porthos rose, saluted his friends, and followed
Mousqueton. An instant after, Bazin made his appearance at the door.
"What do you want with me, my friend?" said
Aramis, with that mildness of language which was observable in him every time
that his ideas were directed toward the Church.
"A man wishes to see Monsieur at home," replied
Bazin.
"A man! What man?"
"A mendicant."
"Give him alms, Bazin, and bid him pray for a
poor sinner."
"This mendicant insists upon speaking to you,
and pretends that you will be very glad to see him."
"Has he sent no particular message for me?"
"Yes. If Monsieur Aramis hesitates to come," he
said, "tell him I am from Tours."
"From Tours!" cried Aramis. "A thousand
pardons, gentlemen; but no doubt this man brings me the news I expected." And
rising also, he went off at a quick pace. There remained Athos and d'Artagnan.
"I believe these fellows have managed their
business. What do you think, d'Artagnan?" said Athos.
"I know that Porthos was in a fair way,"
replied d'Artagnan; "and as to Aramis to tell you the truth, I have never been
seriously uneasy on his account. But you, my dear Athos—you, who so generously
distributed the Englishman's pistoles, which were our legitimate property—what
do you mean to do?"
"I am satisfied with having killed that fellow,
my boy, seeing that it is blessed bread to kill an Englishman; but if I had
pocketed his pistoles, they would have weighed me down like a remorse.
"Go to, my dear Athos; you have truly
inconceivable ideas."
"Let it pass. What do you think of Monsieur de
Treville telling me, when he did me the honor to call upon me yesterday, that
you associated with the suspected English, whom the cardinal protects?"
"That is to say, I visit an Englishwoman—the
one I named."
"Oh, ay! the fair woman on whose account I gave
you advice, which naturally you took care not to adopt."
"I gave you my reasons."
"Yes; you look there for your outfit, I think
you said."
"Not at all. I have acquired certain knowledge
that that woman was concerned in the abduction of Madame Bonacieux."
"Yes, I understand now: to find one woman, you
court another. It is the longest road, but certainly the most amusing."
D'Artagnan was on the point of telling Athos
all; but one consideration restrained him. Athos was a gentleman, punctilious in
points of honor; and there were in the plan which our lover had devised for
Milady, he was sure, certain things that would not obtain the assent of this
Puritan. He was therefore silent; and as Athos was the least inquisitive of any
man on earth, d'Artagnan's confidence stopped there. We will therefore leave the
two friends, who had nothing important to say to each other, and follow Aramis.
Upon being informed that the person who wanted
to speak to him came from Tours, we have seen with what rapidity the young man
followed, or rather went before, Bazin; he ran without stopping from the Rue
Ferou to the Rue de Vaugirard. On entering he found a man of short stature and
intelligent eyes, but covered with rags.
"You have asked for me?" said the Musketeer.
"I wish to speak with Monsieur Aramis. Is that
your name, monsieur?"
"My very own. You have brought me something?"
"Yes, if you show me a certain embroidered
handkerchief."
"Here it is," said Aramis, taking a small key
from his breast and opening a little ebony box inlaid with mother of pearl,
"here it is. Look."
"That is right," replied the mendicant;
"dismiss your lackey."
In fact, Bazin, curious to know what the
mendicant could want with his master, kept pace with him as well as he could,
and arrived almost at the same time he did; but his quickness was not of much
use to him. At the hint from the mendicant his master made him a sign to retire,
and he was obliged to obey.
Bazin gone, the mendicant cast a rapid glance
around him in order to be sure that nobody could either see or hear him, and
opening his ragged vest, badly held together by a leather strap, he began to rip
the upper part of his doublet, from which he drew a letter.
Aramis uttered a cry of joy at the sight of the
seal, kissed the superscription with an almost religious respect, and opened the
epistle, which contained what follows:
"My Friend, it is the will of fate that we
should be still for some time separated; but the delightful days of youth are
not lost beyond return. Perform your duty in camp; I will do mine elsewhere.
Accept that which the bearer brings you; make the campaign like a handsome true
gentleman, and think of me, who kisses tenderly your black eyes.
"Adieu; or rather, AU REVOIR."
The mendicant continued to rip his garments;
and drew from amid his rags a hundred and fifty Spanish double pistoles, which
he laid down on the table; then he opened the door, bowed, and went out before
the young man, stupefied by his letter, had ventured to address a word to him.
Aramis then reperused the letter, and perceived
a postscript:
P.S. You may behave politely to the bearer, who
is a count and a grandee of Spain!
"Golden dreams!" cried Aramis. "Oh, beautiful
life! Yes, we are young; yes, we shall yet have happy days! My love, my blood,
my life! all, all, all, are thine, my adored mistress!"
And he kissed the letter with passion, without
even vouchsafing a look at the gold which sparkled on the table.
Bazin scratched at the door, and as Aramis had
no longer any reason to exclude him, he bade him come in.
Bazin was stupefied at the sight of the gold,
and forgot that he came to announce d'Artagnan, who, curious to know who the
mendicant could be, came to Aramis on leaving Athos.
Now, as d'Artagnan used no ceremony with
Aramis, seeing that Bazin forgot to announce him, he announced himself.
"The devil! my dear Aramis," said d'Artagnan,
"if these are the prunes that are sent to you from Tours, I beg you will make my
compliments to the gardener who gathers them."
"You are mistaken, friend d'Artagnan," said
Aramis, always on his guard; "this is from my publisher, who has just sent me
the price of that poem in one-syllable verse which I began yonder."
"Ah, indeed," said d'Artagnan. "Well, your
publisher is very generous, my dear Aramis, that's all I can say."
"How, monsieur?" cried Bazin, "a poem sell so
dear as that! It is incredible! Oh, monsieur, you can write as much as you like;
you may become equal to Monsieur de Voiture and Monsieur de Benserade. I like
that. A poet is as good as an abbe. Ah! Monsieur Aramis, become a poet, I beg of
you."
"Bazin, my friend," said Aramis, "I believe you
meddle with my conversation."
Bazin perceived he was wrong; he bowed and went
out.
"Ah!" said d'Artagnan with a smile, "you sell
your productions at their weight in gold. You are very fortunate, my friend; but
take care or you will lose that letter which is peeping from your doublet, and
which also comes, no doubt, from your publisher."
Aramis blushed to the eyes, crammed in the
letter, and re-buttoned his doublet.
"My dear d'Artagnan," said he, "if you please,
we will join our friends; as I am rich, we will today begin to dine together
again, expecting that you will be rich in your turn."
"My faith!" said d'Artagnan, with great
pleasure. "It is long since we have had a good dinner; and I, for my part, have
a somewhat hazardous expedition for this evening, and shall not be sorry, I
confess, to fortify myself with a few glasses of good old Burgundy."
"Agreed, as to the old Burgundy; I have no
objection to that," said Aramis, from whom the letter and the gold had removed,
as by magic, his ideas of conversion.
And having put three or four double pistoles
into his pocket to answer the needs of the moment, he placed the others in the
ebony box, inlaid with mother of pearl, in which was the famous handkerchief
which served him as a talisman.
The two friends repaired to Athos's, and he,
faithful to his vow of not going out, took upon him to order dinner to be
brought to them. As he was perfectly acquainted with the details of gastronomy,
d'Artagnan and Aramis made no objection to abandoning this important care to
him.
They went to find Porthos, and at the corner of
the Rue Bac met Mousqueton, who, with a most pitiable air, was driving before
him a mule and a horse.
D'Artagnan uttered a cry of surprise, which was
not quite free from joy.
"Ah, my yellow horse," cried he. "Aramis, look
at that horse!"
"Oh, the frightful brute!" said Aramis.
"Ah, my dear," replied d'Artagnan, "upon that
very horse I came to Paris."
"What, does Monsieur know this horse?" said
Mousqueton.
"It is of an original color," said Aramis; "I
never saw one with such a hide in my life."
"I can well believe it," replied d'Artagnan,
"and that was why I got three crowns for him. It must have been for his hide,
for, CERTES, the carcass is not worth eighteen livres. But how did this horse
come into your bands, Mousqueton?"
"Pray," said the lackey, "say nothing about it,
monsieur; it is a frightful trick of the husband of our duchess!"
"How is that, Mousqueton?"
"Why, we are looked upon with a rather
favorable eye by a lady of quality, the Duchesse de—but, your pardon; my master
has commanded me to be discreet. She had forced us to accept a little souvenir,
a magnificent Spanish GENET and an Andalusian mule, which were beautiful to look
upon. The husband heard of the affair; on their way he confiscated the two
magnificent beasts which were being sent to us, and substituted these horrible
animals."
"Which you are taking back to him?" said
d'Artagnan.
"Exactly!" replied Mousqueton. "You may well
believe that we will not accept such steeds as these in exchange for those which
had been promised to us."
"No, PARDIEU; though I should like to have seen
Porthos on my yellow horse. That would give me an idea of how I looked when I
arrived in Paris. But don't let us hinder you, Mousqueton; go and perform your
master's orders. Is he at home?"
"Yes, monsieur," said Mousqueton, "but in a
very ill humor. Get up!"
He continued his way toward the Quai des Grands
Augustins, while the two friends went to ring at the bell of the unfortunate
Porthos. He, having seen them crossing the yard, took care not to answer, and
they rang in vain.
Meanwhile Mousqueton continued on his way, and
crossing the Pont Neuf, still driving the two sorry animals before him, he
reached the Rue aux Ours. Arrived there, he fastened, according to the orders of
his master, both horse and mule to the knocker of the procurator's door; then,
without taking any thought for their future, he returned to Porthos, and told
him that his commission was completed.
In a short time the two unfortunate beasts, who
had not eaten anything since the morning, made such a noise in raising and
letting fall the knocker that the procurator ordered his errand boy to go and
inquire in the neighborhood to whom this horse and mule belonged.
Mme. Coquenard recognized her present, and
could not at first comprehend this restitution; but the visit of Porthos soon
enlightened her. The anger which fired the eyes of the Musketeer, in spite of
his efforts to suppress it, terrified his sensitive inamorata. In fact,
Mousqueton had not concealed from his master that he had met d'Artagnan and
Aramis, and that d'Artagnan in the yellow horse had recognized the Bearnese pony
upon which he had come to Paris, and which he had sold for three crowns.
Porthos went away after having appointed a
meeting with the procurator's wife in the cloister of St. Magloire. The
procurator, seeing he was going, invited him to dinner—an invitation which the
Musketeer refused with a majestic air.
Mme. Coquenard repaired trembling to the
cloister of St. Magloire, for she guessed the reproaches that awaited her there;
but she was fascinated by the lofty airs of Porthos.
All that which a man wounded in his self-love
could let fall in the shape of imprecations and reproaches upon the head of a
woman Porthos let fall upon the bowed head of the procurator's wife.
"Alas," said she, "I did all for the best! One
of our clients is a horsedealer; he owes money to the office, and is backward in
his pay. I took the mule and the horse for what he owed us; he assured me that
they were two noble steeds."
"Well, madame," said Porthos, "if he owed you
more than five crowns, your horsedealer is a thief."
"There is no harm in trying to buy things
cheap, Monsieur Porthos," said the procurator's wife, seeking to excuse herself.
"No, madame; but they who so assiduously try to
buy things cheap ought to permit others to seek more generous friends." And
Porthos, turning on his heel, made a step to retire.
"Monsieur Porthos! Monsieur Porthos!" cried the
procurator's wife. "I have been wrong; I see it. I ought not to have driven a
bargain when it was to equip a cavalier like you."
Porthos, without reply, retreated a second
step. The procurator's wife fancied she saw him in a brilliant cloud, all
surrounded by duchesses and marchionesses, who cast bags of money at his feet.
"Stop, in the name of heaven, Monsieur
Porthos!" cried she. "Stop, and let us talk."
"Talking with you brings me misfortune," said
Porthos.
"But, tell me, what do you ask?"
"Nothing; for that amounts to the same thing as
if I asked you for something."
The procurator's wife hung upon the arm of
Porthos, and in the violence of her grief she cried out, "Monsieur Porthos, I am
ignorant of all such matters! How should I know what a horse is? How should I
know what horse furniture is?"
"You should have left it to me, then, madame,
who know what they are; but you wished to be frugal, and consequently to lend at
usury."
"It was wrong, Monsieur Porthos; but I will
repair that wrong, upon my word of honor."
"How so?" asked the Musketeer.
"Listen. This evening M. Coquenard is going to
the house of the Due de Chaulnes, who has sent for him. It is for a
consultation, which will last three hours at least. Come! We shall be alone, and
can make up our accounts."
"In good time. Now you talk, my dear."
"You pardon me?"
"We shall see," said Porthos, majestically; and
the two separated saying, "Till this evening."
"The devil!" thought Porthos, as he walked
away, "it appears I am getting nearer to Monsieur Coquenard's strongbox at
last."
35 A GASCON A MATCH FOR CUPID
The evening so impatiently waited for by
Porthos and by d'Artagnan at last arrived.
As was his custom, d'Artagnan presented himself
at Milady's at about nine o'clock. He found her in a charming humor. Never had
he been so well received. Our Gascon knew, by the first glance of his eye, that
his billet had been delivered, and that this billet had had its effect.
Kitty entered to bring some sherbet. Her
mistress put on a charming face, and smiled on her graciously; but alas! the
poor girl was so sad that she did not even notice Milady's condescension.
D'Artagnan looked at the two women, one after
the other, and was forced to acknowledge that in his opinion Dame Nature had
made a mistake in their formation. To the great lady she had given a heart vile
and venal; to the SOUBRETTE she had given the heart of a duchess.
At ten o'clock Milady began to appear restless.
D'Artagnan knew what she wanted. She looked at the clock, rose, reseated
herself, smiled at d'Artagnan with an air which said, "You are very amiable, no
doubt, but you would be charming if you would only depart."
D'Artagnan rose and took his hat; Milady gave
him her hand to kiss. The young man felt her press his hand, and comprehended
that this was a sentiment, not of coquetry, but of gratitude because of his
departure.
"She loves him devilishly," he murmured. Then
he went out.
This time Kitty was nowhere waiting for him;
neither in the antechamber, nor in the corridor, nor beneath the great door. It
was necessary that d'Artagnan should find alone the staircase and the little
chamber. She heard him enter, but she did not raise her head. The young man went
to her and took her hands; then she sobbed aloud.
As d'Artagnan had presumed, on receiving his
letter, Milady in a delirium of joy had told her servant everything; and by way
of recompense for the manner in which she had this time executed the commission,
she had given Kitty a purse.
Returning to her own room, Kitty had thrown the
purse into a corner, where it lay open, disgorging three or four gold pieces on
the carpet. The poor girl, under the caresses of d'Artagnan, lifted her head.
D'Artagnan himself was frightened by the change in her countenance. She joined
her hands with a suppliant air, but without venturing to speak a word. As little
sensitive as was the heart of d'Artagnan, he was touched by this mute sorrow;
but he held too tenaciously to his projects, above all to this one, to change
the program which he had laid out in advance. He did not therefore allow her any
hope that he would flinch; only he represented his action as one of simple
vengeance.
For the rest this vengeance was very easy; for
Milady, doubtless to conceal her blushes from her lover, had ordered Kitty to
extinguish all the lights in the apartment, and even in the little chamber
itself. Before daybreak M. de Wardes must take his departure, still in
obscurity.
Presently they heard Milady retire to her room.
D'Artagnan slipped into the wardrobe. Hardly was he concealed when the little
bell sounded. Kitty went to her mistress, and did not leave the door open; but
the partition was so thin that one could hear nearly all that passed between the
two women.
Milady seemed overcome with joy, and made Kitty
repeat the smallest details of the pretended interview of the soubrette with de
Wardes when he received the letter; how he had responded; what was the
expression of his face; if he seemed very amorous. And to all these questions
poor Kitty, forced to put on a pleasant face, responded in a stifled voice whose
dolorous accent her mistress did not however remark, solely because happiness is
egotistical.
Finally, as the hour for her interview with the
count approached, Milady had everything about her darkened, and ordered Kitty to
return to her own chamber, and introduce de Wardes whenever he presented
himself.
Kitty's detention was not long. Hardly had
d'Artagnan seen, through a crevice in his closet, that the whole apartment was
in obscurity, than he slipped out of his concealment, at the very moment when
Kitty reclosed the door of communication.
"What is that noise?" demanded Milady.
"It is I," said d'Artagnan in a subdued voice,
"I, the Comte de Wardes."
"Oh, my God, my God!" murmured Kitty, "he has
not even waited for the hour he himself named!"
"Well," said Milady, in a trembling voice, "why
do you not enter? Count, Count," added she, "you know that I wait for you."
At this appeal d'Artagnan drew Kitty quietly
away, and slipped into the chamber.
If rage or sorrow ever torture the heart, it is
when a lover receives under a name which is not his own protestations of love
addressed to his happy rival. D'Artagnan was in a dolorous situation which he
had not foreseen. Jealousy gnawed his heart; and he suffered almost as much as
poor Kitty, who at that very moment was crying in the next chamber.
"Yes, Count," said Milady, in her softest
voice, and pressing his hand in her own, "I am happy in the love which your
looks and your words have expressed to me every time we have met. I also—I love
you. Oh, tomorrow, tomorrow, I must have some pledge from you which will prove
that you think of me; and that you may not forget me, take this!" and she
slipped a ring from her finger onto d'Artagnan's. d'Artagnan remembered having
seen this ring on the finger of Milady; it was a magnificent sapphire, encircled
with brilliants.
The first movement of d'Artagnan was to return
it, but Milady added, "No, no! Keep that ring for love of me. Besides, in
accepting it," she added, in a voice full of emotion, "you render me a much
greater service than you imagine."
"This woman is full of mysteries," murmured
d'Artagnan to himself. At that instant he felt himself ready to reveal all. He
even opened his mouth to tell Milady who he was, and with what a revengeful
purpose he had come; but she added, "Poor angel, whom that monster of a Gascon
barely failed to kill."
The monster was himself.
"Oh," continued Milady, "do your wounds still
make you suffer?"
"Yes, much," said d'Artagnan, who did not well
know how to answer.
"Be tranquil," murmured Milady; "I will avenge
you—and cruelly!"
"PESTE!" said d'Artagnan to himself, "the
moment for confidences has not yet come."
It took some time for d'Artagnan to resume this
little dialogue; but then all the ideas of vengeance which he had brought with
him had completely vanished. This woman exercised over him an unaccountable
power; he hated and adored her at the same time. He would not have believed that
two sentiments so opposite could dwell in the same heart, and by their union
constitute a passion so strange, and as it were, diabolical.
Presently it sounded one o'clock. It was
necessary to separate. D'Artagnan at the moment of quitting Milady felt only the
liveliest regret at the parting; and as they addressed each other in a
reciprocally passionate adieu, another interview was arranged for the following
week.
Poor Kitty hoped to speak a few words to
d'Artagnan when he passed through her chamber; but Milady herself reconducted
him through the darkness, and only quit him at the staircase.
The next morning d'Artagnan ran to find Athos.
He was engaged in an adventure so singular that he wished for counsel. He
therefore told him all.
"Your Milady," said he, "appears to be an
infamous creature, but not the less you have done wrong to deceive her. In one
fashion or another you have a terrible enemy on your hands."
While thus speaking Athos regarded with
attention the sapphire set with diamonds which had taken, on d'Artagnan's
finger, the place of the queen's ring, carefully kept in a casket.
"You notice my ring?" said the Gascon, proud to
display so rich a gift in the eyes of his friends.
"Yes," said Athos, "it reminds me of a family
jewel."
"It is beautiful, is it not?" said d'Artagnan.
"Yes," said Athos, "magnificent. I did not
think two sapphires of such a fine water existed. Have you traded it for your
diamond?"
"No. It is a gift from my beautiful
Englishwoman, or rather Frenchwoman—for I am convinced she was born in France,
though I have not questioned her."
"That ring comes from Milady?" cried Athos,
with a voice in which it was easy to detect strong emotion.
"Her very self; she gave it me last night. Here
it is," replied d'Artagnan, taking it from his finger.
Athos examined it and became very pale. He
tried it on his left hand; it fit his finger as if made for it.
A shade of anger and vengeance passed across
the usually calm brow of this gentleman.
"It is impossible it can be she," said be. "How
could this ring come into the hands of Milady Clarik? And yet it is difficult to
suppose such a resemblance should exist between two jewels."
"Do you know this ring?" said d'Artagnan.
"I thought I did," replied Athos; "but no doubt
I was mistaken." And he returned d'Artagnan the ring without, however, ceasing
to look at it.
"Pray, d'Artagnan," said Athos, after a minute,
"either take off that ring or turn the mounting inside; it recalls such cruel
recollections that I shall have no head to converse with you. Don't ask me for
counsel; don't tell me you are perplexed what to do. But stop! let me look at
that sapphire again; the one I mentioned to you had one of its faces scratched
by accident."
D'Artagnan took off the ring, giving it again
to Athos.
Athos started. "Look," said he, "is it not
strange?" and he pointed out to d'Artagnan the scratch he had remembered.
"But from whom did this ring come to you,
Athos?"
"From my mother, who inherited it from her
mother. As I told you, it is an old family jewel."
"And you—sold it?" asked d'Artagnan,
hesitatingly.
"No," replied Athos, with a singular smile. "I
gave it away in a night of love, as it has been given to you."
D'Artagnan became pensive in his turn; it
appeared as if there were abysses in Milady's soul whose depths were dark and
unknown. He took back the ring, but put it in his pocket and not on his finger.
"d'Artagnan," said Athos, taking his hand, "you
know I love you; if I had a son I could not love him better. Take my advice,
renounce this woman. I do not know her, but a sort of intuition tells me she is
a lost creature, and that there is something fatal about her."
"You are right," said d'Artagnan; "I will have
done with her. I own that this woman terrifies me."
"Shall you have the courage?" said Athos.
"I shall," replied d'Artagnan, "and instantly."
"In truth, my young friend, you will act
rightly," said the gentleman, pressing the Gascon's hand with an affection
almost paternal; "and God grant that this woman, who has scarcely entered into
your life, may not leave a terrible trace in it!" And Athos bowed to d'Artagnan
like a man who wishes it understood that he would not be sorry to be left alone
with his thoughts.
On reaching home d'Artagnan found Kitty waiting
for him. A month of fever could not have changed her more than this one night of
sleeplessness and sorrow.
She was sent by her mistress to the false de
Wardes. Her mistress was mad with love, intoxicated with joy. She wished to know
when her lover would meet her a second night; and poor Kitty, pale and
trembling, awaited d'Artagnan's reply. The counsels of his friend, joined to the
cries of his own heart, made him determine, now his pride was saved and his
vengeance satisfied, not to see Milady again. As a reply, he wrote the following
letter:
Do not depend upon me, madame, for the next
meeting. Since my convalescence I have so many affairs of this kind on my hands
that I am forced to regulate them a little. When your turn comes, I shall have
the honor to inform you of it. I kiss your hands.
Comte de Wardes
Not a word about the sapphire. Was the Gascon
determined to keep it as a weapon against Milady, or else, let us be frank, did
he not reserve the sapphire as a last resource for his outfit? It would be wrong
to judge the actions of one period from the point of view of another. That which
would now be considered as disgraceful to a gentleman was at that time quite a
simple and natural affair, and the younger sons of the best families were
frequently supported by their mistresses. D'Artagnan gave the open letter to
Kitty, who at first was unable to comprehend it, but who became almost wild with
joy on reading it a second time. She could scarcely believe in her happiness;
and d'Artagnan was forced to renew with the living voice the assurances which he
had written. And whatever might be—considering the violent character of
Milady—the danger which the poor girl incurred in giving this billet to her
mistress, she ran back to the Place Royale as fast as her legs could carry her.
The heart of the best woman is pitiless toward
the sorrows of a rival.
Milady opened the letter with eagerness equal
to Kitty's in bringing it; but at the first words she read she became livid. She
crushed the paper in her hand, and turning with flashing eyes upon Kitty, she
cried, "What is this letter?"
"The answer to Madame's," replied Kitty, all in
a tremble.
"Impossible!" cried Milady. "It is impossible a
gentleman could have written such a letter to a woman." Then all at once,
starting, she cried, "My God! can he have—" and she stopped. She ground her
teeth; she was of the color of ashes. She tried to go toward the window for air,
but she could only stretch forth her arms; her legs failed her, and she sank
into an armchair. Kitty, fearing she was ill, hastened toward her and was
beginning to open her dress; but Milady started up, pushing her away. "What do
you want with me?" said she, "and why do you place your hand on me?"
"I thought that Madame was ill, and I wished to
bring her help," responded the maid, frightened at the terrible expression which
had come over her mistress's face.
"I faint? I? I? Do you take me for half a
woman? When I am insulted I do not faint; I avenge myself!"
And she made a sign for Kitty to leave the
room.
36 DREAM OF VENGEANCE
That evening Milady gave orders that when M.
d'Artagnan came as usual, he should be immediately admitted; but he did not
come.
The next day Kitty went to see the young man
again, and related to him all that had passed on the preceding evening.
d'Artagnan smiled; this jealous anger of Milady was his revenge.
That evening Milady was still more impatient
than on the preceding evening. She renewed the order relative to the Gascon; but
as before she expected him in vain.
The next morning, when Kitty presented herself
at d'Artagnan's, she was no longer joyous and alert as on the two preceding
days; but on the contrary sad as death.
D'Artagnan asked the poor girl what was the
matter with her; but she, as her only reply, drew a letter from her pocket and
gave it to him.
This letter was in Milady's handwriting; only
this time it was addressed to M. d'Artagnan, and not to M. de Wardes.
He opened it and read as follows:
Dear M. d'Artagnan, It is wrong thus to neglect
your friends, particularly at the moment you are about to leave them for so long
a time. My brother-in-law and myself expected you yesterday and the day before,
but in vain. Will it be the same this evening?
Your very grateful, Milady Clarik
"That's all very simple," said d'Artagnan; "I
expected this letter. My credit rises by the fall of that of the Comte de
Wardes."
"And will you go?" asked Kitty.
"Listen to me, my dear girl," said the Gascon,
who sought for an excuse in his own eyes for breaking the promise he had made
Athos; "you must understand it would be impolitic not to accept such a positive
invitation. Milady, not seeing me come again, would not be able to understand
what could cause the interruption of my visits, and might suspect something; who
could say how far the vengeance of such a woman would go?"
"Oh, my God!" said Kitty, "you know how to
represent things in such a way that you are always in the right. You are going
now to pay your court to her again, and if this time you succeed in pleasing her
in your own name and with your own face, it will be much worse than before."
Instinct made poor Kitty guess a part of what
was to happen. d'Artagnan reassured her as well as he could, and promised to
remain insensible to the seductions of Milady.
He desired Kitty to tell her mistress that he
could not be more grateful for her kindnesses than he was, and that he would be
obedient to her orders. He did not dare to write for fear of not being able—to
such experienced eyes as those of Milady—to disguise his writing sufficiently.
As nine o'clock sounded, d'Artagnan was at the
Place Royale. It was evident that the servants who waited in the antechamber
were warned, for as soon as d'Artagnan appeared, before even he had asked if
Milady were visible, one of them ran to announce him.
"Show him in," said Milady, in a quick tone,
but so piercing that d'Artagnan heard her in the antechamber.
He was introduced.
"I am at home to nobody," said Milady;
"observe, to nobody." The servant went out.
D'Artagnan cast an inquiring glance at Milady.
She was pale, and looked fatigued, either from tears or want of sleep. The
number of lights had been intentionally diminished, but the young woman could
not conceal the traces of the fever which had devoured her for two days.
D'Artagnan approached her with his usual
gallantry. She then made an extraordinary effort to receive him, but never did a
more distressed countenance give the lie to a more amiable smile.
To the questions which d'Artagnan put
concerning her health, she replied, "Bad, very bad."
"Then," replied he, "my visit is ill-timed;
you, no doubt, stand in need of repose, and I will withdraw."
"No, no!" said Milady. "On the contrary, stay,
Monsieur d'Artagnan; your agreeable company will divert me."
"Oh, oh!" thought d'Artagnan. "She has never
been so kind before. On guard!"
Milady assumed the most agreeable air possible,
and conversed with more than her usual brilliancy. At the same time the fever,
which for an instant abandoned her, returned to give luster to her eyes, color
to her cheeks, and vermillion to her lips. D'Artagnan was again in the presence
of the Circe who had before surrounded him with her enchantments. His love,
which he believed to be extinct but which was only asleep, awoke again in his
heart. Milady smiled, and d'Artagnan felt that he could damn himself for that
smile. There was a moment at which he felt something like remorse.
By degrees, Milady became more communicative.
She asked d'Artagnan if he had a mistress.
"Alas!" said d'Artagnan, with the most
sentimental air he could assume, "can you be cruel enough to put such a question
to me—to me, who, from the moment I saw you, have only breathed and sighed
through you and for you?"
Milady smiled with a strange smile.
"Then you love me?" said she.
"Have I any need to tell you so? Have you not
perceived it?"
"It may be; but you know the more hearts are
worth the capture, the more difficult they are to be won."
"Oh, difficulties do not affright me," said
d'Artagnan. "I shrink before nothing but impossibilities."
"Nothing is impossible," replied Milady, "to
true love."
"Nothing, madame?"
"Nothing," replied Milady.
"The devil!" thought d'Artagnan. "The note is
changed. Is she going to fall in love with me, by chance, this fair inconstant;
and will she be disposed to give me myself another sapphire like that which she
gave me for de Wardes?"
D'Artagnan rapidly drew his seat nearer to
Milady's.
"Well, now," she said, "let us see what you
would do to prove this love of which you speak."
"All that could be required of me. Order; I am
ready."
"For everything?"
"For everything," cried d'Artagnan, who knew
beforehand that he had not much to risk in engaging himself thus.
"Well, now let us talk a little seriously,"
said Milady, in her turn drawing her armchair nearer to d'Artagnan's chair.
"I am all attention, madame," said he.
Milady remained thoughtful and undecided for a
moment; then, as if appearing to have formed a resolution, she said, "I have an
enemy."
"You, madame!" said d'Artagnan, affecting
surprise; "is that possible, my God?—good and beautiful as you are!"
"A mortal enemy."
"Indeed!"
"An enemy who has insulted me so cruelly that
between him and me it is war to the death. May I reckon on you as an auxiliary?"
D'Artagnan at once perceived the ground which
the vindictive creature wished to reach.
"You may, madame," said he, with emphasis. "My
arm and my life belong to you, like my love."
"Then," said Milady, "since you are as generous
as you are loving—"
She stopped.
"Well?" demanded d'Artagnan.
"Well," replied Milady, after a moment of
silence, "from the present time, cease to talk of impossibilities."
"Do not overwhelm me with happiness," cried
d'Artagnan, throwing himself on his knees, and covering with kisses the hands
abandoned to him.
"Avenge me of that infamous de Wardes," said
Milady, between her teeth, "and I shall soon know how to get rid of you—you
double idiot, you animated sword blade!"
"Fall voluntarily into my arms, hypocritical
and dangerous woman," said d'Artagnan, likewise to himself, "after having abused
me with such effrontery, and afterward I will laugh at you with him whom you
wish me to kill."
D'Artagnan lifted up his head.
"I am ready," said he.
"You have understood me, then, dear Monsieur
d'Artagnan," said Milady.
"I could interpret one of your looks."
"Then you would employ for me your arm which
has already acquired so much renown?"
"Instantly!"
"But on my part," said Milady, "how should I
repay such a service? I know these lovers. They are men who do nothing for
nothing."
"You know the only reply that I desire," said
d'Artagnan, "the only one worthy of you and of me!"
And he drew nearer to her.
She scarcely resisted.
"Interested man!" cried she, smiling.
"Ah," cried d'Artagnan, really carried away by
the passion this woman had the power to kindle in his heart, "ah, that is
because my happiness appears so impossible to me; and I have such fear that it
should fly away from me like a dream that I pant to make a reality of it."
"Well, merit this pretended happiness, then!"
"I am at your orders," said d'Artagnan.
"Quite certain?" said Milady, with a last
doubt.
"Only name to me the base man that has brought
tears into your beautiful eyes!"
"Who told you that I had been weeping?" said
she.
"It appeared to me—"
"Such women as I never weep," said Milady.
"So much the better! Come, tell me his name!"
"Remember that his name is all my secret."
"Yet I must know his name."
"Yes, you must; see what confidence I have in
you!"
"You overwhelm me with joy. What is his name?"
"You know him."
"Indeed."
"Yes."
"It is surely not one of my friends?" replied
d'Artagnan, affecting hesitation in order to make her believe him ignorant.
"If it were one of your friends you would
hesitate, then?" cried Milady; and a threatening glance darted from her eyes.
"Not if it were my own brother!" cried
d'Artagnan, as if carried away by his enthusiasm.
Our Gascon promised this without risk, for he
knew all that was meant.
"I love your devotedness," said Milady.
"Alas, do you love nothing else in me?" asked
d'Artagnan.
"I love you also, YOU!" said she, taking his
hand.
The warm pressure made d'Artagnan tremble, as
if by the touch that fever which consumed Milady attacked himself.
"You love me, you!" cried he. "Oh, if that were
so, I should lose my reason!"
And he folded her in his arms. She made no
effort to remove her lips from his kisses; only she did not respond to them. Her
lips were cold; it appeared to d'Artagnan that he had embraced a statue.
He was not the less intoxicated with joy,
electrified by love. He almost believed in the tenderness of Milady; he almost
believed in the crime of de Wardes. If de Wardes had at that moment been under
his hand, he would have killed him.
Milady seized the occasion.
"His name is—" said she, in her turn.
"De Wardes; I know it," cried d'Artagnan.
"And how do you know it?" asked Milady, seizing
both his hands, and endeavoring to read with her eyes to the bottom of his
heart.
D'Artagnan felt he had allowed himself to be
carried away, and that he had committed an error.
"Tell me, tell me, tell me, I say," repeated
Milady, "how do you know it?"
"How do I know it?" said d'Artagnan.
"Yes."
"I know it because yesterday Monsieur de
Wardes, in a saloon where I was, showed a ring which he said he had received
from you."
"Wretch!" cried Milady.
The epithet, as may be easily understood,
resounded to the very bottom of d'Artagnan's heart.
"Well?" continued she.
"Well, I will avenge you of this wretch,"
replied d'Artagnan, giving himself the airs of Don Japhet of Armenia.
"Thanks, my brave friend!" cried Milady; "and
when shall I be avenged?"
"Tomorrow—immediately—when you please!"
Milady was about to cry out, "Immediately," but
she reflected that such precipitation would not be very gracious toward
d'Artagnan.
Besides, she had a thousand precautions to
take, a thousand counsels to give to her defender, in order that he might avoid
explanations with the count before witnesses. All this was answered by an
expression of d'Artagnan's. "Tomorrow," said he, "you will be avenged, or I
shall be dead."
"No," said she, "you will avenge me; but you
will not be dead. He is a coward."
"With women, perhaps; but not with men. I know
something of him."
"But it seems you had not much reason to
complain of your fortune in your contest with him."
"Fortune is a courtesan; favorable yesterday,
she may turn her back tomorrow."
"Which means that you now hesitate?"
"No, I do not hesitate; God forbid! But would
it be just to allow me to go to a possible death without having given me at
least something more than hope?"
Milady answered by a glance which said, "Is
that all?—speak, then." And then accompanying the glance with explanatory words,
"That is but too just," said she, tenderly.
"Oh, you are an angel!" exclaimed the young
man.
"Then all is agreed?" said she.
"Except that which I ask of you, dear love."
"But when I assure you that you may rely on my
tenderness?"
"I cannot wait till tomorrow."
"Silence! I hear my brother. It will be useless
for him to find you here."
She rang the bell and Kitty appeared.
"Go out this way," said she, opening a small
private door, "and come back at eleven o'clock; we will then terminate this
conversation. Kitty will conduct you to my chamber."
The poor girl almost fainted at hearing these
words.
"Well, mademoiselle, what are you thinking
about, standing there like a statue? Do as I bid you: show the chevalier out;
and this evening at eleven o'clock—you have heard what I said."
"It appears that these appointments are all
made for eleven o'clock," thought d'Artagnan; "that's a settled custom."
Milady held out her hand to him, which he
kissed tenderly.
"But," said he, as he retired as quickly as
possible from the reproaches of Kitty, "I must not play the fool. This woman is
certainly a great liar. I must take care."
37 MILADY'S SECRET
D'Artagnan left the hotel instead of going up
at once to Kitty's chamber, as she endeavored to persuade him to do—and that for
two reasons: the first, because by this means he should escape reproaches,
recriminations, and prayers; the second, because he was not sorry to have an
opportunity of reading his own thoughts and endeavoring, if possible, to fathom
those of this woman.
What was most clear in the matter was that
d'Artagnan loved Milady like a madman, and that she did not love him at all. In
an instant d'Artagnan perceived that the best way in which he could act would be
to go home and write Milady a long letter, in which he would confess to her that
he and de Wardes were, up to the present moment absolutely the same, and that
consequently he could not undertake, without committing suicide, to kill the
Comte de Wardes. But he also was spurred on by a ferocious desire of vengeance.
He wished to subdue this woman in his own name; and as this vengeance appeared
to him to have a certain sweetness in it, he could not make up his mind to
renounce it.
He walked six or seven times round the Place
Royale, turning at every ten steps to look at the light in Milady's apartment,
which was to be seen through the blinds. It was evident that this time the young
woman was not in such haste to retire to her apartment as she had been the
first.
At length the light disappeared. With this
light was extinguished the last irresolution in the heart of d'Artagnan. He
recalled to his mind the details of the first night, and with a beating heart
and a brain on fire he re-entered the hotel and flew toward Kitty's chamber.
The poor girl, pale as death and trembling in
all her limbs, wished to delay her lover; but Milady, with her ear on the watch,
had heard the noise d'Artagnan had made, and opening the door, said, "Come in."
All this was of such incredible immodesty, of
such monstrous effrontery, that d'Artagnan could scarcely believe what he saw or
what he heard. He imagined himself to be drawn into one of those fantastic
intrigues one meets in dreams. He, however, darted not the less quickly toward
Milady, yielding to that magnetic attraction which the loadstone exercises over
iron.
As the door closed after them Kitty rushed
toward it. Jealousy, fury, offended pride, all the passions in short that
dispute the heart of an outraged woman in love, urged her to make a revelation;
but she reflected that she would be totally lost if she confessed having
assisted in such a machination, and above all, that d'Artagnan would also be
lost to her forever. This last thought of love counseled her to make this last
sacrifice.
D'Artagnan, on his part, had gained the summit
of all his wishes. It was no longer a rival who was beloved; it was himself who
was apparently beloved. A secret voice whispered to him, at the bottom of his
heart, that he was but an instrument of vengeance, that he was only caressed
till he had given death; but pride, but self-love, but madness silenced this
voice and stifled its murmurs. And then our Gascon, with that large quantity of
conceit which we know he possessed, compared himself with de Wardes, and asked
himself why, after all, he should not be beloved for himself?
He was absorbed entirely by the sensations of
the moment. Milady was no longer for him that woman of fatal intentions who had
for a moment terrified him; she was an ardent, passionate mistress, abandoning
herself to love which she also seemed to feel. Two hours thus glided away. When
the transports of the two lovers were calmer, Milady, who had not the same
motives for forgetfulness that d'Artagnan had, was the first to return to
reality, and asked the young man if the means which were on the morrow to bring
on the encounter between him and de Wardes were already arranged in his mind.
But d'Artagnan, whose ideas had taken quite
another course, forgot himself like a fool, and answered gallantly that it was
too late to think about duels and sword thrusts.
This coldness toward the only interests that
occupied her mind terrified Milady, whose questions became more pressing.
Then d'Artagnan, who had never seriously
thought of this impossible duel, endeavored to turn the conversation; but he
could not succeed. Milady kept him within the limits she had traced beforehand
with her irresistible spirit and her iron will.
D'Artagnan fancied himself very cunning when
advising Milady to renounce, by pardoning de Wardes, the furious projects she
had formed.
But at the first word the young woman started,
and exclaimed in a sharp, bantering tone, which sounded strangely in the
darkness, "Are you afraid, dear Monsieur d'Artagnan?"
"You cannot think so, dear love!" replied
d'Artagnan; "but now, suppose this poor Comte de Wardes were less guilty than
you think him?"
"At all events," said Milady, seriously, "he
has deceived me, and from the moment he deceived me, he merited death."
"He shall die, then, since you condemn him!"
said d'Artagnan, in so firm a tone that it appeared to Milady an undoubted proof
of devotion. This reassured her.
We cannot say how long the night seemed to
Milady, but d'Artagnan believed it to be hardly two hours before the daylight
peeped through the window blinds, and invaded the chamber with its paleness.
Seeing d'Artagnan about to leave her, Milady recalled his promise to avenge her
on the Comte de Wardes.
"I am quite ready," said d'Artagnan; "but in
the first place I should like to be certain of one thing."
"And what is that?" asked Milady.
"That is, whether you really love me?"
"I have given you proof of that, it seems to
me."
"And I am yours, body and soul!"
"Thanks, my brave lover; but as you are
satisfied of my love, you must, in your turn, satisfy me of yours. Is it not
so?"
"Certainly; but if you love me as much as you
say," replied d'Artagnan, "do you not entertain a little fear on my account?"
"What have I to fear?"
"Why, that I may be dangerously wounded—killed
even."
"Impossible!" cried Milady, "you are such a
valiant man, and such an expert swordsman."
"You would not, then, prefer a method," resumed
d'Artagnan, "which would equally avenge you while rendering the combat useless?"
Milady looked at her lover in silence. The pale
light of the first rays of day gave to her clear eyes a strangely frightful
expression.
"Really," said she, "I believe you now begin to
hesitate."
"No, I do not hesitate; but I really pity this
poor Comte de Wardes, since you have ceased to love him. I think that a man must
be so severely punished by the loss of your love that he stands in need of no
other chastisement."
"Who told you that I loved him?" asked Milady,
sharply.
"At least, I am now at liberty to believe,
without too much fatuity, that you love another," said the young man, in a
caressing tone, "and I repeat that I am really interested for the count."
"You?" asked Milady.
"Yes, I."
"And why YOU?"
"Because I alone know—"
"What?"
"That he is far from being, or rather having
been, so guilty toward you as he appears."
"Indeed!" said Milady, in an anxious tone;
"explain yourself, for I really cannot tell what you mean."
And she looked at d'Artagnan, who embraced her
tenderly, with eyes which seemed to burn themselves away.
"Yes; I am a man of honor," said d'Artagnan,
determined to come to an end, "and since your love is mine, and I am satisfied I
possess it—for I do possess it, do I not?"
"Entirely; go on."
"Well, I feel as if transformed—a confession
weighs on my mind."
"A confession!"
"If I had the least doubt of your love I would
not make it, but you love me, my beautiful mistress, do you not?"
"Without doubt."
"Then if through excess of love I have rendered
myself culpable toward you, you will pardon me?"
"Perhaps."
D'Artagnan tried with his sweetest smile to
touch his lips to Milady's, but she evaded him.
"This confession," said she, growing paler,
"what is this confession?"
"You gave de Wardes a meeting on Thursday last
in this very room, did you not?"
"No, no! It is not true," said Milady, in a
tone of voice so firm, and with a countenance so unchanged, that if d'Artagnan
had not been in such perfect possession of the fact, he would have doubted.
"Do not lie, my angel," said d'Artagnan,
smiling; "that would be useless."
"What do you mean? Speak! you kill me."
"Be satisfied; you are not guilty toward me,
and I have already pardoned you."
"What next? what next?"
"De Wardes cannot boast of anything."
"How is that? You told me yourself that that
ring—"
"That ring I have! The Comte de Wardes of
Thursday and the d'Artagnan of today are the same person."
The imprudent young man expected a surprise,
mixed with shame—a slight s |